This is a modern-English version of Army Life in a Black Regiment, originally written by Higginson, Thomas Wentworth. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.





ARMY LIFE IN A BLACK REGIMENT





By Thomas Wentworth Higginson





(1823-1911)





Originally published 1869



Reprinted, 1900, by Riverside Press










CONTENTS


Chapter 1.   Introductory

Chapter 2.   Camp Diary

Chapter 3.   Up the St. Mary's

Chapter 4.   Up the St. John's

Chapter 5.   Out on Picket

Chapter 6.   A Night in the Water

Chapter 7.   Up the Edisto

Chapter 8.   The Baby of the Regiment

Chapter 9.   Negro Spirituals

Chapter 10.   Life at Camp Shaw

Chapter 11.   Florida Again?

Chapter 12.     The Negro as a Soldier

Chapter 13.   Conclusion


APPENDIX

Appendix A

Appendix B The First Black Soldiers

Appendix C General Saxton's Instructions

Appendix D The Struggle for Pay

Appendix E Farewell Address of Lt. Col. Trowbridge

CONTENTS


__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__  Introduction

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__  Camp Journal

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__  Up the St. Mary's River

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__  Up the St. John's River

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__  Out on Picket Duty

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__  A Night in the Water

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__  Up the Edisto River

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__  The Baby of the Regiment

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__  Negro Spirituals

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__  Life at Camp Shaw

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__  Back to Florida?

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__  The Role of the Negro Soldier

__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__  Conclusion


APPENDIX

Appendix A

Appendix B The First Black Soldiers

Appendix C General Saxton's Instructions

Appendix D The Struggle for Pay

Appendix E Farewell Address of Lt. Col. Trowbridge






Chapter 1. Introductory

These pages record some of the adventures of the First South Carolina Volunteers, the first slave regiment mustered into the service of the United States during the late civil war. It was, indeed, the first colored regiment of any kind so mustered, except a portion of the troops raised by Major-General Butler at New Orleans. These scarcely belonged to the same class, however, being recruited from the free colored population of that city, a comparatively self-reliant and educated race. "The darkest of them," said General Butler, "were about the complexion of the late Mr. Webster."

These pages document some of the experiences of the First South Carolina Volunteers, the first slave regiment enlisted in the service of the United States during the recent civil war. It was, in fact, the first colored regiment of any type to be mustered, apart from some of the troops gathered by Major-General Butler in New Orleans. However, those troops barely belonged to the same category, as they were recruited from the free colored population of that city, a relatively self-sufficient and educated group. "The darkest of them," General Butler remarked, "were about the same complexion as the late Mr. Webster."

The First South Carolina, on the other hand, contained scarcely a freeman, had not one mulatto in ten, and a far smaller proportion who could read or write when enlisted. The only contemporary regiment of a similar character was the "First Kansas Colored," which began recruiting a little earlier, though it was not mustered in the usual basis of military seniority till later. [See Appendix] These were the only colored regiments recruited during the year 1862. The Second South Carolina and the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts followed early in 1863.

The First South Carolina, on the other hand, had hardly any free people, had less than one mulatto in ten, and an even smaller number who could read or write when they were enlisted. The only contemporary regiment that was similar was the "First Kansas Colored," which started recruiting a bit earlier, though it wasn't officially mustered based on military seniority until later. [See Appendix] These were the only colored regiments recruited during the year 1862. The Second South Carolina and the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts came next in early 1863.

This is the way in which I came to the command of this regiment. One day in November, 1862, I was sitting at dinner with my lieutenants, John Goodell and Luther Bigelow, in the barracks of the Fifty-First Massachusetts, Colonel Sprague, when the following letter was put into my hands:

This is how I ended up in charge of this regiment. One day in November 1862, I was having dinner with my lieutenants, John Goodell and Luther Bigelow, at the barracks of the Fifty-First Massachusetts, Colonel Sprague, when I received the following letter:

BEAUFORT, S. C., November 5, 1862.

BEAUFORT, S. C., November 5, 1862.

MY DEAR SIR.

Dear Sir,

I am organizing the First Regiment of South Carolina Volunteers, with every prospect of success. Your name has been spoken of, in connection with the command of this regiment, by some friends in whose judgment I have confidence. I take great pleasure in offering you the position of Colonel in it, and hope that you may be induced to accept. I shall not fill the place until I hear from you, or sufficient time shall have passed for me to receive your reply. Should you accept, I enclose a pass for Port Royal, of which I trust you will feel disposed to avail yourself at once. I am, with sincere regard, yours truly,

I am putting together the First Regiment of South Carolina Volunteers, and we have every reason to be optimistic about its success. Your name has come up in conversations regarding the command of this regiment, mentioned by some friends whose judgment I trust. I’m very pleased to offer you the position of Colonel, and I hope you'll consider accepting it. I won’t appoint anyone else until I hear from you, or enough time has passed for me to get your response. If you decide to accept, I’ve included a pass for Port Royal, which I hope you’ll use immediately. I am, with sincere respect, yours truly,

R. SAXTON, Brig.-Genl, Mil. Gov.

R. SAXTON, Brig. Gen., Mil. Gov.

Had an invitation reached me to take command of a regiment of Kalmuck Tartars, it could hardly have been more unexpected. I had always looked for the arming of the blacks, and had always felt a wish to be associated with them; had read the scanty accounts of General Hunter's abortive regiment, and had heard rumors of General Saxton's renewed efforts. But the prevalent tone of public sentiment was still opposed to any such attempts; the government kept very shy of the experiment, and it did not seem possible that the time had come when it could be fairly tried.

Had I received an invitation to take command of a regiment of Kalmuck Tartars, it couldn’t have been more unexpected. I had always anticipated the arming of Black soldiers and had wanted to be part of it; I had read the limited accounts of General Hunter's failed regiment and had heard rumors about General Saxton's renewed efforts. However, the general public sentiment was still against such attempts; the government was very hesitant about the experiment, and it didn’t seem likely that the time had come for it to be properly tried.

For myself, I was at the head of a fine company of my own raising, and in a regiment to which I was already much attached. It did not seem desirable to exchange a certainty for an uncertainty; for who knew but General Saxton might yet be thwarted in his efforts by the pro-slavery influence that had still so much weight at head-quarters? It would be intolerable to go out to South Carolina, and find myself, after all, at the head of a mere plantation-guard or a day-school in uniform.

For me, I was leading a great group that I had put together, and I was already quite attached to the regiment. It didn't make sense to trade something certain for something uncertain; after all, who knew if General Saxton might still be hindered by the pro-slavery influence that still carried so much power at headquarters? It would be unbearable to head to South Carolina, only to find myself in charge of a simple plantation guard or a uniformed day school.

I therefore obtained from the War Department, through Governor Andrew, permission to go and report to General Saxton, without at once resigning my captaincy. Fortunately it took but a few days in South Carolina to make it clear that all was right, and the return steamer took back a resignation of a Massachusetts commission. Thenceforth my lot was cast altogether with the black troops, except when regiments or detachments of white soldiers were also under my command, during the two years following.

I got permission from the War Department, through Governor Andrew, to go and report to General Saxton without immediately resigning my captaincy. Luckily, it only took a few days in South Carolina to confirm that everything was fine, and the return steamer took back my resignation from a Massachusetts commission. After that, I was fully committed to the black troops, except when I also had command of regiments or detachments of white soldiers during the following two years.

These details would not be worth mentioning except as they show this fact: that I did not seek the command of colored troops, but it sought me. And this fact again is only important to my story for this reason, that under these circumstances I naturally viewed the new recruits rather as subjects for discipline than for philanthropy. I had been expecting a war for six years, ever since the Kansas troubles, and my mind had dwelt on military matters more or less during all that time. The best Massachusetts regiments already exhibited a high standard of drill and discipline, and unless these men could be brought tolerably near that standard, the fact of their extreme blackness would afford me, even as a philanthropist, no satisfaction. Fortunately, I felt perfect confidence that they could be so trained, having happily known, by experience, the qualities of their race, and knowing also that they had home and household and freedom to fight for, besides that abstraction of "the Union." Trouble might perhaps be expected from white officials, though this turned out far less than might have been feared; but there was no trouble to come from the men, I thought, and none ever came. On the other hand, it was a vast experiment of indirect philanthropy, and one on which the result of the war and the destiny of the negro race might rest; and this was enough to tax all one's powers. I had been an abolitionist too long, and had known and loved John Brown too well, not to feel a thrill of joy at last on finding myself in the position where he only wished to be.

These details might not be worth mentioning, except to highlight this fact: I didn't go after the command of colored troops; it came after me. This fact is important to my story for this reason: given the circumstances, I naturally viewed the new recruits more as subjects for discipline than as objects of philanthropy. I had been anticipating war for six years, ever since the troubles in Kansas, and my thoughts had been focused on military matters during that time. The best regiments from Massachusetts already showed a high level of drill and discipline, and unless these men could reach a similar standard, their extreme blackness would bring me no satisfaction, even as a philanthropist. Fortunately, I was completely confident that they could be trained to that level, having luckily learned, through experience, the qualities of their race. I also knew that they had homes, families, and freedom to fight for, in addition to the idea of "the Union." I expected some trouble from white officials, though it turned out to be much less than I had feared; however, I didn't anticipate any trouble from the men themselves, and there was none. On the contrary, this was a significant experiment in indirect philanthropy, one on which the outcome of the war and the fate of the African American race could depend; and this was enough to demand all of my energy. I had been an abolitionist for too long and had known and admired John Brown too well not to feel a rush of joy at finally finding myself in the position he had only wished to occupy.

In view of all this, it was clear that good discipline must come first; after that, of course, the men must be helped and elevated in all ways as much as possible.

In light of all this, it was obvious that good discipline had to come first; after that, of course, the men needed to be supported and uplifted in every way possible.

Of discipline there was great need, that is, of order and regular instruction. Some of the men had already been under fire, but they were very ignorant of drill and camp duty. The officers, being appointed from a dozen different States, and more than as many regiments, infantry, cavalry, artillery, and engineers, had all that diversity of methods which so confused our army in those early days. The first need, therefore, was of an unbroken interval of training. During this period, which fortunately lasted nearly two months, I rarely left the camp, and got occasional leisure moments for a fragmentary journal, to send home, recording the many odd or novel aspects of the new experience. Camp-life was a wonderfully strange sensation to almost all volunteer officers, and mine lay among eight hundred men suddenly transformed from slaves into soldiers, and representing a race affectionate, enthusiastic, grotesque, and dramatic beyond all others. Being such, they naturally gave material for description. There is nothing like a diary for freshness, at least so I think, and I shall keep to the diary through the days of camp-life, and throw the later experience into another form. Indeed, that matter takes care of itself; diaries and letter-writing stop when field-service begins.

There was a huge need for discipline, meaning order and regular training. Some of the men had already faced combat, but they knew very little about drills and camp duties. The officers were appointed from a dozen different states and just as many regiments—infantry, cavalry, artillery, and engineers—which created confusion in our army during those early days. So, the first priority was to have an uninterrupted training period. Luckily, this lasted almost two months. During this time, I rarely left the camp and found occasional moments to jot down notes for a brief journal to send home, capturing the many unique and interesting aspects of this new experience. Life in camp felt incredibly strange to almost all the volunteer officers, and mine was spent among eight hundred men who had suddenly gone from being slaves to soldiers, representing a race that is affectionate, enthusiastic, quirky, and dramatic like no other. Because of this, they were rich material for storytelling. I believe there's nothing quite like a diary for capturing freshness, so I’ll stick to the diary format during these days of camp life, and save the later experiences for another form. In fact, that will work itself out; diaries and letters typically stop when field service begins.

I am under pretty heavy bonds to tell the truth, and only the truth; for those who look back to the newspaper correspondence of that period will see that this particular regiment lived for months in a glare of publicity, such as tests any regiment severely, and certainly prevents all subsequent romancing in its historian. As the scene of the only effort on the Atlantic coast to arm the negro, our camp attracted a continuous stream of visitors, military and civil. A battalion of black soldiers, a spectacle since so common, seemed then the most daring of innovations, and the whole demeanor of this particular regiment was watched with microscopic scrutiny by friends and foes. I felt sometimes as if we were a plant trying to take root, but constantly pulled up to see if we were growing. The slightest camp incidents sometimes came back to us, magnified and distorted, in letters of anxious inquiry from remote parts of the Union. It was no pleasant thing to live under such constant surveillance; but it guaranteed the honesty of any success, while fearfully multiplying the penalties had there been a failure. A single mutiny, such as has happened in the infancy of a hundred regiments, a single miniature Bull Run, a stampede of desertions, and it would have been all over with us; the party of distrust would have got the upper hand, and there might not have been, during the whole contest, another effort to arm the negro.

I have a strong obligation to tell the truth and only the truth; because those who look back at the newspaper reports from that time will see that this particular regiment was in the spotlight for months, something that tests any regiment and definitely stops any later exaggerations by its historian. Since our camp was the site of the only attempt on the Atlantic coast to arm Black soldiers, we attracted a steady stream of visitors, both military and civilian. A battalion of Black soldiers, which is now quite common, was then seen as a bold innovation, and the behavior of our regiment was observed with intense scrutiny by both supporters and critics. At times, it felt like we were a plant trying to grow, but constantly being pulled up to check on our progress. Even the smallest incidents in camp would sometimes come back to us, exaggerated and distorted, in letters of concern from distant parts of the Union. Living under such constant watch was not easy; however, it ensured that any success was honest, while dramatically increasing the consequences if we had failed. A single mutiny, like those that have occurred in the early days of many regiments, a minor version of Bull Run, or a wave of desertions, and it would have been the end for us; the skeptics would have taken control, and there might not have been another effort to arm Black soldiers throughout the entire conflict.

I may now proceed, without farther preparation to the Diary.

I can now move on to the Diary without any further preparation.





Chapter 2. Camp Diary

CAMP SAXTON, near Beaufort, S. C., November 24, 1862.

CAMP SAXTON, near Beaufort, SC, November 24, 1862.

Yesterday afternoon we were steaming over a summer sea, the deck level as a parlor-floor, no land in sight, no sail, until at last appeared one light-house, said to be Cape Romaine, and then a line of trees and two distant vessels and nothing more. The sun set, a great illuminated bubble, submerged in one vast bank of rosy suffusion; it grew dark; after tea all were on deck, the people sang hymns; then the moon set, a moon two days old, a curved pencil of light, reclining backwards on a radiant couch which seemed to rise from the waves to receive it; it sank slowly, and the last tip wavered and went down like the mast of a vessel of the skies. Towards morning the boat stopped, and when I came on deck, before six,

Yesterday afternoon, we were cruising over a summer sea, the deck as flat as a living room floor, with no land in sight and no sails, until finally we saw a lighthouse, thought to be Cape Romaine, followed by a line of trees and two distant ships, and that was all. The sun set, a huge glowing bubble, sinking into a vast expanse of rosy light; it grew dark, and after tea, everyone gathered on deck to sing hymns; then the moon set, a crescent that was just two days old, arching back like a sliver of light laid out on a radiant couch that seemed to rise from the waves to welcome it; it slowly descended, and the last glimmer wavered and sank like the mast of a ship in the sky. Toward morning, the boat stopped, and when I came on deck before six,

  "The watch-lights glittered on the land,
  The ship-lights on the sea."
  "The lights on the land sparkled,  
  The lights on the sea shone."

Hilton Head lay on one side, the gunboats on the other; all that was raw and bare in the low buildings of the new settlement was softened into picturesqueness by the early light. Stars were still overhead, gulls wheeled and shrieked, and the broad river rippled duskily towards Beaufort.

Hilton Head was on one side, the gunboats on the other; everything that was rough and unfinished in the low buildings of the new settlement looked more appealing in the early light. Stars were still shining above, seagulls circled and cried out, and the wide river flowed quietly towards Beaufort.

The shores were low and wooded, like any New England shore; there were a few gunboats, twenty schooners, and some steamers, among them the famous "Planter," which Robert Small, the slave, presented to the nation. The river-banks were soft and graceful, though low, and as we steamed up to Beaufort on the flood-tide this morning, it seemed almost as fair as the smooth and lovely canals which Stedman traversed to meet his negro soldiers in Surinam. The air was cool as at home, yet the foliage seemed green, glimpses of stiff tropical vegetation appeared along the banks, with great clumps of shrubs, whose pale seed-vessels looked like tardy blossoms. Then we saw on a picturesque point an old plantation, with stately magnolia avenue, decaying house, and tiny church amid the woods, reminding me of Virginia; behind it stood a neat encampment of white tents, "and there," said my companion, "is your future regiment."

The shores were low and lined with trees, just like any New England shore; there were a few gunboats, twenty schooners, and some steamers, including the famous "Planter," which Robert Small, a former slave, gave to the nation. The riverbanks were soft and graceful, though low, and as we steamed up to Beaufort on the rising tide this morning, it felt almost as beautiful as the smooth and lovely canals that Stedman traveled to meet his Black soldiers in Surinam. The air was cool like at home, yet the foliage appeared lush, with glimpses of stiff tropical plants along the banks, featuring large clusters of shrubs whose pale seed pods looked like late-blooming flowers. Then we spotted an old plantation on a scenic point, with a grand magnolia avenue, a decaying house, and a tiny church nestled in the woods, reminding me of Virginia; behind it was a tidy camp of white tents, and “and there,” said my companion, “is your future regiment.”

Three miles farther brought us to the pretty town of Beaufort, with its stately houses amid Southern foliage. Reporting to General Saxton, I had the luck to encounter a company of my destined command, marched in to be mustered into the United States service. They were unarmed, and all looked as thoroughly black as the most faithful philanthropist could desire; there did not seem to be so much as a mulatto among them. Their coloring suited me, all but the legs, which were clad in a lively scarlet, as intolerable to my eyes as if I had been a turkey. I saw them mustered; General Saxton talked to them a little, in his direct, manly way; they gave close attention, though their faces looked impenetrable. Then I conversed with some of them. The first to whom I spoke had been wounded in a small expedition after lumber, from which a party had just returned, and in which they had been under fire and had done very well. I said, pointing to his lame arm,

Three miles further brought us to the charming town of Beaufort, with its impressive houses surrounded by Southern greenery. When I reported to General Saxton, I had the chance to meet a company of my future command, marching in to be mustered into the United States service. They were unarmed, and all appeared as thoroughly black as the most dedicated philanthropist could wish; there didn’t seem to be a single mulatto among them. Their skin color suited me, except for their legs, which were clad in bright scarlet that was as unbearable to my eyes as if I had been a turkey. I watched them being mustered; General Saxton spoke to them a bit, in his straightforward, manly way; they paid close attention, although their faces looked unreadable. Then I chatted with some of them. The first person I spoke to had been wounded during a small expedition for lumber, from which a group had just returned, and in which they had been under fire and had performed very well. I said, pointing to his injured arm,

"Did you think that was more than you bargained for, my man?"

"Did you think that was more than you expected, dude?"

His answer came promptly and stoutly,

His response came quickly and confidently,

"I been a-tinking, Mas'r, dot's jess what I went for."

"I've been thinking, Master, that's exactly what I went for."

I thought this did well enough for my very first interchange of dialogue with my recruits.

I thought this worked pretty well for my very first conversation with my recruits.

November 27, 1862.

November 27, 1862.

Thanksgiving-Day; it is the first moment I have had for writing during these three days, which have installed me into a new mode of life so thoroughly that they seem three years. Scarcely pausing in New York or in Beaufort, there seems to have been for me but one step from the camp of a Massachusetts regiment to this, and that step over leagues of waves.

Thanksgiving Day; this is the first chance I've had to write in three days, which have changed my life so much that it feels like three years. I barely stopped in New York or Beaufort; it feels like I took just one step from the camp of a Massachusetts regiment to here, and that step was over miles of ocean.

It is a holiday wherever General Saxton's proclamation reaches. The chilly sunshine and the pale blue river seems like New England, but those alone. The air is full of noisy drumming, and of gunshots; for the prize-shooting is our great celebration of the day, and the drumming is chronic. My young barbarians are all at play. I look out from the broken windows of this forlorn plantation-house, through avenues of great live-oaks, with their hard, shining leaves, and their branches hung with a universal drapery of soft, long moss, like fringe-trees struck with grayness. Below, the sandy soil, scantly covered with coarse grass, bristles with sharp palmettoes and aloes; all the vegetation is stiff, shining, semi-tropical, with nothing soft or delicate in its texture. Numerous plantation-buildings totter around, all slovenly and unattractive, while the interspaces are filled with all manner of wreck and refuse, pigs, fowls, dogs, and omnipresent Ethiopian infancy. All this is the universal Southern panorama; but five minutes' walk beyond the hovels and the live-oaks will bring one to something so un-Southern that the whole Southern coast at this moment trembles at the suggestion of such a thing, the camp of a regiment of freed slaves.

It’s a holiday wherever General Saxton’s proclamation is heard. The chilly sunshine and the pale blue river remind me of New England, but that’s about it. The air is filled with loud drumming and gunshots; the prize shooting is the main celebration of the day, and the drumming is constant. My young ones are all playing. I look out from the broken windows of this run-down plantation house, through paths lined with large live oaks, their hard, shiny leaves and branches draped in soft, long moss, like gray fringe. Below, the sandy ground, barely covered with coarse grass, is dotted with sharp palmettos and aloes; all the plants are stiff, shiny, and semi-tropical, with nothing soft or delicate in their texture. Numerous plantation buildings lean haphazardly around, all messy and unattractive, while the spaces in between are filled with all sorts of junk and debris, pigs, chickens, dogs, and ubiquitous toddlers. This is the typical Southern scene; but just a five-minute walk beyond the shacks and live oaks will bring one to something so un-Southern that the entire Southern coast currently shudders at the thought— the camp of a regiment of freed slaves.

One adapts one's self so readily to new surroundings that already the full zest of the novelty seems passing away from my perceptions, and I write these lines in an eager effort to retain all I can. Already I am growing used to the experience, at first so novel, of living among five hundred men, and scarce a white face to be seen, of seeing them go through all their daily processes, eating, frolicking, talking, just as if they were white. Each day at dress-parade I stand with the customary folding of the arms before a regimental line of countenances so black that I can hardly tell whether the men stand steadily or not; black is every hand which moves in ready cadence as I vociferate, "Battalion! Shoulder arms!" nor is it till the line of white officers moves forward, as parade is dismissed, that I am reminded that my own face is not the color of coal.

One adapts so quickly to new surroundings that the excitement of the novelty already feels like it’s fading from my senses, and I’m writing these lines in a desperate attempt to hold on to all I can. I’m starting to get used to the experience, which was once so new, of living among five hundred men, with hardly a white face in sight, watching them go through their daily routines—eating, playing, talking—just like they were white. Every day at dress parade, I stand with my arms crossed in front of a row of faces so black that I can barely tell if the men are standing still or not; every hand that moves in perfect rhythm is black as I shout, “Battalion! Shoulder arms!” It’s not until the line of white officers steps forward when the parade is dismissed that I’m reminded my own face isn’t coal-colored.

The first few days on duty with a new regiment must be devoted almost wholly to tightening reins; in this process one deals chiefly with the officers, and I have as yet had but little personal intercourse with the men. They concern me chiefly in bulk, as so many consumers of rations, wearers of uniforms, bearers of muskets. But as the machine comes into shape, I am beginning to decipher the individual parts. At first, of course, they all looked just alike; the variety comes afterwards, and they are just as distinguishable, the officers say, as so many whites. Most of them are wholly raw, but there are many who have already been for months in camp in the abortive "Hunter Regiment," yet in that loose kind of way which, like average militia training, is a doubtful advantage. I notice that some companies, too, look darker than others, though all are purer African than I expected. This is said to be partly a geographical difference between the South Carolina and Florida men. When the Rebels evacuated this region they probably took with them the house-servants, including most of the mixed blood, so that the residuum seems very black. But the men brought from Fernandina the other day average lighter in complexion, and look more intelligent, and they certainly take wonderfully to the drill.

The first few days on duty with a new regiment have to be mostly about getting everything in line; during this process, I mainly work with the officers, and I haven't had much personal interaction with the soldiers yet. I see them mainly as a group, just as many people consuming rations, wearing uniforms, and carrying muskets. But as things start to come together, I'm beginning to recognize the individual members. At first, of course, they all looked the same; the differences come later, and the officers say they're as distinguishable as different shades of white. Most of them are completely inexperienced, but there are quite a few who have already spent months in camp with the failed "Hunter Regiment," yet in that loose way typical of average militia training, which isn't much of an advantage. I also notice that some companies appear darker than others, although all of them are more purely African than I expected. This is thought to be partly due to the geographical difference between the South Carolina and Florida men. When the Rebels left this area, they likely took their house-servants with them, including most of the mixed-race individuals, leaving behind a population that seems very black. However, the men brought from Fernandina recently tend to have lighter skin and look more intelligent, and they certainly adapt remarkably well to the drills.

It needs but a few days to show the absurdity of distrusting the military availability of these people. They have quite as much average comprehension as whites of the need of the thing, as much courage (I doubt not), as much previous knowledge of the gun, and, above all, a readiness of ear and of imitation, which, for purposes of drill, counterbalances any defect of mental training. To learn the drill, one does not want a set of college professors; one wants a squad of eager, active, pliant school-boys; and the more childlike these pupils are the better. There is no trouble about the drill; they will surpass whites in that. As to camp-life, they have little to sacrifice; they are better fed, housed, and clothed than ever in their lives before, and they appear to have few inconvenient vices. They are simple, docile, and affectionate almost to the point of absurdity. The same men who stood fire in open field with perfect coolness, on the late expedition, have come to me blubbering in the most irresistibly ludicrous manner on being transferred from one company in the regiment to another.

It only takes a few days to highlight how silly it is to doubt these people's ability to serve in the military. They understand the need just as well as white people do, and I have no doubt they have just as much courage and prior experience with firearms. Most importantly, they have a keen ability to listen and learn, which makes up for any lack of formal education when it comes to training. To learn the drills, you don't need a bunch of college professors; you need a group of eager, active, and adaptable kids, and the more innocent they are, the better. There’s no issue with learning the drills; they will likely outperform white individuals in that regard. When it comes to camp life, they have little to lose; they are better fed, housed, and clothed than they have ever been, and they don’t seem to have many troublesome habits. They are simple, obedient, and almost absurdly affectionate. The same men who calmly faced battle on the recent expedition have come to me, crying in a hilariously over-the-top way, just because they were moved from one company to another in the regiment.

In noticing the squad-drills I perceive that the men learn less laboriously than whites that "double, double, toil and trouble," which is the elementary vexation of the drill-master, that they more rarely mistake their left for their right, and are more grave and sedate while under instruction. The extremes of jollity and sobriety, being greater with them, are less liable to be intermingled; these companies can be driven with a looser rein than my former one, for they restrain themselves; but the moment they are dismissed from drill every tongue is relaxed and every ivory tooth visible. This morning I wandered about where the different companies were target-shooting, and their glee was contagious. Such exulting shouts of "Ki! ole man," when some steady old turkey-shooter brought his gun down for an instant's aim, and then unerringly hit the mark; and then, when some unwary youth fired his piece into the ground at half-cock such guffawing and delight, such rolling over and over on the grass, such dances of ecstasy, as made the "Ethiopian minstrelsy" of the stage appear a feeble imitation.

In watching the squad drills, I notice that the men learn less painfully than white soldiers the basic frustration of the drill instructor, that they rarely confuse their left with their right, and they are more serious and composed during training. Their moods swing more dramatically between joy and seriousness, making it easier to keep them focused; they regulate themselves. But as soon as drill is over, they let loose, and every voice comes alive with laughter and smiles. This morning, I strolled around where the different companies were target shooting, and their joy was infectious. There were enthusiastic shouts of "Ki! old man," when some steady veteran sharpshooter took a moment to aim and then hit the target flawlessly; and when an inexperienced young guy accidentally fired into the ground at half-cock, the laughter and joy erupted, rolling on the grass and dancing in pure ecstasy, making the "Ethiopian minstrelsy" of the stage seem like a weak imitation.

Evening. Better still was a scene on which I stumbled to-night. Strolling in the cool moonlight, I was attracted by a brilliant light beneath the trees, and cautiously approached it. A circle of thirty or forty soldiers sat around a roaring fire, while one old uncle, Cato by name, was narrating an interminable tale, to the insatiable delight of his audience. I came up into the dusky background, perceived only by a few, and he still continued. It was a narrative, dramatized to the last degree, of his adventures in escaping from his master to the Union vessels; and even I, who have heard the stories of Harriet Tubman, and such wonderful slave-comedians, never witnessed such a piece of acting. When I came upon the scene he had just come unexpectedly upon a plantation-house, and, putting a bold face upon it, had walked up to the door.

Evening. Even better was a scene I stumbled upon tonight. Strolling in the cool moonlight, I was drawn to a bright light beneath the trees and quietly approached. A circle of thirty or forty soldiers gathered around a roaring fire, while an older man, named Cato, was telling a long story that delighted his audience. I crept into the dim background, mostly unnoticed, and he continued. It was a tale, dramatically told, about his adventures escaping from his master to the Union ships; and even I, who have heard the stories of Harriet Tubman and other incredible slave-comedians, had never seen such a performance. When I arrived, he had just come upon a plantation house by surprise, and, putting on a brave face, had walked up to the door.

"Den I go up to de white man, berry humble, and say, would he please gib ole man a mouthful for eat?

"Then I go up to the white man, very humbly, and ask if he would please give the old man a bite to eat?"

"He say he must hab de valeration ob half a dollar.

"He says he must have the valuation of half a dollar."

"Den I look berry sorry, and turn for go away.

"Then I look very sorry and turn to walk away."

"Den he say I might gib him dat hatchet I had.

"Then he said I might give him that hatchet I had."

"Den I say" (this in a tragic vein) "dat I must hab dat hatchet for defend myself from de dogs!"

"Then I say" (this in a tragic tone) "that I must have that hatchet to defend myself from the dogs!"

[Immense applause, and one appreciating auditor says, chuckling, "Dat was your arms, ole man," which brings down the house again.]

[Immense applause, and one appreciative audience member says, chuckling, "That was your arms, old man," which gets the crowd going again.]

"Den he say de Yankee pickets was near by, and I must be very keerful.

"Then he said the Yankee pickets were nearby, and I had to be very careful."

"Den I say, 'Good Lord, Mas'r, am dey?'"

"Then I say, 'Good Lord, Master, am I?'"

Words cannot express the complete dissimulation with which these accents of terror were uttered, this being precisely the piece of information he wished to obtain.

Words can't capture the total insincerity with which these terrifying words were spoken, as this was exactly the information he wanted to get.

Then he narrated his devices to get into the house at night and obtain some food, how a dog flew at him, how the whole household, black and white, rose in pursuit, how he scrambled under a hedge and over a high fence, etc., all in a style of which Gough alone among orators can give the faintest impression, so thoroughly dramatized was every syllable.

Then he described his tricks for sneaking into the house at night to grab some food, how a dog came at him, how the entire household, both black and white, chased after him, how he crawled under a hedge and jumped over a tall fence, etc., all in a way that only Gough among speakers can make you feel, as every word was so completely dramatized.

Then he described his reaching the river-side at last, and trying to decide whether certain vessels held friends or foes.

Then he talked about finally getting to the riverbank and trying to figure out whether the boats held friends or enemies.

"Den I see guns on board, and sure sartin he Union boat, and I pop my head up. Den I been-a-tink [think] Seceshkey hab guns too, and my head go down again. Den I hide in de bush till morning. Den I open my bundle, and take ole white shut and tie him on ole pole and wave him, and ebry time de wind blow, I been-a-tremble, and drap down in de bushes," because, being between two fires, he doubted whether friend or foe would see his signal first. And so on, with a succession of tricks beyond Moliere, of acts of caution, foresight, patient cunning, which were listened to with infinite gusto and perfect comprehension by every listener.

"Then I see guns on board, and I'm sure it's the Union boat, so I pop my head up. Then I think the Rebels have guns too, and I hide my head again. I stay in the bushes until morning. Then I open my bundle, take an old white shirt, tie it on an old pole, and wave it. Every time the wind blows, I tremble and drop down into the bushes because, caught between two fires, I wasn't sure if friend or foe would see my signal first. And so on, with a series of tricks beyond Moliere, acts of caution, foresight, and patient cunning, which every listener enjoyed and fully understood."

And all this to a bivouac of negro soldiers, with the brilliant fire lighting up their red trousers and gleaming from their shining black faces, eyes and teeth all white with tumultuous glee. Overhead, the mighty limbs of a great live-oak, with the weird moss swaying in the smoke, and the high moon gleaming faintly through.

And all this to a camp of Black soldiers, with the bright fire illuminating their red pants and shining off their smooth black faces, eyes and teeth all white with overwhelming joy. Above, the strong branches of a huge live oak, with the strange moss swaying in the smoke, and the bright moon shining faintly through.

Yet to-morrow strangers will remark on the hopeless, impenetrable stupidity in the daylight faces of many of these very men, the solid mask under which Nature has concealed all this wealth of mother-wit. This very comedian is one to whom one might point, as he hoed lazily in a cotton-field, as a being the light of whose brain had utterly gone out; and this scene seems like coming by night upon some conclave of black beetles, and finding them engaged, with green-room and foot-lights, in enacting "Poor Pillicoddy." This is their university; every young Sambo before me, as he turned over the sweet potatoes and peanuts which were roasting in the ashes, listened with reverence to the wiles of the ancient Ulysses, and meditated the same. It is Nature's compensation; oppression simply crushes the upper faculties of the head, and crowds everything into the perceptive organs. Cato, thou reasonest well! When I get into any serious scrape, in an enemy's country, may I be lucky enough to have you at my elbow, to pull me out of it!

Yet tomorrow, strangers will notice the hopeless, impenetrable stupidity in the daylight faces of many of these men, the solid mask under which nature has hidden all this wealth of common sense. This very comedian is someone you could point to, as he worked lazily in a cotton field, as if the spark of his brain had completely disappeared; and this scene feels like stumbling upon a secret meeting of black beetles at night, finding them staging "Poor Pillicoddy" with a green room and footlights. This is their university; every young man in front of me, as he turned over the sweet potatoes and peanuts roasting in the ashes, listened with respect to the cleverness of the ancient Ulysses and contemplated it himself. It’s nature's way of balancing things; oppression simply crushes the higher faculties of the mind and focuses everything into the senses. Cato, you reason well! When I get into a serious mess in an enemy's territory, may I be fortunate enough to have you by my side to get me out of it!

The men seem to have enjoyed the novel event of Thanksgiving-Day; they have had company and regimental prize-shootings, a minimum of speeches and a maximum of dinner. Bill of fare: two beef-cattle and a thousand oranges. The oranges cost a cent apiece, and the cattle were Secesh, bestowed by General Saxby, as they all call him.

The men seem to have really enjoyed the new experience of Thanksgiving Day; they have had guests and regiment-wide shooting competitions, very few speeches, and a whole lot of food. Menu: two cows and a thousand oranges. The oranges were a dollar each, and the cows were from the Confederacy, given by General Saxby, as everyone calls him.

December 1, 1862.

December 1, 1862.

How absurd is the impression bequeathed by Slavery in regard to these Southern blacks, that they are sluggish and inefficient in labor! Last night, after a hard day's work (our guns and the remainder of our tents being just issued), an order came from Beaufort that we should be ready in the evening to unload a steamboat's cargo of boards, being some of those captured by them a few weeks since, and now assigned for their use. I wondered if the men would grumble at the night-work; but the steamboat arrived by seven, and it was bright moonlight when they went at it. Never have I beheld such a jolly scene of labor. Tugging these wet and heavy boards over a bridge of boats ashore, then across the slimy beach at low tide, then up a steep bank, and all in one great uproar of merriment for two hours. Running most of the time, chattering all the time, snatching the boards from each other's backs as if they were some coveted treasure, getting up eager rivalries between different companies, pouring great choruses of ridicule on the heads of all shirkers, they made the whole scene so enlivening that I gladly stayed out in the moonlight for the whole time to watch it. And all this without any urging or any promised reward, but simply as the most natural way of doing the thing. The steamboat captain declared that they unloaded the ten thousand feet of boards quicker than any white gang could have done it; and they felt it so little, that, when, later in the night, I reproached one whom I found sitting by a campfire, cooking a surreptitious opossum, telling him that he ought to be asleep after such a job of work, he answered, with the broadest grin, "O no, Gunnel, da's no work at all, Gunnel; dat only jess enough for stretch we."

How ridiculous is the stereotype left by Slavery that Southern blacks are lazy and ineffective workers! Last night, after a long day (with our guns and the rest of our tents just issued), we got an order from Beaufort that we needed to be ready in the evening to unload a steamboat filled with boards, some of which were captured a few weeks ago and now assigned for their use. I wondered if the men would complain about working at night; but the steamboat arrived by seven, and it was bright and moonlit when they got started. I’ve never seen such a lively scene of hard work. They were hauling these wet and heavy boards over a bridge of boats to the shore, then across the slippery beach at low tide, and up a steep bank, all while having a great time for two hours. Most of the time they were running, chatting non-stop, grabbing the boards from each other’s backs like they were precious treasures, sparking friendly rivalries between different groups, and tossing around hilarious insults at anyone who slacked off. They made the whole scene so enjoyable that I happily stayed out in the moonlight the whole time just to watch. And all of this was done without any encouragement or promised rewards, but simply as the most natural way to get the job done. The steamboat captain said they unloaded ten thousand feet of boards faster than any white crew could have done, and they hardly felt it. Later that night, when I found one of them sitting by a campfire cooking an illegal opossum, I told him he should be asleep after such a job, and he replied with the biggest grin, "Oh no, Gunnel, that was no work at all, Gunnel; that was just enough for us to stretch."

December 2, 1862.

December 2, 1862.

I believe I have not yet enumerated the probable drawbacks to the success of this regiment, if any. We are exposed to no direct annoyance from the white regiments, being out of their way; and we have as yet no discomforts or privations which we do not share with them. I do not as yet see the slightest obstacle, in the nature of the blacks, to making them good soldiers, but rather the contrary. They take readily to drill, and do not object to discipline; they are not especially dull or inattentive; they seem fully to understand the importance of the contest, and of their share in it. They show no jealousy or suspicion towards their officers.

I don’t think I’ve listed the possible downsides to the success of this regiment, if there are any. We aren’t facing any direct issues with the white regiments since we’re out of their way, and we don’t have any hardships or deprivations that we don’t share with them. I don’t see any real barriers, in terms of the nature of the Black soldiers, that would prevent them from being good soldiers—in fact, it seems the opposite is true. They adapt quickly to drills and don’t mind discipline; they’re not particularly slow or inattentive. They seem to fully grasp the importance of the struggle and their role in it. They show no jealousy or suspicion towards their officers.

They do show these feelings, however, towards the Government itself; and no one can wonder. Here lies the drawback to rapid recruiting. Were this a wholly new regiment, it would have been full to overflowing, I am satisfied, ere now. The trouble is in the legacy of bitter distrust bequeathed by the abortive regiment of General Hunter, into which they were driven like cattle, kept for several months in camp, and then turned off without a shilling, by order of the War Department. The formation of that regiment was, on the whole, a great injury to this one; and the men who came from it, though the best soldiers we have in other respects, are the least sanguine and cheerful; while those who now refuse to enlist have a great influence in deterring others. Our soldiers are constantly twitted by their families and friends with their prospect of risking their lives in the service, and being paid nothing; and it is in vain that we read them the instructions of the Secretary of War to General Saxton, promising them the full pay of soldiers. They only half believe it.*

They do express these feelings, though, towards the Government itself, and no one can blame them. This is the downside of quick recruiting. If this were a completely new regiment, I’m sure it would be overflowing by now. The issue lies in the bitter distrust left over from General Hunter's failed regiment, where they were herded like cattle, kept in camp for several months, and then sent off with nothing, as ordered by the War Department. The creation of that regiment has, overall, harmed this one; and the men who came from it, while being some of the best soldiers in other ways, are the least optimistic and cheerful. Those who are currently refusing to enlist have a significant impact on discouraging others. Our soldiers are constantly teased by their families and friends about the possibility of risking their lives for nothing. It doesn't help that we read them the instructions from the Secretary of War to General Saxton, promising them full pay as soldiers. They only half believe it.

*With what utter humiliation were we, their officers, obliged to confess to them, eighteen months afterwards, that it was their distrust which was wise, and our faith in the pledges of the United States Government which was foolishness!

*With what total humiliation were we, their officers, forced to admit to them, eighteen months later, that their skepticism was justified, and our trust in the promises of the United States Government was a mistake!*

Another drawback is that some of the white soldiers delight in frightening the women on the plantations with doleful tales of plans for putting us in the front rank in all battles, and such silly talk,—the object being perhaps, to prevent our being employed on active service at all. All these considerations they feel precisely as white men would,—no less, no more; and it is the comparative freedom from such unfavorable influences which makes the Florida men seem more bold and manly, as they undoubtedly do. To-day General Saxton has returned from Fernandina with seventy-six recruits, and the eagerness of the captains to secure them was a sight to see. Yet they cannot deny that some of the very best men in the regiment are South Carolinians.

Another downside is that some of the white soldiers take pleasure in scaring the women on the plantations with sad stories about plans to put us at the front in all battles, and such nonsense—the goal might be to keep us from being put on active duty at all. They feel all these things just like white men do—no less, no more; and it's the relative lack of such negative influences that makes the Florida men seem braver and more manly, which they definitely are. Today, General Saxton has come back from Fernandina with seventy-six recruits, and the captains' eagerness to get them was quite a sight. Still, they can't deny that some of the best men in the regiment are from South Carolina.

December 3, 1862.—7 P.M.

December 3, 1862 — 7 PM.

What a life is this I lead! It is a dark, mild, drizzling evening, and as the foggy air breeds sand-flies, so it calls out melodies and strange antics from this mysterious race of grown-up children with whom my lot is cast. All over the camp the lights glimmer in the tents, and as I sit at my desk in the open doorway, there come mingled sounds of stir and glee. Boys laugh and shout,—a feeble flute stirs somewhere in some tent, not an officer's,—a drum throbs far away in another,—wild kildeer-plover flit and wail above us, like the haunting souls of dead slave-masters,—and from a neighboring cook-fire comes the monotonous sound of that strange festival, half pow-wow, half prayer-meeting, which they know only as a "shout." These fires are usually enclosed in a little booth, made neatly of palm-leaves and covered in at top, a regular native African hut, in short, such as is pictured in books, and such as I once got up from dried palm-leaves for a fair at home. This hut is now crammed with men, singing at the top of their voices, in one of their quaint, monotonous, endless, negro-Methodist chants, with obscure syllables recurring constantly, and slight variations interwoven, all accompanied with a regular drumming of the feet and clapping of the hands, like castanets. Then the excitement spreads: inside and outside the enclosure men begin to quiver and dance, others join, a circle forms, winding monotonously round some one in the centre; some "heel and toe" tumultuously, others merely tremble and stagger on, others stoop and rise, others whirl, others caper sideways, all keep steadily circling like dervishes; spectators applaud special strokes of skill; my approach only enlivens the scene; the circle enlarges, louder grows the singing, rousing shouts of encouragement come in, half bacchanalian, half devout, "Wake 'em, brudder!" "Stan' up to 'em, brudder!"—and still the ceaseless drumming and clapping, in perfect cadence, goes steadily on. Suddenly there comes a sort of snap, and the spell breaks, amid general sighing and laughter. And this not rarely and occasionally, but night after night, while in other parts of the camp the soberest prayers and exhortations are proceeding sedately.

What a life I lead! It's a dark, mild, drizzly evening, and as the misty air attracts sand-flies, it brings out melodies and strange behaviors from this mysterious group of grown-up kids I'm stuck with. All over the camp, lights twinkle in the tents, and as I sit at my desk in the open doorway, I hear mixed sounds of movement and joy. Boys are laughing and shouting— a weak flute plays somewhere in some tent, not belonging to any officer— a drum beats far away in another tent— wild kildeer plovers flutter and cry above us, like the restless spirits of deceased slave-masters—and from a nearby cook-fire comes the steady sound of that unusual celebration, part pow-wow, part prayer meeting, which they only know as a "shout." These fires are usually surrounded by a little booth made neatly of palm leaves, topped off like a typical African hut, just like the ones you read about in books, and like the one I once built from dried palm leaves for a fair back home. This hut is now packed with men, singing at the top of their lungs in one of their unique, repetitive, never-ending, African Methodist hymns, filled with obscure syllables that keep coming back, with slight variations mixed in, all accompanied by a steady pounding of feet and clapping of hands, sounding like castanets. Then the excitement spreads: inside and outside the enclosure, men begin to shake and dance, more join in, a circle forms, winding monotonously around someone in the center; some "heel and toe" energetically, others just shudder and stumble, some bend and rise, others spin, others bounce sideways, all moving in a steady circle like dervishes; onlookers cheer for impressive moves; my arrival only adds to the energy of the scene; the circle grows larger, the singing gets louder, calls of encouragement ring out, half wild, half serious, "Wake 'em, brother!" "Stand up to 'em, brother!"—and still the constant drumming and clapping continues in perfect rhythm. Suddenly, there's a snap, and the spell breaks, followed by collective sighs and laughter. And this happens not just occasionally, but night after night, while in other parts of the camp, the most serious prayers and exhortations are going on quietly.

A simple and lovable people, whose graces seem to come by nature, and whose vices by training. Some of the best superintendents confirm the first tales of innocence, and Dr. Zachos told me last night that on his plantation, a sequestered one, "they had absolutely no vices." Nor have these men of mine yet shown any worth mentioning; since I took command I have heard of no man intoxicated, and there has been but one small quarrel. I suppose that scarcely a white regiment in the army shows so little swearing. Take the "Progressive Friends" and put them in red trousers, and I verily believe they would fill a guard-house sooner than these men. If camp regulations are violated, it seems to be usually through heedlessness. They love passionately three things besides their spiritual incantations; namely, sugar, home, and tobacco. This last affection brings tears to their eyes, almost, when they speak of their urgent need of pay; they speak of their last-remembered quid as if it were some deceased relative, too early lost, and to be mourned forever. As for sugar, no white man can drink coffee after they have sweetened it to their liking.

A simple and lovable people, whose charms seem natural and whose flaws come from training. Some of the best leaders back up the early stories of their innocence, and Dr. Zachos told me last night that on his secluded plantation, "they had absolutely no vices." Nor have my men shown any worth mentioning; since I took command, I haven't heard of any man being drunk, and there’s been only one minor argument. I doubt there’s a single white regiment in the army that swears less. If you took the "Progressive Friends" and dressed them in red pants, I honestly believe they would end up in the guardhouse faster than these men. When camp rules are broken, it's usually due to carelessness. They passionately love three things besides their spiritual rituals: sugar, home, and tobacco. This last love almost brings them to tears when they talk about their urgent need for pay; they mention their last piece of tobacco as if it were a beloved relative, lost too soon and mourned forever. As for sugar, no white man can drink coffee after they’ve sweetened it to their taste.

I see that the pride which military life creates may cause the plantation trickeries to diminish. For instance, these men make the most admirable sentinels. It is far harder to pass the camp lines at night than in the camp from which I came; and I have seen none of that disposition to connive at the offences of members of one's own company which is so troublesome among white soldiers. Nor are they lazy, either about work or drill; in all respects they seem better material for soldiers than I had dared to hope.

I see that the pride that comes from military life might make the tricks of plantation life fade away. For example, these men make excellent sentinels. It's much tougher to get past the camp lines at night than it was in the camp I left; and I haven't noticed any tendency to overlook the wrongdoings of fellow soldiers, which can be such a nuisance among white soldiers. They're also not lazy when it comes to work or drills; in every way, they seem to be better soldier material than I ever expected.

There is one company in particular, all Florida men, which I certainly think the finest-looking company I ever saw, white or black; they range admirably in size, have remarkable erectness and ease of carriage, and really march splendidly. Not a visitor but notices them; yet they have been under drill only a fortnight, and a part only two days. They have all been slaves, and very few are even mulattoes.

There’s one company in particular, all Florida men, that I truly believe is the best-looking group I’ve ever seen, whether white or black; they range in size beautifully, carry themselves with remarkable straightness and ease, and genuinely march impressively. Every visitor notices them; yet they have only been training for two weeks, and some have only been training for two days. They all used to be slaves, and very few are even mulattoes.

December 4, 1862.

December 4, 1862.

"Dwelling in tents, with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob." This condition is certainly mine,—and with a multitude of patriarchs beside, not to mention Caesar and Pompey, Hercules and Bacchus.

"Dwelling in tents, with Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob." This situation definitely applies to me—and with a whole bunch of patriarchs alongside, not to mention Caesar and Pompey, Hercules and Bacchus.

A moving life, tented at night, this experience has been mine in civil society, if society be civil before the luxurious forest fires of Maine and the Adirondack, or upon the lonely prairies of Kansas. But a stationary tent life, deliberately going to housekeeping under canvas, I have never had before, though in our barrack life at "Camp Wool" I often wished for it.

A life on the move, camping out at night, this has been my experience in society, if you can call it civil before the lavish campfires in Maine and the Adirondacks, or on the empty prairies of Kansas. But I've never experienced a stationary camping life, purposely setting up house under a canvas, even though during our time at "Camp Wool," I often wished for it.

The accommodations here are about as liberal as my quarters there, two wall-tents being placed end to end, for office and bedroom, and separated at will by a "fly" of canvas. There is a good board floor and mop-board, effectually excluding dampness and draughts, and everything but sand, which on windy days penetrates everywhere. The office furniture consists of a good desk or secretary, a very clumsy and disastrous settee, and a remarkable chair. The desk is a bequest of the slaveholders, and the settee of the slaves, being ecclesiastical in its origin, and appertaining to the little old church or "praise-house," now used for commissary purposes. The chair is a composite structure: I found a cane seat on a dust-heap, which a black sergeant combined with two legs from a broken bedstead and two more from an oak-bough. I sit on it with a pride of conscious invention, mitigated by profound insecurity. Bedroom furniture, a couch made of gun-boxes covered with condemned blankets, another settee, two pails, a tin cup, tin basin (we prize any tin or wooden ware as savages prize iron), and a valise, regulation size. Seriously considered, nothing more appears needful, unless ambition might crave another chair for company, and, perhaps, something for a wash-stand higher than a settee.

The accommodations here are pretty liberal, with two wall tents set up end to end, serving as an office and a bedroom, separated by a canvas "fly" whenever needed. There’s a solid wooden floor and baseboards that keep out dampness and drafts, though sand still gets in everywhere on windy days. The office furniture includes a decent desk, a very bulky and awkward settee, and an unusual chair. The desk belonged to the slaveholders, while the settee came from the slaves, originally part of the little old church or "praise-house," which is now used for storage. The chair is a patchwork creation: I found a cane seat on a junk pile, which a black sergeant put together with two legs from a broken bed and two more from a tree branch. I sit on it with a sense of proud creativity, though I feel really unstable. In the bedroom, there's a couch made from ammo boxes covered with old blankets, another settee, two buckets, a tin cup, a tin basin (we value any tin or wooden items like savages value iron), and a regulation-sized suitcase. Seriously, I can’t think of anything else I need, unless ambition calls for another chair for company and maybe a washstand that's taller than a settee.

To-day it rains hard, and the wind quivers through the closed canvas, and makes one feel at sea. All the talk of the camp outside is fused into a cheerful and indistinguishable murmur, pierced through at every moment by the wail of the hovering plover. Sometimes a face, black or white, peers through the entrance with some message. Since the light readily penetrates, though the rain cannot, the tent conveys a feeling of charmed security, as if an invisible boundary checked the pattering drops and held the moaning wind. The front tent I share, as yet, with my adjutant; in the inner apartment I reign supreme, bounded in a nutshell, with no bad dreams.

Today it’s pouring rain, and the wind shudders through the closed canvas, making one feel like they’re at sea. All the chatter from the camp outside blends into a cheerful and indistinct murmur, interrupted now and then by the cry of the lingering plover. Occasionally, a face, whether black or white, peeks through the entrance with a message. Since light easily filters through, even though the rain doesn’t, the tent gives a sense of cozy security, as if an invisible barrier stops the falling drops and holds back the howling wind. I still share the front tent with my adjutant; in the inner space, I rule supreme, contained in a nutshell, without any bad dreams.

In all pleasant weather the outer "fly" is open, and men pass and repass, a chattering throng. I think of Emerson's Saadi, "As thou sittest at thy door, on the desert's yellow floor,"—for these bare sand-plains, gray above, are always yellow when upturned, and there seems a tinge of Orientalism in all our life.

In nice weather, the outer "fly" is open, and people come and go in a lively crowd. I think of Emerson's Saadi, "As you sit at your door, on the desert's yellow floor,"—because these bare sand plains, gray above, are always yellow when disturbed, and there's a hint of Orientalism in our entire life.

Thrice a day we go to the plantation-houses for our meals, camp-arrangements being yet very imperfect. The officers board in different messes, the adjutant and I still clinging to the household of William Washington,—William the quiet and the courteous, the pattern of house-servants, William the noiseless, the observing, the discriminating, who knows everything that can be got, and how to cook it. William and his tidy, lady-like little spouse Hetty—a pair of wedded lovers, if ever I saw one—set our table in their one room, half-way between an un glazed window and a large wood-fire, such as is often welcome. Thanks to the adjutant, we are provided with the social magnificence of napkins; while (lest pride take too high a flight) our table-cloth consists of two "New York Tribunes" and a "Leslie's Pictorial." Every steamer brings us a clean table-cloth. Here are we forever supplied with pork and oysters and sweet potatoes and rice and hominy and corn-bread and milk; also mysterious griddle-cakes of corn and pumpkin; also preserves made of pumpkin-chips, and other fanciful productions of Ethiop art. Mr. E. promised the plantation-superintendents who should come down here "all the luxuries of home," and we certainly have much apparent, if little real variety. Once William produced with some palpitation something fricasseed, which he boldly termed chicken; it was very small, and seemed in some undeveloped condition of ante-natal toughness. After the meal he frankly avowed it for a squirrel.

Three times a day we head to the plantation houses for our meals, as our camp setup is still pretty rough around the edges. The officers eat in different groups, and the adjutant and I are still part of William Washington's household—William, the calm and polite one, who is the ideal house servant, quiet, observant, and discerning, who knows exactly what we can get and how to prepare it. William and his neat, refined wife Hetty—a truly devoted couple—set our table in their one room, positioned between an unglazed window and a large wood fire, which is often a welcome sight. Thanks to the adjutant, we get to enjoy the luxury of napkins; although, to keep our pride in check, our tablecloth is made of two "New York Tribunes" and a "Leslie's Pictorial." Every steamer brings us a fresh tablecloth. Here we’re consistently served pork, oysters, sweet potatoes, rice, hominy, corn bread, and milk; plus, there are some strange griddle cakes made of corn and pumpkin, and preserves made of pumpkin bits, along with other quirky creations of Ethiopian cuisine. Mr. E. promised the plantation supervisors who came down here “all the luxuries of home,” and we certainly have a lot that looks fancy, even if there's not much real variety. Once, William nervously served something he boldly called chicken that was so small it seemed like it was still developing and incredibly tough. After we finished eating, he admitted it was really a squirrel.

December 5, 1862.

December 5, 1862.

Give these people their tongues, their feet, and their leisure, and they are happy. At every twilight the air is full of singing, talking, and clapping of hands in unison. One of their favorite songs is full of plaintive cadences; it is not, I think, a Methodist tune, and I wonder where they obtained a chant of such beauty.

Give these people their voices, their mobility, and their free time, and they are content. Every evening, the air is filled with singing, chatting, and the sound of hands clapping together. One of their favorite songs has a sorrowful melody; I don’t think it’s a Methodist tune, and I’m curious about where they found such a beautiful chant.

 "I can't stay behind, my Lord, I can't stay behind!
  O, my father is gone, my father is gone,
  My father is gone into heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay behind!
  Dere's room enough, room enough,
  Room enough in de heaven for de sojer:
    Can't stay behind!"
"I can't be left behind, my Lord, I can't be left behind!  
Oh, my father is gone, my father is gone,  
My father has gone to heaven, my Lord!  
I can't be left behind!  
There's plenty of room, plenty of room,  
Plenty of room in heaven for the soldier:  
Can't be left behind!"

It always excites them to have us looking on, yet they sing these songs at all times and seasons. I have heard this very song dimly droning on near midnight, and, tracing it into the recesses of a cook-house, have found an old fellow coiled away among the pots and provisions, chanting away with his "Can't stay behind, sinner," till I made him leave his song behind.

It always gets them excited to have us watching, yet they sing these songs at all times and seasons. I’ve heard this very song softly humming near midnight and, following the sound into a cookhouse, found an old guy curled up among the pots and supplies, singing his "Can’t stay behind, sinner," until I made him stop singing.

This evening, after working themselves up to the highest pitch, a party suddenly rushed off, got a barrel, and mounted some man upon it, who said, "Gib anoder song, boys, and I'se gib you a speech." After some hesitation and sundry shouts of "Rise de sing, somebody," and "Stan' up for Jesus, brud-der," irreverently put in by the juveniles, they got upon the John Brown song, always a favorite, adding a jubilant verse which I had never before heard,—"We'll beat Beauregard on de clare battlefield." Then came the promised speech, and then no less than seven other speeches by as many men, on a variety of barrels, each orator being affectionately tugged to the pedestal and set on end by his special constituency. Every speech was good, without exception; with the queerest oddities of phrase and pronunciation, there was an invariable enthusiasm, a pungency of statement, and an understanding of the points at issue, which made them all rather thrilling. Those long-winded slaves in "Among the Pines" seemed rather fictitious and literary in comparison. The most eloquent, perhaps, was Corporal Price Lambkin, just arrived from Fernandina, who evidently had a previous reputation among them. His historical references were very interesting. He reminded them that he had predicted this war ever since Fremont's time, to which some of the crowd assented; he gave a very intelligent account of that Presidential campaign, and then described most impressively the secret anxiety of the slaves in Florida to know all about President Lincoln's election, and told how they all refused to work on the fourth of March, expecting their freedom to date from that day. He finally brought out one of the few really impressive appeals for the American flag that I have ever heard. "Our mas'rs dey hab lib under de flag, dey got dere wealth under it, and ebryting beautiful for dere chilen. Under it dey hab grind us up, and put us in dere pocket for money. But de fus' minute dey tink dat ole flag mean freedom for we colored people, dey pull it right down, and run up de rag ob dere own." (Immense applause). "But we'll neber desert de ole flag, boys, neber; we hab lib under it for eighteen hundred sixty-two years, and we'll die for it now." With which overpowering discharge of chronology-at-long-range, this most effective of stump-speeches closed. I see already with relief that there will be small demand in this regiment for harangues from the officers; give the men an empty barrel for a stump, and they will do their own exhortation.

This evening, after getting really worked up, a group suddenly took off, grabbed a barrel, and put a guy on it who said, "Give me another song, boys, and I’ll give you a speech." After some hesitation and various shouts of "Somebody, rise up and sing," and "Stand up for Jesus, brother," tossed in irreverently by the kids, they started singing the John Brown song, which is always a favorite, adding a joyful verse I had never heard before—"We’ll beat Beauregard on the clear battlefield." Then came the promised speech, followed by seven more speeches from as many men on different barrels, each speaker being lovingly pulled to the makeshift podium and stood up by their supporters. Every speech was good, without exception; with the weirdest phrases and pronunciations, there was a constant enthusiasm, a sharpness of statement, and an understanding of the key issues, which made them all quite exciting. Those long-winded slaves in "Among the Pines" seemed rather fictional and literary in comparison. The most eloquent, maybe, was Corporal Price Lambkin, who had just arrived from Fernandina and clearly had a prior reputation among them. His historical references were really interesting. He reminded everyone that he had predicted this war ever since Fremont's time, to which some of the crowd nodded in agreement; he gave a smart account of that Presidential campaign and then described most impressively the secret anxiety of the slaves in Florida to learn all about President Lincoln's election, explaining how they all refused to work on the fourth of March, expecting their freedom to start that day. He finally delivered one of the few genuinely powerful appeals for the American flag that I've ever heard. "Our masters have lived under the flag, they got their wealth under it, and everything beautiful for their children. Under it, they’ve ground us down and stuffed us into their pockets for money. But the first minute they think that old flag means freedom for us colored people, they pull it right down and put up their own rag." (Huge applause). "But we’ll never abandon the old flag, boys, never; we’ve lived under it for eighteen hundred sixty-two years, and we’ll die for it now." With that impressive stretch of historical perspective, this most effective of stump speeches came to a close. I can already see with relief that there will be little need for officers to give speeches in this regiment; give the men an empty barrel for a platform, and they’ll handle their own encouragement.

December 11, 1862.

December 11, 1862.

Haroun Alraschid, wandering in disguise through his imperial streets, scarcely happened upon a greater variety of groups than I, in my evening strolls among our own camp-fires.

Haroun Alraschid, walking in disguise through his royal streets, barely came across a wider range of groups than I do during my evening walks among our own campfires.

Beside some of these fires the men are cleaning their guns or rehearsing their drill,—beside others, smoking in silence their very scanty supply of the beloved tobacco,—beside others, telling stories and shouting with laughter over the broadest mimicry, in which they excel, and in which the officers come in for a full share. The everlasting "shout" is always within hearing, with its mixture of piety and polka, and its castanet-like clapping of the hands. Then there are quieter prayer-meetings, with pious invocations and slow psalms, "deaconed out" from memory by the leader, two lines at a time, in a sort of wailing chant. Elsewhere, there are conversazioni around fires, with a woman for queen of the circle,—her Nubian face, gay headdress, gilt necklace, and white teeth, all resplendent in the glowing light. Sometimes the woman is spelling slow monosyllables out of a primer, a feat which always commands all ears,—they rightly recognizing a mighty spell, equal to the overthrowing of monarchs, in the magic assonance of cat, hat, pat, bat, and the rest of it. Elsewhere, it is some solitary old cook, some aged Uncle Tiff, with enormous spectacles, who is perusing a hymn-book by the light of a pine splinter, in his deserted cooking booth of palmetto leaves. By another fire there is an actual dance, red-legged soldiers doing right-and-left, and "now-lead-de-lady-ober," to the music of a violin which is rather artistically played, and which may have guided the steps, in other days, of Barnwells and Hugers. And yonder is a stump-orator perched on his barrel, pouring out his exhortations to fidelity in war and in religion. To-night for the first time I have heard an harangue in a different strain, quite saucy, sceptical, and defiant, appealing to them in a sort of French materialistic style, and claiming some personal experience of warfare. "You don't know notin' about it, boys. You tink you's brave enough; how you tink, if you stan' clar in de open field,—here you, and dar de Secesh? You's got to hab de right ting inside o' you. You must hab it 'served [preserved] in you, like dese yer sour plums dey 'serve in de barr'l; you's got to harden it down inside o' you, or it's notin'." Then he hit hard at the religionists: "When a man's got de sperit ob de Lord in him, it weakens him all out, can't hoe de corn." He had a great deal of broad sense in his speech; but presently some others began praying vociferously close by, as if to drown this free-thinker, when at last he exclaimed, "I mean to fight de war through, an' die a good sojer wid de last kick, dat's my prayer!" and suddenly jumped off the barrel. I was quite interested at discovering this reverse side of the temperament, the devotional side preponderates so enormously, and the greatest scamps kneel and groan in their prayer-meetings with such entire zest. It shows that there is some individuality developed among them, and that they will not become too exclusively pietistic.

Beside some of these fires, the men are cleaning their guns or practicing their drills—next to others, they’re silently smoking their meager supply of much-loved tobacco—near others, they’re sharing stories and laughing loudly at their impressive mimicry, which they excel at, and where the officers join in enthusiastically. The constant "shout" is always heard, blending piety with polka and the clapping of hands like castanets. Then there are quieter prayer meetings, filled with earnest invocations and slow psalms, “deaconed out” from memory by the leader, two lines at a time, in a wailing chant. Elsewhere, there are conversations around fires, with a woman as the queen of the circle—her Nubian face, colorful headdress, gold necklace, and bright white teeth all shining in the warm light. Sometimes, the woman is slowly sounding out simple words from a primer, a skill that captures everyone’s attention—they rightly see the power in those syllables, as strong as kings being overthrown, in the magical rhythm of cat, hat, pat, bat, and the rest. Elsewhere, an elderly cook, some old Uncle Tiff with giant glasses, is reading a hymn book by the light of a pine splinter in his empty cooking area made of palmetto leaves. By another fire, there’s actual dancing, red-legged soldiers moving to the music of a violin that’s played quite well, which may have once guided the steps of Barnwells and Hugers. And over there’s a stump-orator sitting on a barrel, passionately urging loyalty in war and faith. Tonight, for the first time, I heard a speech with a different tone—quite cheeky, skeptical, and defiant, appealing to them in a sort of French materialistic way, claiming personal experience in warfare. "You don’t know anything about it, boys. You think you’re brave enough; how do you think it’ll be, standing out in the open field—here you are, and there’s the Secesh? You’ve got to have the right stuff inside you. You must keep it preserved in you, like those sour plums they keep in the barrel; you’ve got to harden it down inside, or it’s nothing." Then he had a go at the religious folks: "When a man’s got the spirit of the Lord in him, it weakens him completely, he can’t even hoe corn." He spoke with a lot of common sense; but soon, some others started praying loudly nearby, trying to drown out this free thinker, when he finally exclaimed, "I mean to fight the war through, and die a good soldier with the last kick, that’s my prayer!" and suddenly jumped off the barrel. I was fascinated to see this side of their character; even though the devotional side is so dominant, the biggest troublemakers kneel and groan in prayer meetings with such enthusiasm. It shows they have developed some individuality and won’t become too overly pious.

Their love of the spelling-book is perfectly inexhaustible,—they stumbling on by themselves, or the blind leading the blind, with the same pathetic patience which they carry into everything. The chaplain is getting up a schoolhouse, where he will soon teach them as regularly as he can. But the alphabet must always be a very incidental business in a camp.

Their love for the spelling book is truly endless—they keep exploring it on their own, or it's like the blind leading the blind, with the same touching patience they bring to everything. The chaplain is setting up a school where he will teach them as regularly as possible. But the alphabet will always be a pretty minor focus in a camp.

December 14.

December 14th.

Passages from prayers in the camp:—

Passages from prayers in the camp:—

"Let me so lib dat when I die I shall hab manners, dat I shall know what to say when I see my Heabenly Lord."

"Let me live in such a way that when I die, I will have manners, and I will know what to say when I meet my Heavenly Lord."

"Let me lib wid de musket in one hand an' de Bible in de oder,—dat if I die at de muzzle ob de musket, die in de water, die on de land, I may know I hab de bressed Jesus in my hand, an' hab no fear."

"Let me live with the musket in one hand and the Bible in the other—so that if I die by the muzzle of the musket, die in the water, or die on the land, I can know I have the blessed Jesus in my hand and have no fear."

"I hab lef my wife in de land o' bondage; my little ones dey say eb'ry night, Whar is my fader? But when I die, when de bressed mornin' rises, when I shall stan' in de glory, wid one foot on de water an' one foot on de land, den, O Lord, I shall see my wife an' my little chil'en once more."

"I have left my wife in the land of bondage; my little ones ask every night, 'Where is my father?' But when I die, when the blessed morning rises, when I stand in glory, with one foot on the water and one foot on the land, then, O Lord, I will see my wife and my little children once more."

These sentences I noted down, as best I could, beside the glimmering camp-fire last night. The same person was the hero of a singular little contre-temps at a funeral in the afternoon. It was our first funeral. The man had died in hospital, and we had chosen a picturesque burial-place above the river, near the old church, and beside a little nameless cemetery, used by generations of slaves. It was a regular military funeral, the coffin being draped with the American flag, the escort marching behind, and three volleys fired over the grave. During the services there was singing, the chaplain deaconing out the hymn in their favorite way. This ended, he announced his text,—"This poor man cried, and the Lord heard him, and delivered him out of all his trouble." Instantly, to my great amazement, the cracked voice of the chorister was uplifted, intoning the text, as if it were the first verse of another hymn. So calmly was it done, so imperturbable were all the black countenances, that I half began to conjecture that the chaplain himself intended it for a hymn, though I could imagine no prospective rhyme for trouble unless it were approximated by debbil, which is, indeed, a favorite reference, both with the men and with his Reverence. But the chaplain, peacefully awaiting, gently repeated his text after the chant, and to my great relief the old chorister waived all further recitative, and let the funeral discourse proceed.

I wrote down these sentences as best as I could next to the flickering campfire last night. The same person was the center of a strange little incident at a funeral that afternoon. It was our first funeral. The man had passed away in the hospital, and we had picked a beautiful burial spot above the river, near the old church, right by a small nameless cemetery used by generations of slaves. It was a traditional military funeral, with the coffin covered by the American flag, an escort marching behind it, and three volleys fired over the grave. During the service, there was singing, with the chaplain leading the hymn in their usual way. When that was over, he announced his text—“This poor man cried, and the Lord heard him, and delivered him out of all his trouble.” To my surprise, the cracked voice of the chorister suddenly lifted up, reciting the text as if it were the first line of another hymn. It was done so calmly, and all the black faces were so composed, that I started to wonder if the chaplain actually meant it as a hymn, even though I couldn’t think of any rhyme for “trouble” except perhaps “debbil,” which is, in fact, a popular term both with the men and his Reverence. But the chaplain, patiently waiting, gently repeated his text after the chant, and to my great relief, the old chorister stopped any further recitation and let the funeral message continue.

Their memories are a vast bewildered chaos of Jewish history and biography; and most of the great events of the past, down to the period of the American Revolution, they instinctively attribute to Moses. There is a fine bold confidence in all their citations, however, and the record never loses piquancy in their hands, though strict accuracy may suffer. Thus, one of my captains, last Sunday, heard a colored exhorter at Beaufort proclaim, "Paul may plant, and may polish wid water, but it won't do," in which the sainted Apollos would hardly have recognized himself.

Their memories are a tangled mess of Jewish history and biography, and they instinctively link most of the significant events of the past, all the way to the American Revolution, to Moses. However, there's a bold confidence in all their references, and the stories never lose their charm, even if accuracy takes a hit. For example, one of my captains heard a Black preacher in Beaufort last Sunday proclaim, "Paul may plant, and may polish wid water, but it won't do," a statement that the revered Apollos would hardly recognize.

Just now one of the soldiers came to me to say that he was about to be married to a girl in Beaufort, and would I lend him a dollar and seventy-five cents to buy the wedding outfit? It seemed as if matrimony on such moderate terms ought to be encouraged in these days; and so I responded to the appeal.

Just now, one of the soldiers came to me and said he was about to marry a girl in Beaufort and asked if I could lend him a dollar and seventy-five cents to buy his wedding outfit. It felt like marriage on such a budget should be supported these days, so I decided to help him out.

December 16.

December 16th.

To-day a young recruit appeared here, who had been the slave of Colonel Sammis, one of the leading Florida refugees. Two white companions came with him, who also appeared to be retainers of the Colonel, and I asked them to dine. Being likewise refugees, they had stories to tell, and were quite agreeable: one was English born, the other Floridian, a dark, sallow Southerner, very well bred. After they had gone, the Colonel himself appeared, I told him that I had been entertaining his white friends, and after a while he quietly let out the remark,—

Today, a young recruit showed up here, who had been the slave of Colonel Sammis, one of the prominent Florida refugees. Two white companions accompanied him, who also seemed to be associates of the Colonel, and I invited them to dinner. Being refugees as well, they had stories to share and were quite pleasant: one was born in England, and the other was a dark, sallow Southerner from Florida, who was well-mannered. After they left, the Colonel himself arrived, and I told him that I had been hosting his white friends, and after a bit, he casually mentioned—

"Yes, one of those white friends of whom you speak is a boy raised on one of my plantations; he has travelled with me to the North, and passed for white, and he always keeps away from the negroes."

"Yeah, one of those white friends you mentioned is a guy I raised on one of my plantations; he’s traveled with me up North and passed as white, and he always stays away from Black people."

Certainly no such suspicion had ever crossed my mind.

Certainly, I had never suspected anything like that.

I have noticed one man in the regiment who would easily pass for white,—a little sickly drummer, aged fifty at least, with brown eyes and reddish hair, who is said to be the son of one of our commodores. I have seen perhaps a dozen persons as fair, or fairer, among fugitive slaves, but they were usually young children. It touched me far more to see this man, who had spent more than half a lifetime in this low estate, and for whom it now seemed too late to be anything but a "nigger." This offensive word, by the way, is almost as common with them as at the North, and far more common than with well-bred slaveholders. They have meekly accepted it. "Want to go out to de nigger houses, Sah," is the universal impulse of sociability, when they wish to cross the lines. "He hab twenty house-servants, an' two hundred head o' nigger," is a still more degrading form of phrase, in which the epithet is limited to the field-hands, and they estimated like so many cattle. This want of self-respect of course interferes with the authority of the non-commissioned officers, which is always difficult to sustain, even in white regiments. "He needn't try to play de white man ober me," was the protest of a soldier against his corporal the other day. To counteract this I have often to remind them that they do not obey their officers because they are white, but because they are their officers; and guard duty is an admirable school for this, because they readily understand that the sergeant or corporal of the guard has for the time more authority than any commissioned officer who is not on duty. It is necessary also for their superiors to treat the non-commissioned officers with careful courtesy, and I often caution the line officers never to call them "Sam" or "Will," nor omit the proper handle to their names. The value of the habitual courtesies of the regular army is exceedingly apparent with these men: an officer of polished manners can wind them round his finger, while white soldiers seem rather to prefer a certain roughness. The demeanor of my men to each other is very courteous, and yet I see none of that sort of upstart conceit which is sometimes offensive among free negroes at the North, the dandy-barber strut. This is an agreeable surprise, for I feared that freedom and regimentals would produce precisely that.

I’ve noticed one guy in the regiment who could easily pass for white—a somewhat frail drummer, at least fifty years old, with brown eyes and reddish hair, who’s said to be the son of one of our commodores. I’ve seen maybe a dozen people as fair, or even fairer, among runaway slaves, but they were usually young children. It affected me much more to see this man, who has spent over half his life in this low position, and for whom it now seems too late to be anything but a “nigger.” This offensive term, by the way, is just as common for them as it is in the North, and far more so than among well-bred slaveholders. They have meekly accepted it. “Want to go out to the nigger houses, sir,” is a common expression when they wish to cross the lines. “He has twenty house-servants and two hundred niggers,” is an even more demeaning way to put it, where the term is limited to field hands, and they’re valued like cattle. This lack of self-respect, of course, undermines the authority of the non-commissioned officers, which is always hard to maintain, even in white regiments. “He doesn't need to try to act like he’s better than me,” was a soldier’s complaint against his corporal the other day. To combat this, I often remind them that they don’t obey their officers because they are white, but because they are their officers; and guard duty is a great way to teach this, as they easily understand that the sergeant or corporal of the guard has more authority than any commissioned officer who isn’t on duty. It’s also important for their superiors to treat the non-commissioned officers with respect, so I frequently advise the line officers never to call them “Sam” or “Will,” nor to drop the proper titles before their names. The importance of consistent courtesies from the regular army is very clear with these men: an officer with good manners can easily win them over, while white soldiers seem to prefer a bit of roughness. The way my men treat each other is very polite, and yet I don’t see that kind of arrogant attitude that can sometimes be found among free black people in the North, that dandy-barber swagger. This is a pleasant surprise, as I was worried that freedom and uniforms would create exactly that.

They seem the world's perpetual children, docile, gay, and lovable, in the midst of this war for freedom on which they have intelligently entered. Last night, before "taps," there was the greatest noise in camp that I had ever heard, and I feared some riot. On going out, I found the most tumultuous sham-fight proceeding in total darkness, two companies playing like boys, beating tin cups for drums. When some of them saw me they seemed a little dismayed, and came and said, beseechingly,—"Gunnel, Sah, you hab no objection to we playin', Sah?"—which objection I disclaimed; but soon they all subsided, rather to my regret, and scattered merrily. Afterward I found that some other officer had told them that I considered the affair too noisy, so that I felt a mild self-reproach when one said, "Cunnel, wish you had let we play a little longer, Sah." Still I was not sorry, on the whole; for these sham-fights between companies would in some regiments lead to real ones, and there is a latent jealousy here between the Florida and South Carolina men, which sometimes makes me anxious.

They seem like the world’s eternal kids, cheerful, happy, and lovable, in the midst of this battle for freedom that they’ve joined with intelligence. Last night, before "taps," there was the loudest noise in camp I’d ever heard, and I worried it might turn into a riot. When I stepped outside, I found a chaotic mock battle happening in complete darkness, with two companies playing around like boys, banging tin cups as drums. When some of them noticed me, they looked a bit startled and came over, asking pleadingly, “Gunnel, Sah, you don’t mind us playing, Sah?”—which I assured them I didn’t. But soon they calmed down, to my disappointment, and scattered happily. Later, I learned that another officer had told them I thought it was too noisy, so I felt a bit guilty when one of them said, “Cunnel, I wish you had let us play a little longer, Sah.” Still, I wasn’t too upset overall; these mock battles between companies could sometimes lead to real ones, and there's a hidden rivalry here between the Florida and South Carolina guys that occasionally makes me uneasy.

The officers are more kind and patient with the men than I should expect, since the former are mostly young, and drilling tries the temper; but they are aided by hearty satisfaction in the results already attained. I have never yet heard a doubt expressed among the officers as to the superiority of these men to white troops in aptitude for drill and discipline, because of their imitativeness and docility, and the pride they take in the service. One captain said to me to-day, "I have this afternoon taught my men to load-in-nine-times, and they do it better than we did it in my former company in three months." I can personally testify that one of our best lieutenants, an Englishman, taught a part of his company the essential movements of the "school for skirmishers" in a single lesson of two hours, so that they did them very passably, though I feel bound to discourage such haste. However, I "formed square" on the third battalion drill. Three fourths of drill consist of attention, imitation, and a good ear for time; in the other fourth, which consists of the application of principles, as, for instance, performing by the left flank some movement before learned by the right, they are perhaps slower than better educated men. Having belonged to five different drill-clubs before entering the army, I certainly ought to know something of the resources of human awkwardness, and I can honestly say that they astonish me by the facility with which they do things. I expected much harder work in this respect.

The officers are more kind and patient with the men than I expected, especially since most of them are young and drilling can test anyone's patience. However, they are motivated by the genuine satisfaction in the results they’ve achieved so far. I’ve never heard any officers doubt the superiority of these men compared to white troops when it comes to their ability to learn and follow orders, thanks to their eagerness to imitate and their willingness to learn, as well as the pride they take in their service. One captain told me today, "This afternoon, I taught my men how to load in nine times, and they do it better than my previous company did in three months." I can personally vouch that one of our best lieutenants, an Englishman, taught part of his company the key movements of the "school for skirmishers" in just a single two-hour lesson, and they performed them quite well, although I feel the need to discourage such hurried teaching. That said, I "formed square" during the third battalion drill. Three-quarters of drilling is about attention, imitation, and having a good sense of timing; in the other quarter, which involves applying principles—like executing a movement previously learned on the right flank now on the left—they might be slower than better-educated men. Having been part of five different drill clubs before joining the army, I ought to have a good grasp of human awkwardness, and I can honestly say they amaze me with how easily they pick things up. I was expecting much tougher going in this regard.

The habit of carrying burdens on the head gives them erectness of figure, even where physically disabled. I have seen a woman, with a brimming water-pail balanced on her head, or perhaps a cup, saucer, and spoon, stop suddenly, turn round, stoop to pick up a missile, rise again, fling it, light a pipe, and go through many evolutions with either hand or both, without spilling a drop. The pipe, by the way, gives an odd look to a well-dressed young girl on Sunday, but one often sees that spectacle. The passion for tobacco among our men continues quite absorbing, and I have piteous appeals for some arrangement by which they can buy it on credit, as we have yet no sutler. Their imploring, "Cunnel, we can't lib widout it, Sah," goes to my heart; and as they cannot read, I cannot even have the melancholy satisfaction of supplying them with the excellent anti-tobacco tracts of Mr. Trask.

The habit of carrying things on their heads gives people a straight posture, even if they're physically impaired. I've seen a woman with a full water bucket balanced on her head, or maybe a cup, saucer, and spoon, stop suddenly, turn around, bend down to pick up something, stand back up, throw it, light a pipe, and perform various tasks with one hand or both, without spilling a drop. By the way, seeing a well-dressed young girl on a Sunday with a pipe looks a bit odd, but it’s a common sight. The obsession with tobacco among our men is quite strong, and I've received sad requests for a way for them to buy it on credit since we still don't have a sutler. Their desperate pleas, "Cunnel, we can't lib widout it, Sah," really touch my heart; and since they can't read, I can't even find comfort in giving them the excellent anti-tobacco pamphlets from Mr. Trask.

December 19.

December 19th.

Last night the water froze in the adjutant's tent, but not in mine. To-day has been mild and beautiful. The blacks say they do not feel the cold so much as the white officers do, and perhaps it is so, though their health evidently suffers more from dampness. On the other hand, while drilling on very warm days, they have seemed to suffer more from the heat than their officers. But they dearly love fire, and at night will always have it, if possible, even on the minutest scale,—a mere handful of splinters, that seems hardly more efficacious than a friction-match. Probably this is a natural habit for the short-lived coolness of an out-door country; and then there is something delightful in this rich pine, which burns like a tar-barrel. It was, perhaps, encouraged by the masters, as the only cheap luxury the slaves had at hand.

Last night, the water froze in the adjutant's tent, but not in mine. Today has been mild and beautiful. The Black soldiers say they don't feel the cold as much as the white officers do, and that might be true, even though their health clearly suffers more from dampness. On the flip side, while drilling on very warm days, they seem to struggle more with the heat than their officers do. But they really love fire, and at night, they always want it if possible, even in the smallest amounts—a mere handful of splinters that barely seems more effective than a match. This is probably a natural habit for coping with the brief coolness of an outdoor environment; plus, there’s something delightful about this rich pine that burns like a tar-barrel. It was probably encouraged by the masters as the only cheap luxury the slaves had available.

As one grows more acquainted with the men, their individualities emerge; and I find, first their faces, then their characters, to be as distinct as those of whites. It is very interesting the desire they show to do their duty, and to improve as soldiers; they evidently think about it, and see the importance of the thing; they say to me that we white men cannot stay and be their leaders always and that they must learn to depend on themselves, or else relapse into their former condition.

As one gets to know the men better, their personalities come to light; and I realize, first their faces and then their characters, are as unique as those of white people. It's fascinating how eager they are to fulfill their responsibilities and grow as soldiers; they clearly think about it and understand its significance. They tell me that we white people can't always be their leaders and that they need to learn to rely on themselves, or they risk falling back into their old ways.

Beside the superb branch of uneatable bitter oranges which decks my tent-pole, I have to-day hung up a long bough of finger-sponge, which floated to the river-bank. As winter advances, butterflies gradually disappear: one species (a Vanessa) lingers; three others have vanished since I came. Mocking-birds are abundant, but rarely sing; once or twice they have reminded me of the red thrush, but are inferior, as I have always thought. The colored people all say that it will be much cooler; but my officers do not think so, perhaps because last winter was so unusually mild,—with only one frost, they say.

Next to the beautiful branch of inedible bitter oranges that decorates my tent pole, today I've hung up a long branch of finger-sponge that drifted to the riverbank. As winter progresses, butterflies gradually disappear: one species (a Vanessa) sticks around; three others have gone since I arrived. Mockingbirds are plentiful, but they rarely sing; a few times they’ve reminded me of the red thrush, but I still think they’re not as good. The local people all say it will get a lot cooler, but my officers doubt that, maybe because last winter was so unusually warm—only one frost, they say.

December 20.

December 20th.

Philoprogenitiveness is an important organ for an officer of colored troops; and I happen to be well provided with it. It seems to be the theory of all military usages, in fact, that soldiers are to be treated like children; and these singular persons, who never know their own age till they are past middle life, and then choose a birthday with such precision,—"Fifty year old, Sah, de fus' last April,"—prolong the privilege of childhood.

Philoprogenitiveness is a vital trait for an officer of colored troops, and I happen to possess it in abundance. It appears to be the general principle of military conduct that soldiers should be treated like children. These unique individuals, who remain unaware of their age until they reach middle age and then select a birthday with such accuracy—“Fifty years old, sir, since last April”—continue to enjoy the benefits of childhood.

I am perplexed nightly for countersigns,—their range of proper names is so distressingly limited, and they make such amazing work of every new one. At first, to be sure, they did not quite recognize the need of any variation: one night some officer asked a sentinel whether he had the countersign yet, and was indignantly answered, "Should tink I hab 'em, hab 'em for a fortnight"; which seems a long epoch for that magic word to hold out. To-night I thought I would have "Fredericksburg," in honor of Burnside's reported victory, using the rumor quickly, for fear of a contradiction. Later, in comes a captain, gets the countersign for his own use, but presently returns, the sentinel having pronounced it incorrect. On inquiry, it appears that the sergeant of the guard, being weak in geography, thought best to substitute the more familiar word, "Crockery-ware"; which was, with perfect gravity, confided to all the sentinels, and accepted without question. O life! what is the fun of fiction beside thee?

I’m puzzled every night by the countersigns—they have such a disturbingly limited range of proper names, and they make such a big deal out of every new one. At first, they didn’t really see the need for any change: one night, an officer asked a sentinel if he had the countersign yet, and the sentinel replied indignantly, “Should I think I have it? I’ve had it for a fortnight,” which seems like a long time for that magic word to last. Tonight, I thought I’d use “Fredericksburg,” in honor of Burnside’s reported victory, using the rumor quickly to avoid any contradiction. Later, a captain comes in, gets the countersign for himself, but then comes back because the sentinel said it was incorrect. Upon asking, I found out that the sergeant of the guard, not being great with geography, decided it would be better to replace it with the more familiar term, “Crockery-ware,” which was, quite seriously, shared with all the sentinels, and accepted without question. Oh life! What’s the fun of fiction compared to you?

I should think they would suffer and complain these cold nights; but they say nothing, though there is a good deal of coughing. I should fancy that the scarlet trousers must do something to keep them warm, and wonder that they dislike them so much, when they are so much like their beloved fires. They certainly multiply firelight in any case. I often notice that an infinitesimal flame, with one soldier standing by it, looks like quite a respectable conflagration, and it seems as if a group of them must dispel dampness.

I would think they would be suffering and complaining during these cold nights, but they don’t say anything, even though there’s a lot of coughing. I’d imagine the bright red trousers help keep them warm, so I wonder why they dislike them so much when they resemble their cherished fires. They definitely create more firelight, anyway. I often see that a tiny flame with one soldier standing next to it looks like a pretty decent blaze, and it seems like a group of them would be enough to chase away the dampness.

December 21.

December 21st.

To a regimental commander no book can be so fascinating as the consolidated Morning Report, which is ready about nine, and tells how many in each company are sick, absent, on duty, and so on. It is one's newspaper and daily mail; I never grow tired of it. If a single recruit has come in, I am always eager to see how he looks on paper.

To a regimental commander, no document can be as captivating as the consolidated Morning Report, which is ready around nine and details how many in each company are sick, absent, on duty, and so forth. It's like a newspaper and daily correspondence; I never get tired of it. If even one recruit has joined, I'm always excited to see how he appears on paper.

To-night the officers are rather depressed by rumors of Burnside's being defeated, after all. I am fortunately equable and undepressible; and it is very convenient that the men know too little of the events of the war to feel excitement or fear. They know General Saxton and me,—"de General" and "de Gunnel,"—and seem to ask no further questions. We are the war. It saves a great deal of trouble, while it lasts, this childlike confidence; nevertheless, it is our business to educate them to manhood, and I see as yet no obstacle.

Tonight, the officers are feeling pretty down about the rumors that Burnside has been defeated after all. Luckily, I’m calm and can’t be easily upset; it’s also convenient that the men know so little about the events of the war that they don’t feel any excitement or fear. They know General Saxton and me—“de General” and “de Gunnel”—and don’t seem to ask any further questions. We represent the war. This childlike trust saves a lot of hassle for now, but it’s still our job to help them grow up, and I don't see any obstacles to that yet.

As for the rumor, the world will no doubt roll round, whether Burnside is defeated or succeeds.

As for the rumor, the world will keep moving forward, whether Burnside wins or loses.

Christmas Day.

Christmas Day.

    "We'll fight for liberty
  Till de Lord shall call us home;
    We'll soon be free
  Till de Lord shall call us home."
"We'll fight for freedom  
  Until the Lord calls us home;  
    We'll soon be free  
  Until the Lord calls us home."

This is the hymn which the slaves at Georgetown, South Carolina, were whipped for singing when President Lincoln was elected. So said a little drummer-boy, as he sat at my tent's edge last night and told me his story; and he showed all his white teeth as he added, "Dey tink 'de Lord' meant for say de Yankees."

This is the song that the slaves in Georgetown, South Carolina, were punished for singing when President Lincoln was elected. That's what a young drummer boy told me as he sat at the edge of my tent last night, sharing his story; he flashed all his white teeth as he added, "They think 'the Lord' meant to say the Yankees."

Last night, at dress-parade, the adjutant read General Saxton's Proclamation for the New Year's Celebration. I think they understood it, for there was cheering in all the company-streets afterwards. Christmas is the great festival of the year for this people; but, with New Year's coming after, we could have no adequate programme for to-day, and so celebrated Christmas Eve with pattern simplicity. We omitted, namely, the mystic curfew which we call "taps," and let them sit up and burn their fires, and have their little prayer-meetings as late as they desired; and all night, as I waked at intervals, I could hear them praying and "shouting" and clattering with hands and heels. It seemed to make them very happy, and appeared to be at least an innocent Christmas dissipation, as compared with some of the convivialities of the "superior race" hereabouts.

Last night, at dress parade, the adjutant read General Saxton's Proclamation for the New Year's Celebration. I think they got it because there was cheering in all the company streets afterward. Christmas is the biggest holiday of the year for these people, but with New Year's coming right after, we couldn’t have a proper program for today. So, we kept Christmas Eve simple. We skipped the mystical curfew we call "taps" and let them stay up, light their fires, and have their little prayer meetings as late as they wanted. All night, as I woke up at intervals, I could hear them praying, "shouting," and making noise with their hands and feet. It seemed to make them really happy and looked like a harmless Christmas celebration compared to some of the festivities of the "superior race" around here.

December 26.

December 26th.

The day passed with no greater excitement for the men than target-shooting, which they enjoyed. I had the private delight of the arrival of our much-desired surgeon and his nephew, the captain, with letters and news from home. They also bring the good tidings that General Saxton is not to be removed, as had been reported.

The day went by without any excitement for the men other than target shooting, which they enjoyed. I had the personal pleasure of the arrival of our much-wanted surgeon and his nephew, the captain, along with letters and news from home. They also brought the good news that General Saxton is not being removed, as had been reported.

Two different stands of colors have arrived for us, and will be presented at New Year's,—one from friends in New York, and the other from a lady in Connecticut. I see that "Frank Leslie's Illustrated Weekly" of December 20th has a highly imaginative picture of the muster-in of our first company, and also of a skirmish on the late expedition.

Two different sets of colors have arrived for us, and they will be shown at New Year's—one from friends in New York, and the other from a woman in Connecticut. I noticed that "Frank Leslie's Illustrated Weekly" from December 20th has a very creative picture of the muster-in of our first company, as well as a skirmish from the recent expedition.

I must not forget the prayer overheard last night by one of the captains: "O Lord! when I tink ob dis Kismas and las' year de Kismas. Las' Kismas he in de Secesh, and notin' to eat but grits, and no salt in 'em. Dis year in de camp, and too much victual!" This "too much" is a favorite phrase out of their grateful hearts, and did not in this case denote an excess of dinner,—as might be supposed,—but of thanksgiving.

I can’t forget the prayer one of the captains overheard last night: "O Lord! when I think about this Christmas and last year’s Christmas. Last Christmas he was with the Secesh, and all he had to eat was grits, with no salt in them. This year he’s in camp, and there’s too much food!" This "too much" is a favorite expression from their grateful hearts, and in this case, it didn’t mean there was an excess of dinner—as one might think—but an abundance of thanksgiving.

December 29.

December 29th.

Our new surgeon has begun his work most efficiently: he and the chaplain have converted an old gin-house into a comfortable hospital, with ten nice beds and straw pallets. He is now, with a hearty professional faith, looking round for somebody to put into it. I am afraid the regiment will accommodate him; for, although he declares that these men do not sham sickness, as he expected, their catarrh is an unpleasant reality. They feel the dampness very much, and make such a coughing at dress-parade, that I have urged him to administer a dose of cough-mixture, all round, just before that pageant. Are the colored race tough? is my present anxiety; and it is odd that physical insufficiency, the only discouragement not thrown in our way by the newspapers, is the only discouragement which finds any place in our minds. They are used to sleeping indoors in winter, herded before fires, and so they feel the change. Still, the regiment is as healthy as the average, and experience will teach us something.*

Our new surgeon has started his work very efficiently: he and the chaplain have turned an old gin-house into a comfortable hospital, with ten nice beds and straw mattresses. He is now, with a strong professional belief, looking for someone to put in it. I'm afraid the regiment will help him out; because, while he says these men aren't faking illness like he thought, their coughs are a real problem. They really feel the dampness, and they cough so much at dress parades that I've suggested he give everyone a dose of cough syrup right before that event. My current worry is whether the colored troops are tough? It's strange that physical weakness, the only discouragement not mentioned by the newspapers, is the only thing that weighs on our minds. They're used to sleeping inside during winter, gathered around fires, so they definitely notice the change. Still, the regiment is about as healthy as average, and experience will teach us something.*

* A second winter's experience removed all this solicitude, for they learned to take care of themselves. During the first February the sick-list averaged about ninety, during the second about thirty, this being the worst month in the year for blacks.

* A second winter's experience removed all this worry, as they learned to take care of themselves. During the first February, the sick list averaged around ninety, while during the second, it was about thirty, which is the worst month of the year for black individuals.

December 30.

Dec 30.

On the first of January we are to have a slight collation, ten oxen or so, barbecued,—or not properly barbecued, but roasted whole. Touching the length of time required to "do" an ox, no two housekeepers appear to agree. Accounts vary from two hours to twenty-four. We shall happily have enough to try all gradations of roasting, and suit all tastes, from Miss A.'s to mine. But fancy me proffering a spare-rib, well done, to some fair lady! What ever are we to do for spoons and forks and plates? Each soldier has his own, and is sternly held responsible for it by "Army Regulations." But how provide for the multitude? Is it customary, I ask you, to help to tenderloin with one's fingers? Fortunately, the Major is to see to that department. Great are the advantages of military discipline: for anything perplexing, detail a subordinate.

On January 1st, we're going to have a small get-together with about ten oxen, barbecued—or rather, roasted whole. When it comes to how long it takes to cook an ox, no two cooks seem to agree. Estimates range from two hours to twenty-four. Luckily, we'll have enough to experiment with all types of roasting to satisfy everyone's preferences, from Miss A.'s to mine. But just imagine me offering a well-done spare rib to some lady! What are we going to do about spoons, forks, and plates? Every soldier has their own and must be accountable for it according to "Army Regulations." But how do we cater to everyone? Is it normal, I ask, to eat tenderloin with your fingers? Fortunately, the Major is in charge of that. The benefits of military discipline are significant: for anything confusing, just assign it to a subordinate.

New Year's Eve.

New Year's Eve.

My housekeeping at home is not, perhaps, on any very extravagant scale. Buying beefsteak, I usually go to the extent of two or three pounds. Yet when, this morning at daybreak, the quartermaster called to inquire how many cattle I would have killed for roasting, I turned over in bed, and answered composedly, "Ten,—and keep three to be fatted."

My housework at home isn’t exactly over the top. When I buy steak, I usually get two or three pounds. But when the quartermaster called this morning at dawn to ask how many cattle I’d have butchered for roasting, I just rolled over in bed and calmly replied, “Ten—and keep three to fatten.”

Fatted, quotha! Not one of the beasts at present appears to possess an ounce of superfluous flesh. Never were seen such lean kine. As they swing on vast spits, composed of young trees, the firelight glimmers through their ribs, as if they were great lanterns. But no matter, they are cooking,—nay, they are cooked.

Fatted, you say! Not one of the animals right now seems to have even a bit of extra fat. I’ve never seen such thin cows. As they roast on huge spits made from young trees, the firelight shines through their ribs, as if they were big lanterns. But it doesn’t matter; they are cooking—actually, they are already cooked.

One at least is taken off to cool, and will be replaced tomorrow to warm up. It was roasted three hours, and well done, for I tasted it. It is so long since I tasted fresh beef that forgetfulness is possible; but I fancied this to be successful. I tried to imagine that I liked the Homeric repast, and certainly the whole thing has been far more agreeable than was to be expected. The doubt now is, whether I have made a sufficient provision for my household. I should have roughly guessed that ten beeves would feed as many million people, it has such a stupendous sound; but General Saxton predicts a small social party of five thousand, and we fear that meat will run short, unless they prefer bone. One of the cattle is so small, we are hoping it may turn out veal.

One is being taken off to cool and will be replaced tomorrow to warm up. It was roasted for three hours and was well done, because I tasted it. It has been so long since I had fresh beef that I might forget how it should taste, but I thought this one was good. I tried to convince myself that I liked the Homeric meal, and honestly, it has been much more enjoyable than I expected. The question now is whether I’ve made enough provision for my household. I would have roughly guessed that ten cows could feed a million people, since that sounds impressive; however, General Saxton predicts a small gathering of five thousand, and we’re worried that we might run out of meat unless they prefer bone. One of the cattle is so small that we're hoping it might turn out to be veal.

For drink we aim at the simple luxury of molasses-and-water, a barrel per company, ten in all. Liberal housekeepers may like to know that for a barrel of water we allow three gallons of molasses, half a pound of ginger, and a quart of vinegar,—this last being a new ingredient for my untutored palate, though all the rest are amazed at my ignorance. Hard bread, with more molasses, and a dessert of tobacco, complete the festive repast, destined to cheer, but not inebriate.

For drinks, we go for the simple luxury of molasses and water, one barrel per group, which makes ten in total. Generous hosts might want to know that for a barrel of water, we use three gallons of molasses, half a pound of ginger, and a quart of vinegar—this last one being a new ingredient for my untrained taste buds, though everyone else is shocked at my lack of knowledge. Hard bread, with extra molasses, and a dessert of tobacco wrap up the festive meal, meant to uplift, but not to intoxicate.

On this last point, of inebriation, this is certainly a wonderful camp. For us it is absolutely omitted from the list of vices. I have never heard of a glass of liquor in the camp, nor of any effort either to bring it in or to keep it out. A total absence of the circulating medium might explain the abstinence,—not that it seems to have that effect with white soldiers,—but it would not explain the silence. The craving for tobacco is constant, and not to be allayed, like that of a mother for her children; but I have never heard whiskey even wished for, save on Christmas-Day, and then only by one man, and he spoke with a hopeless ideal sighing, as one alludes to the Golden Age. I am amazed at this total omission of the most inconvenient of all camp appetites. It certainly is not the result of exhortation, for there has been no occasion for any, and even the pledge would scarcely seem efficacious where hardly anybody can write.

On this final point about drinking, this camp is truly something special. For us, it's completely off the list of vices. I've never heard of anyone having a drink here, nor any attempts to sneak it in or keep it out. The complete lack of alcohol might explain the sobriety—not that this seems to apply to white soldiers—but it doesn't explain the silence. The need for tobacco is constant and unquenchable, like a mother’s longing for her children; but I've only heard one man mention a desire for whiskey, and that was on Christmas Day, when he spoke with a wistful sigh, as if referring to a lost Golden Age. I'm astonished by this complete lack of interest in what is usually the most troublesome of camp cravings. It's definitely not due to any kind of moral persuasion, since there hasn't been a need for that, and even a pledge would hardly do any good when most people can't even write.

I do not think there is a great visible eagerness for tomorrow's festival: it is not their way to be very jubilant over anything this side of the New Jerusalem. They know also that those in this Department are nominally free already, and that the practical freedom has to be maintained, in any event, by military success. But they will enjoy it greatly, and we shall have a multitude of people.

I don’t see a lot of excitement for tomorrow's festival. It's not really their style to be overly joyful about anything before reaching the New Jerusalem. They also understand that people in this Department are technically free already, but that real freedom has to be upheld, anyway, through military success. However, they will enjoy it a lot, and we’re expecting a big crowd.

January 1, 1863 (evening).

January 1, 1863 (evening).

A happy New Year to civilized people,—mere white folks. Our festival has come and gone, with perfect success, and our good General has been altogether satisfied. Last night the great fires were kept smouldering in the pit, and the beeves were cooked more or less, chiefly more,—during which time they had to be carefully watched, and the great spits turned by main force. Happy were the merry fellows who were permitted to sit up all night, and watch the glimmering flames that threw a thousand fantastic shadows among the great gnarled oaks. And such a chattering as I was sure to hear whenever I awoke that night!

A happy New Year to civilized people—just the white folks. Our celebration has come and gone, and it was a complete success, leaving our good General fully satisfied. Last night, the big fires were kept smoldering in the pit, and the beef was cooked to varying degrees, mostly overcooked—during which time they had to be carefully monitored, and the large spits turned with a lot of effort. The lucky guys who got to stay up all night were happy to watch the flickering flames that cast a thousand whimsical shadows among the massive gnarled oaks. And the chatter I was sure to hear whenever I woke up that night was quite something!

My first greeting to-day was from one of the most stylish sergeants, who approached me with the following little speech, evidently the result of some elaboration:—

My first greeting today was from one of the most stylish sergeants, who came up to me with this little speech, clearly a result of some planning:—

"I tink myself happy, dis New Year's Day, for salute my own Cunnel. Dis day las' year I was servant to a Gunnel ob Secesh; but now I hab de privilege for salute my own Cunnel."

"I think to myself how happy I am this New Year's Day, because I can greet my own Colonel. Last year on this day, I was a servant to a General of the Confederacy; but now I have the privilege of greeting my own Colonel."

That officer, with the utmost sincerity, reciprocated the sentiment.

That officer genuinely returned the sentiment.

About ten o'clock the people began to collect by land, and also by water,—in steamers sent by General Saxton for the purpose; and from that time all the avenues of approach were thronged. The multitude were chiefly colored women, with gay handkerchiefs on their heads, and a sprinkling of men, with that peculiarly respectable look which these people always have on Sundays and holidays. There were many white visitors also,—ladies on horseback and in carriages, superintendents and teachers, officers, and cavalry-men. Our companies were marched to the neighborhood of the platform, and allowed to sit or stand, as at the Sunday services; the platform was occupied by ladies and dignitaries, and by the band of the Eighth Maine, which kindly volunteered for the occasion; the colored people filled up all the vacant openings in the beautiful grove around, and there was a cordon of mounted visitors beyond. Above, the great live-oak branches and their trailing moss; beyond the people, a glimpse of the blue river.

About ten o'clock, people started gathering both on land and by water, with steamers provided by General Saxton for this purpose; from that point on, all the pathways were crowded. The crowd was mostly Black women wearing colorful handkerchiefs on their heads, with a few men who had that distinct respectable appearance these folks usually have on Sundays and holidays. There were many white visitors too—ladies on horseback and in carriages, superintendents and teachers, officers, and cavalry soldiers. Our troops were marched to the area near the platform and allowed to sit or stand, just like during Sunday services; the platform was occupied by women and dignitaries, along with the band from the Eighth Maine, which kindly volunteered for the event. The Black community filled all the empty spaces in the lovely grove around, with a line of mounted visitors beyond. Above, the sprawling live-oak branches and their hanging moss; beyond the crowd, a glimpse of the blue river.

The services began at half past eleven o'clock, with prayer by our chaplain, Mr. Fowler, who is always, on such occasions, simple, reverential, and impressive. Then the President's Proclamation was read by Dr. W. H. Brisbane, a thing infinitely appropriate, a South Carolinian addressing South Carolinians; for he was reared among these very islands, and here long since emancipated his own slaves. Then the colors were presented to us by the Rev. Mr. French, a chaplain who brought them from the donors in New York. All this was according to the programme. Then followed an incident so simple, so touching, so utterly unexpected and startling, that I can scarcely believe it on recalling, though it gave the keynote to the whole day. The very moment the speaker had ceased, and just as I took and waved the flag, which now for the first time meant anything to these poor people, there suddenly arose, close beside the platform, a strong male voice (but rather cracked and elderly), into which two women's voices instantly blended, singing, as if by an impulse that could no more be repressed than the morning note of the song-sparrow.—

The services started at 11:30, with a prayer led by our chaplain, Mr. Fowler, who is always simple, respectful, and powerful on these occasions. Then, Dr. W. H. Brisbane read the President's Proclamation, which was extremely fitting—a South Carolinian speaking to South Carolinians; he grew up on these very islands and had freed his own slaves long ago. Next, Rev. Mr. French, a chaplain, presented the colors, having brought them from the donors in New York. Everything went according to plan. Then came an incident that was so simple, so moving, and so completely unexpected and surprising that I can hardly believe it now, even though it set the tone for the entire day. The moment the speaker finished and as I took the flag, which now for the first time meant something to these poor people, a strong male voice (though somewhat cracked and elderly) suddenly rose up right next to the platform, instantly joined by two women’s voices singing, as if compelled by an impulse that couldn’t be held back any more than the morning call of the song sparrow.

  "My Country, 'tis of thee,
  Sweet land of liberty,
  Of thee I sing!"
"My Country, it's for you,  
Sweet land of freedom,  
It's you I sing!"

People looked at each other, and then at us on the platform, to see whence came this interruption, not set down in the bills. Firmly and irrepressibly the quavering voices sang on, verse after verse; others of the colored people joined in; some whites on the platform began, but I motioned them to silence. I never saw anything so electric; it made all other words cheap; it seemed the choked voice of a race at last unloosed. Nothing could be more wonderfully unconscious; art could not have dreamed of a tribute to the day of jubilee that should be so affecting; history will not believe it; and when I came to speak of it, after it was ended, tears were everywhere. If you could have heard how quaint and innocent it was! Old Tiff and his children might have sung it; and close before me was a little slave-boy, almost white, who seemed to belong to the party, and even he must join in. Just think of it!—the first day they had ever had a country, the first flag they had ever seen which promised anything to their people, and here, while mere spectators stood in silence, waiting for my stupid words, these simple souls burst out in their lay, as if they were by their own hearths at home! When they stopped, there was nothing to do for it but to speak, and I went on; but the life of the whole day was in those unknown people's song.

People stared at each other, then at us on the stage, trying to figure out where this unexpected interruption was coming from, which hadn’t been listed in the program. The trembling voices sang on, firmly and without restraint, verse after verse; others from the crowd joined in; some white people on the stage started singing too, but I signaled for them to stop. I had never witnessed anything so powerful; it made all other words feel insignificant; it seemed like the long-suppressed voice of a race finally set free. Nothing could have been more beautifully genuine; no artist could have imagined a tribute to the day of freedom that would be so moving; history will have a hard time believing it; and when I had the chance to talk about it afterward, tears were everywhere. Just imagine how charming and innocent it was! Old Tiff and his kids could have sung it; and right in front of me was a little slave boy, almost white, who seemed to belong to the group, and even he had to join in. Just think!—the first day they had ever had a country, the first flag they had ever seen that promised anything for their people, and here, while mere onlookers stood silently, waiting for my dull words, these simple souls erupted into their song, as if they were gathered around their own fireplaces at home! When they finished, I had no choice but to speak, so I carried on; but the heart of the entire day resided in those unknown people’s song.

Receiving the flags, I gave them into the hands of two fine-looking men, jet black, as color-guard, and they also spoke, and very effectively,—Sergeant Prince Rivers and Corporal Robert Sutton. The regiment sang "Marching Along," and then General Saxton spoke, in his own simple, manly way, and Mrs. Francis D. Gage spoke very sensibly to the women, and Judge Stickney, from Florida, added something; then some gentleman sang an ode, and the regiment the John Brown song, and then they went to their beef and molasses. Everything was very orderly, and they seemed to have a very gay time. Most of the visitors had far to go, and so dispersed before dress-parade, though the band stayed to enliven it. In the evening we had letters from home, and General Saxton had a reception at his house, from which I excused myself; and so ended one of the most enthusiastic and happy gatherings I ever knew. The day was perfect, and there was nothing but success.

Receiving the flags, I handed them to two good-looking men, dressed in black as the color guard. They spoke very effectively—Sergeant Prince Rivers and Corporal Robert Sutton. The regiment sang "Marching Along," and then General Saxton spoke in his simple, straightforward way. Mrs. Francis D. Gage addressed the women sensibly, and Judge Stickney from Florida added a few words; then a gentleman sang a song, followed by the regiment singing the John Brown song, and after that, they moved on to their beef and molasses. Everything was very orderly, and they seemed to have a great time. Most of the visitors had far to travel, so they left before the dress parade, although the band stayed to make it lively. In the evening, we received letters from home, and General Saxton hosted a reception at his house, which I opted out of; thus ended one of the most enthusiastic and joyful gatherings I had ever experienced. The day was perfect, and everything was a success.

I forgot to say, that, in the midst of the services, it was announced that General Fremont was appointed Commander-in-Chief,—an announcement which was received with immense cheering, as would have been almost anything else, I verily believe, at that moment of high tide. It was shouted across by the pickets above,—a way in which we often receive news, but not always trustworthy.

I forgot to mention that during the services, it was announced that General Fremont had been appointed Commander-in-Chief. This news was met with huge cheers, just like anything else probably would have been at that high point. The pickets above shouted the news—this is often how we receive information, though it’s not always reliable.

January 3, 1863.

January 3, 1863.

Once, and once only, thus far, the water has frozen in my tent; and the next morning showed a dense white frost outside. We have still mocking-birds and crickets and rosebuds, and occasional noonday baths in the river, though the butterflies have vanished, as I remember to have observed in Fayal, after December. I have been here nearly six weeks without a rainy day; one or two slight showers there have been, once interrupting a drill, but never dress-parade. For climate, by day, we might be among the isles of Greece,—though it may be my constant familiarity with the names of her sages which suggests that impression. For instance, a voice just now called, near my tent,—"Cato, whar's Plato?" The men have somehow got the impression that it is essential to the validity of a marriage that they should come to me for permission, just as they used to go to the master; and I rather encourage these little confidences, because it is so entertaining to hear them. "Now, Cunnel," said a faltering swam the other day, "I want for get me one good lady," which I approved, especially the limitation as to number. Afterwards I asked one of the bridegroom's friends whether he thought it a good match. "O yes, Cunnel," said he, in all the cordiality of friendship, "John's gwine for marry Venus." I trust the goddess will prove herself a better lady than she appeared during her previous career upon this planet. But this naturally suggests the isles of Greece again.

Once, and only once so far, the water has frozen in my tent; and the next morning revealed a thick layer of frost outside. We still have mockingbirds and crickets and rosebuds, along with some midday swims in the river, though the butterflies have disappeared, just like I noticed in Fayal after December. I've been here for nearly six weeks without a rainy day; there have been one or two light showers, once interrupting a drill, but never a dress parade. During the day, the weather feels like we're among the Greek islands—though that might just be my constant familiarity with the names of their philosophers that gives me that impression. For example, just now, someone called out near my tent, “Cato, where’s Plato?” The men somehow believe it's essential for their marriage to get my permission, just like they used to go to the master; and I don’t mind these little confessions because they’re so entertaining to hear. “Now, Colonel,” said a nervous groom the other day, “I want to get me a good lady,” which I approved of, especially the limit on how many. Later, I asked one of the groom's friends if he thought it was a good match. “Oh yes, Colonel,” he said, full of the warmth of friendship, “John's going to marry Venus.” I hope the goddess proves to be a better partner than she seemed during her last time on this planet. But that naturally brings to mind the Greek islands again.

January 7.

January 7

On first arriving, I found a good deal of anxiety among the officers as to the increase of desertions, that being the rock on which the "Hunter Regiment" split. Now this evil is very nearly stopped, and we are every day recovering the older absentees. One of the very best things that have happened to us was the half-accidental shooting of a man who had escaped from the guard-house, and was wounded by a squad sent in pursuit. He has since died; and this very eve-rung another man, who escaped with him, came and opened the door of my tent, after being five days in the woods, almost without food. His clothes were in rags, and he was nearly starved, poor foolish fellow, so that we can almost dispense with further punishment. Severe penalties would be wasted on these people, accustomed as they have been to the most violent passions on the part of white men; but a mild inexorableness tells on them, just as it does on any other children. It is something utterly new to me, and it is thus far perfectly efficacious. They have a great deal of pride as soldiers, and a very little of severity goes a great way, if it be firm and consistent. This is very encouraging.

Upon first arriving, I noticed a lot of anxiety among the officers about the rising number of desertions, which caused the "Hunter Regiment" to break apart. Thankfully, that problem is almost resolved, and we’re getting back the older absentees every day. One of the best things that happened to us was the somewhat accidental shooting of a man who had escaped from the guardhouse; he was wounded by a team sent after him. He has since died, and just this evening another man, who ran away with him, came and opened the door of my tent after spending five days in the woods, nearly without food. His clothes were torn, and he was almost starving, poor guy, so we can pretty much do without any further punishment. Harsh penalties would be pointless on these individuals, as they are used to experiencing the most extreme emotions from white men; however, a gentle but firm approach affects them, just as it does with any other children. This is something completely new for me, and so far, it's working perfectly. They take a lot of pride in being soldiers, and a little severity goes a long way if it’s consistent and strong. This is very encouraging.

The single question which I asked of some of the plantation superintendents, on the voyage, was, "Do these people appreciate justice?" If they did it was evident that all the rest would be easy. When a race is degraded beyond that point it must be very hard to deal with them; they must mistake all kindness for indulgence, all strictness for cruelty. With these freed slaves there is no such trouble, not a particle: let an officer be only just and firm, with a cordial, kindly nature, and he has no sort of difficulty. The plantation superintendents and teachers have the same experience, they say; but we have an immense advantage in the military organization, which helps in two ways: it increases their self-respect, and it gives us an admirable machinery for discipline, thus improving both the fulcrum and the lever.

The one question I asked some of the plantation managers during the trip was, "Do these people understand justice?" If they did, everything else would be straightforward. When a group is pushed down beyond that point, it becomes very challenging to handle them; they often confuse kindness with leniency and strictness with cruelty. With these freed slaves, there’s no such issue at all: if an officer is just and firm, while also being warm and kind, he encounters no problems. The plantation managers and teachers share this experience, they say; but we have a huge advantage with the military organization, which helps in two ways: it boosts their self-esteem and gives us excellent tools for discipline, thus enhancing both the fulcrum and the lever.

The wounded man died in the hospital, and the general verdict seemed to be, "Him brought it on heself." Another soldier died of pneumonia on the same day, and we had the funerals in the evening. It was very impressive. A dense mist came up, with a moon behind it, and we had only the light of pine-splinters, as the procession wound along beneath the mighty, moss-hung branches of the ancient grove. The groups around the grave, the dark faces, the red garments, the scattered lights, the misty boughs, were weird and strange. The men sang one of their own wild chants. Two crickets sang also, one on either side, and did not cease their little monotone, even when the three volleys were fired above the graves. Just before the coffins were lowered, an old man whispered to me that I must have their position altered,—the heads must be towards the west; so it was done,—though they are in a place so veiled in woods that either rising or setting sun will find it hard to spy them.

The wounded man died in the hospital, and everybody seemed to agree, "He brought it on himself." Another soldier died of pneumonia that same day, and we had the funerals in the evening. It was very moving. A thick fog rolled in, with a moon shining behind it, and we only had the light from pine splinters as the procession moved along under the huge, moss-covered branches of the ancient grove. The groups around the grave, the dark faces, the red clothing, the scattered lights, the misty branches created a strange and eerie atmosphere. The men sang one of their own wild songs. Two crickets chirped as well, one on each side, and didn’t stop their constant sound even when the three rifle volleys were fired over the graves. Just before the coffins were lowered, an old man leaned over and told me to change their position—the heads needed to face west; so it was done—although they’re in a spot so hidden by trees that either the rising or setting sun would struggle to find them.

We have now a good regimental hospital, admirably arranged in a deserted gin-house,—a fine well of our own digging, within the camp lines,—a full allowance of tents, all floored,—a wooden cook-house to every company, with sometimes a palmetto mess-house beside,—a substantial wooden guard-house, with a fireplace five feet "in de clar," where the men off duty can dry themselves and sleep comfortably in bunks afterwards. We have also a great circular school-tent, made of condemned canvas, thirty feet in diameter, and looking like some of the Indian lodges I saw in Kansas. We now meditate a regimental bakery. Our aggregate has increased from four hundred and ninety to seven hundred and forty, besides a hundred recruits now waiting at St. Augustine, and we have practised through all the main movements in battalion drill.

We now have a great regimental hospital, nicely set up in an abandoned bar, a nice well we dug ourselves within the camp lines, a full supply of tents with proper floors, a wooden cookhouse for each company, sometimes with a palmetto mess house next to it, and a sturdy wooden guardhouse with a five-foot fireplace where the off-duty men can dry off and sleep comfortably in bunks afterward. We also have a large circular school tent made from old canvas, thirty feet wide, which looks like some of the Native American lodges I saw in Kansas. We're now considering setting up a regimental bakery. Our total has grown from four hundred and ninety to seven hundred and forty, plus a hundred recruits currently waiting in St. Augustine, and we've practiced all the main movements in battalion drill.

Affairs being thus prosperous, and yesterday having been six weeks since my last and only visit to Beaufort, I rode in, glanced at several camps, and dined with the General. It seemed absolutely like re-entering the world; and I did not fully estimate my past seclusion till it occurred to me, as a strange and novel phenomenon, that the soldiers at the other camps were white.

Affairs being so good, and it having been six weeks since my last and only visit to Beaufort, I rode in, looked at several camps, and had dinner with the General. It felt like I was stepping back into the world; I didn't really realize how isolated I'd been until it struck me, as something strange and new, that the soldiers at the other camps were white.

January 8.

January 8th.

This morning I went to Beaufort again, on necessary business, and by good luck happened upon a review and drill of the white regiments. The thing that struck me most was that same absence of uniformity, in minor points, that I noticed at first in my own officers. The best regiments in the Department are represented among my captains and lieutenants, and very well represented too; yet it has cost much labor to bring them to any uniformity in their drill. There is no need of this; for the prescribed "Tactics" approach perfection; it is never left discretionary in what place an officer shall stand, or in what words he shall give his order. All variation would seem to imply negligence. Yet even West Point occasionally varies from the "Tactics,"—as, for instance, in requiring the line officers to face down the line, when each is giving the order to his company. In our strictest Massachusetts regiments this is not done.

This morning I went to Beaufort again for some important business, and luckily I came across a review and drill of the white regiments. What struck me the most was the same lack of uniformity, in minor details, that I first noticed in my own officers. The best regiments in the Department are represented among my captains and lieutenants, and they’re well represented too; yet it has taken a lot of effort to achieve any level of uniformity in their drill. There shouldn't be any need for this, as the prescribed "Tactics" are nearly perfect; it’s never left to an officer's discretion where they should stand or what words they should use to issue their orders. Any variation might suggest negligence. Yet even West Point sometimes deviates from the "Tactics," like when it requires line officers to face down the line while giving orders to their company. In our strictest Massachusetts regiments, this isn't practiced.

It needs an artist's eye to make a perfect drill-master. Yet the small points are not merely a matter of punctilio; for, the more perfectly a battalion is drilled on the parade-ground the more quietly it can be handled in action. Moreover, the great need of uniformity is this: that, in the field, soldiers of different companies, and even of different regiments, are liable to be intermingled, and a diversity of orders may throw everything into confusion. Confusion means Bull Run.

It takes an artist's eye to be a great drill instructor. The little details aren't just about following rules; the better a battalion is trained on the parade ground, the smoother it can function in battle. Also, the main reason for needing uniformity is that, in the field, soldiers from different companies and even different regiments can get mixed together, and inconsistent orders can create chaos. Chaos leads to disaster.

I wished my men at the review to-day; for, amidst all the rattling and noise of artillery and the galloping of cavalry, there was only one infantry movement that we have not practised, and that was done by only one regiment, and apparently considered quite a novelty, though it is easily taught,

I checked in with my guys at the review today; because, with all the noise from artillery and the cavalry charging around, there was only one infantry maneuver we hadn't practiced, and it was performed by just one regiment, which was seen as a bit of a novelty, even though it can be taught easily.

—forming square by Casey's method: forward on centre. It is really just as easy to drill a regiment as a company,

—forming square by Casey's method: forward on center. It's really just as easy to drill a regiment as it is a company,

—perhaps easier, because one has more time to think; but it is just as essential to be sharp and decisive, perfectly clearheaded, and to put life into the men. A regiment seems small when one has learned how to handle it, a mere handful of men; and I have no doubt that a brigade or a division would soon appear equally small. But to handle either judiciously, ah, that is another affair!

—maybe easier since there's more time to think; but it's just as important to be sharp and decisive, completely clear-headed, and to inspire the men. A regiment feels small when you know how to manage it, just a few men; and I'm sure that a brigade or a division would soon seem just as small. But handling either wisely, ah, that's a whole different story!

So of governing; it is as easy to govern a regiment as a school or a factory, and needs like qualities, system, promptness, patience, tact; moreover, in a regiment one has the aid of the admirable machinery of the army, so that I see very ordinary men who succeed very tolerably.

So when it comes to governing, it’s just as easy to manage a regiment as it is to run a school or a factory, and it requires similar qualities: organization, quick decision-making, patience, and tact. Additionally, in a regiment, there’s the benefit of the efficient structure of the army, which allows even quite average individuals to perform fairly well.

Reports of a six months' armistice are rife here, and the thought is deplored by all. I cannot believe it; yet sometimes one feels very anxious about the ultimate fate of these poor people. After the experience of Hungary, one sees that revolutions may go backward; and the habit of injustice seems so deeply impressed upon the whites, that it is hard to believe in the possibility of anything better. I dare not yet hope that the promise of the President's Proclamation will be kept. For myself I can be indifferent, for the experience here has been its own daily and hourly reward; and the adaptedness of the freed slaves for drill and discipline is now thoroughly demonstrated, and must soon be universally acknowledged. But it would be terrible to see this regiment disbanded or defrauded.

There are widespread reports of a six-month ceasefire, and everyone here is upset by the idea. I can’t believe it; yet sometimes I feel really anxious about what will happen to these poor people. After what happened in Hungary, it’s clear that revolutions can regress; and the pattern of injustice seems so ingrained in the white population that it’s hard to imagine anything better happening. I’m not ready to hope that the promises made in the President's Proclamation will actually be fulfilled. Personally, I can remain indifferent because my experience here has been its own daily reward; and the ability of the freed slaves to be trained and disciplined has now been fully proven and will soon be recognized by everyone. But it would be awful to see this regiment broken up or cheated.

January 12.

January 12th.

Many things glide by without time to narrate them. On Saturday we had a mail with the President's Second Message of Emancipation, and the next day it was read to the men. The words themselves did not stir them very much, because they have been often told that they were free, especially on New Year's Day, and, being unversed in politics, they do not understand, as well as we do, the importance of each additional guaranty. But the chaplain spoke to them afterwards very effectively, as usual; and then I proposed to them to hold up their hands and pledge themselves to be faithful to those still in bondage. They entered heartily into this, and the scene was quite impressive, beneath the great oak-branches. I heard afterwards that only one man refused to raise his hand, saying bluntly that his wife was out of slavery with him, and he did not care to fight. The other soldiers of his company were very indignant, and shoved him about among them while marching back to their quarters, calling him "Coward." I was glad of their exhibition of feeling, though it is very possible that the one who had thus the moral courage to stand alone among his comrades might be more reliable, on a pinch, than some who yielded a more ready assent. But the whole response, on their part, was very hearty, and will be a good thing to which to hold them hereafter, at any time of discouragement or demoralization,—which was my chief reason for proposing it. With their simple natures it is a great thing to tie them to some definite committal; they never forget a marked occurrence, and never seem disposed to evade a pledge.

Many things pass by without time to talk about them. On Saturday, we received the President's Second Message of Emancipation, and the next day it was read to the men. The words themselves didn't really move them much because they've often been told they were free, especially on New Year's Day, and since they aren't familiar with politics, they don't fully grasp the significance of each additional guarantee. But the chaplain spoke to them afterwards very effectively, as usual; and then I suggested they raise their hands and pledge to be faithful to those still in bondage. They eagerly participated, and the scene was quite powerful beneath the large oak branches. I later heard that only one man refused to raise his hand, bluntly saying that his wife was free with him, and he didn't want to fight. The other soldiers in his company were very upset and pushed him around while marching back to their quarters, calling him "Coward." I appreciated their show of feelings, although it's possible that the one who had the moral courage to stand alone might be more dependable in a tight spot than some who readily went along. But their overall response was very enthusiastic, and it will be a good thing to hold them accountable to this commitment in times of discouragement or demoralization, which was my main reason for suggesting it. With their straightforward nature, it's significant to tie them to a clear commitment; they never forget a meaningful event and don't seem inclined to avoid a pledge.

It is this capacity of honor and fidelity which gives me such entire faith in them as soldiers. Without it all their religious demonstration would be mere sentimentality. For instance, every one who visits the camp is struck with their bearing as sentinels. They exhibit, in this capacity, not an upstart conceit, but a steady, conscientious devotion to duty. They would stop their idolized General Saxton, if he attempted to cross their beat contrary to orders: I have seen them. No feeble or incompetent race could do this. The officers tell many amusing instances of this fidelity, but I think mine the best.

It’s this ability to honor and stay loyal that makes me completely trust them as soldiers. Without it, all their expressions of faith would just be empty gestures. For example, anyone who visits the camp notices their demeanor as sentinels. They show, in this role, not arrogance but a consistent, dedicated commitment to their duty. They would stop their beloved General Saxton if he tried to cross their post against orders: I’ve seen them do it. No weak or incompetent group could pull this off. The officers share many funny stories about this loyalty, but I think mine is the best.

It was very dark the other night, an unusual thing here, and the rain fell in torrents; so I put on my India-rubber suit, and went the rounds of the sentinels, incognito, to test them. I can only say that I shall never try such an experiment again and have cautioned my officers against it. Tis a wonder I escaped with life and limb,—such a charging of bayonets and clicking of gun-locks. Sometimes I tempted them by refusing to give any countersign, but offering them a piece of tobacco, which they could not accept without allowing me nearer than the prescribed bayonet's distance. Tobacco is more than gold to them, and it was touching to watch the struggle in their minds; but they always did their duty at last, and I never could persuade them. One man, as if wishing to crush all his inward vacillation at one fell stroke, told me stoutly that he never used tobacco, though I found next day that he loved it as much as any one of them. It seemed wrong thus to tamper with their fidelity; yet it was a vital matter to me to know how far it could be trusted, out of my sight. It was so intensely dark that not more than one or two knew me, even after I had talked with the very next sentinel, especially as they had never seen me in India-rubber clothing, and I can always disguise my voice. It was easy to distinguish those who did make the discovery; they were always conscious and simpering when their turn came; while the others were stout and irreverent till I revealed myself, and then rather cowed and anxious, fearing to have offended.

It was really dark the other night, which is unusual here, and the rain was pouring down; so I put on my rubber suit and went around checking on the sentinels, blending in to see how they were doing. I can only say that I will never try that again and have warned my officers against it. It’s a wonder I got away without injury—there was so much bayonet charging and gun-lock clicking. Sometimes I tempted them by refusing to give any countersign, but offering them a piece of tobacco, which they couldn’t take without letting me get closer than the allowed distance. Tobacco is worth more than gold to them, and it was quite touching to see the struggle on their faces; but they always did their duty in the end, and I could never persuade them. One guy, as if trying to overcome all his uncertainty in one go, firmly told me that he never used tobacco, although I found out the next day that he liked it as much as anyone. It felt wrong to test their loyalty like that; still, it was crucial for me to know how much I could trust them when I wasn’t around. It was so dark that only one or two recognized me, even after I talked to the very next sentinel, especially since they had never seen me in a rubber suit, and I can always disguise my voice. It was easy to tell who figured it out; they were always aware and smiling when their turn came; while the others were serious and unrefined until I revealed myself, then they were both intimidated and worried, fearing they had upset me.

It rained harder and harder, and when I had nearly made the rounds I had had enough of it, and, simply giving the countersign to the challenging sentinel, undertook to pass within the lines.

It rained harder and harder, and by the time I had almost finished my rounds, I had enough of it. So, I just signaled the guard, and decided to go inside the lines.

"Halt!" exclaimed this dusky man and brother, bringing down his bayonet, "de countersign not correck."

"Halt!" exclaimed this dark-skinned man and brother, lowering his bayonet, "the password is not correct."

Now the magic word, in this case, was "Vicksburg," in honor of a rumored victory. But as I knew that these hard names became quite transformed upon their lips, "Carthage" being familiarized into Cartridge, and "Concord" into Corn-cob, how could I possibly tell what shade of pronunciation my friend might prefer for this particular proper name?

Now the magic word, in this case, was "Vicksburg," in honor of a rumored victory. But since I knew that these difficult names often got twisted on their lips, with "Carthage" turning into Cartridge and "Concord" becoming Corn-cob, how could I possibly guess what way my friend might want to pronounce this particular name?

"Vicksburg," I repeated, blandly, but authoritatively, endeavoring, as zealously as one of Christy's Minstrels, to assimilate my speech to any supposed predilection of the Ethiop vocal organs.

"Vicksburg," I repeated, casually but with confidence, trying, as enthusiastically as one of Christy's Minstrels, to adjust my speech to what I imagined the preferences of the African American vocal style might be.

"Halt dar! Countersign not correck," was the only answer.

"Halt there! The countersign is not correct," was the only response.

The bayonet still maintained a position which, in a military point of view, was impressive.

The bayonet still held a position that, from a military perspective, was impressive.

I tried persuasion, orthography, threats, tobacco, all in vain. I could not pass in. Of course my pride was up; for was I to defer to an untutored African on a point of pronunciation? Classic shades of Harvard, forbid! Affecting scornful indifference, I tried to edge away, proposing to myself to enter the camp at some other point, where my elocution would be better appreciated. Not a step could I stir.

I tried to persuade him, spell things out, threaten him, and even offer him tobacco, but nothing worked. I just couldn't get in. My pride was in the way; after all, why should I take advice on pronunciation from someone who wasn't educated? The classic ideals of Harvard say no way! To mask my frustration, I pretended to be indifferent and tried to back off, planning to enter the camp from another angle where my speaking skills would be recognized. But I couldn't move an inch.

"Halt!" shouted my gentleman again, still holding me at his bayonet's point, and I wincing and halting.

"Halt!" my gentleman shouted again, still keeping me at the point of his bayonet, and I winced and stopped.

I explained to him the extreme absurdity of this proceeding, called his attention to the state of the weather, which, indeed, spoke for itself so loudly that we could hardly hear each other speak, and requested permission to withdraw. The bayonet, with mute eloquence, refused the application.

I pointed out to him how utterly ridiculous this situation was, drew his attention to the weather, which was so loud that we could barely hear each other, and asked for permission to leave. The bayonet, without saying a word, denied the request.

There flashed into my mind, with more enjoyment in the retrospect than I had experienced at the time, an adventure on a lecturing tour in other years, when I had spent an hour in trying to scramble into a country tavern, after bed-time, on the coldest night of winter. On that occasion I ultimately found myself stuck midway in the window, with my head in a temperature of 80 degrees, and my heels in a temperature of -10 degrees, with a heavy windowsash pinioning the small of my back. However, I had got safe out of that dilemma, and it was time to put an end to this one,

There came to mind, with more enjoyment in looking back than I had felt at the time, a memory from a past lecture tour when I had spent an hour trying to get into a country tavern after bedtime on the coldest night of winter. At that moment, I found myself stuck halfway in the window, with my head feeling like 80 degrees and my feet freezing at -10 degrees, and a heavy window sash pinning my lower back. Despite that, I managed to escape that situation, and it was time to end this one too.

"Call the corporal of the guard," said I at last, with dignity, unwilling to make a night of it or to yield my incognito.

"Call the corporal of the guard," I said finally, with dignity, not wanting to make a night of it or reveal my identity.

"Corporal ob de guard!" he shouted, lustily,—"Post Number Two!" while I could hear another sentinel chuckling with laughter. This last was a special guard, placed over a tent, with a prisoner in charge. Presently he broke silence.

"Corporal of the guard!" he shouted enthusiastically, "Post Number Two!" while I could hear another guard laughing in the background. This last one was a special guard, stationed over a tent with a prisoner in custody. Soon, he spoke up.

"Who am dat?" he asked, in a stage whisper. "Am he a buckra [white man]?"

"Who is that?" he asked, in a quiet whisper. "Is he a white man?"

"Dunno whether he been a buckra or not," responded, doggedly, my Cerberus in uniform; "but I's bound to keep him here till de corporal ob de guard come."

"Dunno whether he was a white man or not," replied my Cerberus in uniform stubbornly; "but I'm required to keep him here until the corporal of the guard arrives."

Yet, when that dignitary arrived, and I revealed myself, poor Number Two appeared utterly transfixed with terror, and seemed to look for nothing less than immediate execution. Of course I praised his fidelity, and the next day complimented him before the guard, and mentioned him to his captain; and the whole affair was very good for them all. Hereafter, if Satan himself should approach them in darkness and storm, they will take him for "de Cunnel," and treat him with special severity.

Yet, when that important person showed up, and I revealed myself, poor Number Two looked completely frozen with fear, as if he was expecting to be executed right away. Of course, I praised his loyalty, and the next day I complimented him in front of the guards and mentioned him to his captain; the whole situation turned out to be quite beneficial for everyone involved. From now on, if the devil himself were to approach them in the dark and during a storm, they would mistake him for "the Colonel" and treat him with extra harshness.

January 13.

January 13th.

In many ways the childish nature of this people shows itself. I have just had to make a change of officers in a company which has constantly complained, and with good reason, of neglect and improper treatment. Two excellent officers have been assigned to them; and yet they sent a deputation to me in the evening, in a state of utter wretchedness. "We's bery grieved dis evening, Cunnel; 'pears like we couldn't bear it, to lose de Cap'n and de Lieutenant, all two togeder." Argument was useless; and I could only fall back on the general theory, that I knew what was best for them, which had much more effect; and I also could cite the instance of another company, which had been much improved by a new captain, as they readily admitted. So with the promise that the new officers should not be "savage to we," which was the one thing they deprecated, I assuaged their woes. Twenty-four hours have passed, and I hear them singing most merrily all down that company street.

In many ways, the childish nature of these people is evident. I just had to change the officers in a company that has constantly complained, and rightly so, about neglect and poor treatment. Two excellent officers have been assigned to them; yet, they sent a delegation to me in the evening, looking completely miserable. "We’re really upset tonight, Colonel; it feels like we couldn't handle losing the Captain and the Lieutenant all at once." Arguing was pointless, so I had to rely on the general idea that I knew what was best for them, which had a much greater impact. I also pointed out another company that had improved a lot with a new captain, which they readily agreed with. So, with the promise that the new officers wouldn’t be "harsh to us," which was their biggest concern, I calmed their fears. Twenty-four hours have passed, and I hear them singing happily all down that company street.

I often notice how their griefs may be dispelled, like those of children, merely by permission to utter them: if they can tell their sorrows, they go away happy, even without asking to have anything done about them. I observe also a peculiar dislike of all intermediate control: they always wish to pass by the company officer, and deal with me personally for everything. General Saxton notices the same thing with the people on the plantations as regards himself. I suppose this proceeds partly from the old habit of appealing to the master against the overseer. Kind words would cost the master nothing, and he could easily put off any non-fulfilment upon the overseer. Moreover, the negroes have acquired such constitutional distrust of white people, that it is perhaps as much as they can do to trust more than one person at a tune. Meanwhile this constant personal intercourse is out of the question in a well-ordered regiment; and the remedy for it is to introduce by degrees more and more of system, so that their immediate officers will become all-sufficient for the daily routine.

I often notice how their grief can be lifted, just like with children, simply by allowing them to express it: if they can share their sorrows, they feel better, even without needing anything done about it. I also see a strong aversion to all intermediate authority: they prefer to bypass the company officer and deal with me directly for everything. General Saxton has noticed the same thing with the people on the plantations regarding himself. I think this comes partly from the old habit of going to the master instead of the overseer. Kind words would cost the master nothing, and he could easily shift any unmet promises onto the overseer. Additionally, the people have developed a deep-rooted distrust of white individuals, making it difficult for them to trust more than one person at a time. Meanwhile, this constant personal interaction isn't feasible in a well-organized regiment; the solution is to gradually introduce more system so that their immediate officers can effectively handle the daily routine.

It is perfectly true (as I find everybody takes for granted) that the first essential for an officer of colored troops is to gain their confidence. But it is equally true, though many persons do not appreciate it, that the admirable methods and proprieties of the regular army are equally available for all troops, and that the sublimest philanthropist, if he does not appreciate this, is unfit to command them.

It’s definitely true (as I see everyone assumes) that the first thing an officer of colored troops needs to do is earn their trust. But it’s also true, even if many people don’t realize it, that the excellent methods and standards of the regular army apply to all troops, and that the greatest humanitarian, if they don’t recognize this, is not suited to lead them.

Another childlike attribute in these men, which is less agreeable, is a sort of blunt insensibility to giving physical pain. If they are cruel to animals, for instance, it always reminds me of children pulling off flies' legs, in a sort of pitiless, untaught, experimental way. Yet I should not fear any wanton outrage from them. After all their wrongs, they are not really revengeful; and I would far rather enter a captured city with them than with white troops, for they would be more subordinate. But for mere physical suffering they would have no fine sympathies. The cruel things they have seen and undergone have helped to blunt them; and if I ordered them to put to death a dozen prisoners, I think they would do it without remonstrance.

Another childlike trait in these men, which is less pleasant, is their blunt insensitivity to causing physical pain. For instance, when they’re cruel to animals, it reminds me of kids pulling off a fly's legs in a harsh, unthinking, experimental way. However, I wouldn’t worry about any unnecessary violence from them. Despite all their wrongs, they aren’t really vengeful; I would much rather enter a captured city with them than with white troops, as they would be more compliant. But when it comes to mere physical suffering, they lack any deep empathy. The brutal things they’ve witnessed and experienced have numbed them; and if I ordered them to execute a dozen prisoners, I believe they would do so without protest.

Yet their religious spirit grows more beautiful to me in living longer with them; it is certainly far more so than at first, when it seemed rather a matter of phrase and habit. It influences them both on the negative and the positive side. That is, it cultivates the feminine virtues first,—makes them patient, meek, resigned. This is very evident in the hospital; there is nothing of the restless, defiant habit of white invalids. Perhaps, if they had more of this, they would resist disease better. Imbued from childhood with the habit of submission, drinking in through every pore that other-world trust which is the one spirit of their songs, they can endure everything. This I expected; but I am relieved to find that their religion strengthens them on the positive side also,—gives zeal, energy, daring. They could easily be made fanatics, if I chose; but I do not choose. Their whole mood is essentially Mohammedan, perhaps, in its strength and its weakness; and I feel the same degree of sympathy that I should if I had a Turkish command,—that is, a sort of sympathetic admiration, not tending towards agreement, but towards co-operation. Their philosophizing is often the highest form of mysticism; and our dear surgeon declares that they are all natural transcendentalists. The white camps seem rough and secular, after this; and I hear our men talk about "a religious army," "a Gospel army," in their prayer-meetings. They are certainly evangelizing the chaplain, who was rather a heretic at the beginning; at least, this is his own admission. We have recruits on their way from St. Augustine, where the negroes are chiefly Roman Catholics; and it will be interesting to see how their type of character combines with that elder creed. It is time for rest; and I have just looked out into the night, where the eternal stars shut down, in concave protection, over the yet glimmering camp, and Orion hangs above my tent-door, giving to me the sense of strength and assurance which these simple children obtain from their Moses and the Prophets. Yet external Nature does its share in their training; witness that most poetic of all their songs, which always reminds me of the "Lyke-Wake Dirge" in the "Scottish Border Minstrelsy,"—

Yet their spiritual devotion becomes more beautiful to me the longer I spend with them; it's definitely much more so than at first, when it seemed more like just words and routine. It affects them both negatively and positively. It nurtures feminine qualities first—making them patient, gentle, and accepting. This is especially clear in the hospital; there's none of the restless, defiant attitude seen in white patients. Maybe if they had more of that, they'd fight off illness better. Raised from childhood with a mindset of submission, absorbing that other-worldly trust which is the essence of their songs, they can endure anything. I expected this; but I’m also glad to see that their faith empowers them positively as well—instilling passion, energy, and courage. They could easily become fanatics if I wanted; but I don’t want that. Their overall demeanor is distinctly Mohammedan, in both its strengths and weaknesses; and I feel a level of sympathy that I would if I had a Turkish command—that is, a kind of respectful admiration that doesn't lead to agreement but to cooperation. Their philosophy is often the highest form of mysticism; and our dear surgeon says they are all natural transcendentalists. The white camps now seem rough and more secular after this experience; I hear our men talk about "a religious army," "a Gospel army," in their prayer meetings. They are definitely converting the chaplain, who was quite a skeptic at first; at least, this is his own admission. We have recruits coming from St. Augustine, where most of the black community are Roman Catholics; and it will be interesting to see how their character blends with that older belief. It's time to rest; I just looked out into the night, where the eternal stars huddle closely, protectively over the still glowing camp, and Orion hangs above my tent door, giving me the sense of strength and reassurance that these simple people derive from their Moses and the Prophets. Yet the natural world also plays a part in their upbringing; just look at that most poetic of all their songs, which always reminds me of the "Lyke-Wake Dirge" in the "Scottish Border Minstrelsy,"—

  "I know moon-rise, I know star-rise;
    Lay dis body down.
  I walk in de moonlight, I walk in de starlight,
    To lay dis body down.
  I'll walk in de graveyard, I'll walk through de graveyard,
    To lay dis body down.
  I'll lie in de grave and stretch out my arms;
    Lay dis body down.
  I go to de Judgment in de evening ob de day
    When I lay dis body down;
  And my soul and your soul will meet in de day
    When I lay dis body down."
"I know the moonrise, I know the star rise;  
    Lay this body down.  
  I walk in the moonlight, I walk in the starlight,  
    To lay this body down.  
  I'll walk in the graveyard, I'll walk through the graveyard,  
    To lay this body down.  
  I'll lie in the grave and stretch out my arms;  
    Lay this body down.  
  I go to the Judgment at the end of the day  
    When I lay this body down;  
  And my soul and your soul will meet on the day  
    When I lay this body down."

January 14.

January 14th.

In speaking of the military qualities of the blacks, I should add, that the only point where I am disappointed is one I have never seen raised by the most incredulous newspaper critics,—namely, their physical condition. To be sure they often look magnificently to my gymnasium-trained eye; and I always like to observe them when bathing,—such splendid muscular development, set off by that smooth coating of adipose tissue which makes them, like the South-Sea Islanders appear even more muscular than they are. Their skins are also of finer grain than those of whites, the surgeons say, and certainly are smoother and far more free from hair. But their weakness is pulmonary; pneumonia and pleurisy are their besetting ailments; they are easily made ill,—and easily cured, if promptly treated: childish organizations again. Guard-duty injures them more than whites, apparently; and double-quick movements, in choking dust, set them coughing badly. But then it is to be remembered that this is their sickly season, from January to March, and that their healthy season will come in summer, when the whites break down. Still my conviction of the physical superiority of more highly civilized races is strengthened on the whole, not weakened, by observing them. As to availability for military drill and duty in other respects, the only question I ever hear debated among the officers is, whether they are equal or superior to whites. I have never heard it suggested that they were inferior, although I expected frequently to hear such complaints from hasty or unsuccessful officers.

When discussing the military qualities of Black people, I should mention that the one area where I feel let down is something that many skeptical newspaper critics have never brought up—specifically, their physical condition. Sure, they often look amazing to my gym-trained eye, and I always enjoy watching them when they’re swimming—such impressive muscle development, highlighted by that smooth layer of fat that makes them, like South-Sea Islanders, appear even more muscular than they actually are. Their skin is also finer than that of white people, the doctors say, and definitely smoother and much less hairy. However, they do struggle with lung issues; pneumonia and pleurisy are common problems for them. They get sick easily—but they can also recover quickly if treated promptly; their bodies are still developing. It seems that guard duty affects them more than it does white people, and strenuous movements in dusty conditions make them cough a lot. But we should remember that this is their less healthy season, from January to March, and their healthier time will come in summer, when white soldiers tend to break down. Still, my belief in the physical superiority of more advanced races is reinforced overall, not diminished, by watching them. As for their suitability for military training and duties in other ways, the only debate I ever hear among the officers is whether they are equal to or better than white soldiers. I have never heard anyone suggest that they are inferior, although I expected to hear such complaints from impatient or unsuccessful officers.

Of one thing I am sure, that their best qualities will be wasted by merely keeping them for garrison duty. They seem peculiarly fitted for offensive operations, and especially for partisan warfare; they have so much dash and such abundant resources, combined with such an Indian-like knowledge of the country and its ways. These traits have been often illustrated in expeditions sent after deserters. For instance, I despatched one of my best lieutenants and my best sergeant with a squad of men to search a certain plantation, where there were two separate negro villages. They went by night, and the force was divided. The lieutenant took one set of huts, the sergeant the other. Before the lieutenant had reached his first house, every man in the village was in the woods, innocent and guilty alike. But the sergeant's mode of operation was thus described by a corporal from a white regiment who happened to be in one of the negro houses. He said that not a sound was heard until suddenly a red leg appeared in the open doorway, and a voice outside said, "Rally." Going to the door, he observed a similar pair of red legs before every hut, and not a person was allowed to go out, until the quarters had been thoroughly searched, and the three deserters found. This was managed by Sergeant Prince Rivers, our color-sergeant, who is provost-sergeant also, and has entire charge of the prisoners and of the daily policing of the camp. He is a man of distinguished appearance, and in old times was the crack coachman of Beaufort, in which capacity he once drove Beauregard from this plantation to Charleston, I believe. They tell me that he was once allowed to present a petition to the Governor of South Carolina in behalf of slaves, for the redress of certain grievances; and that a placard, offering two thousand dollars for his recapture, is still to be seen by the wayside between here and Charleston. He was a sergeant in the old "Hunter Regiment," and was taken by General Hunter to New York last spring, where the chevrons on his arm brought a mob upon him in Broadway, whom he kept off till the police interfered. There is not a white officer in this regiment who has more administrative ability, or more absolute authority over the men; they do not love him, but his mere presence has controlling power over them. He writes well enough to prepare for me a daily report of his duties in the camp; if his education reached a higher point, I see no reason why he should not command the Army of the Potomac. He is jet-black, or rather, I should say, wine-black; his complexion, like that of others of my darkest men, having a sort of rich, clear depth, without a trace of sootiness, and to my eye very handsome. His features are tolerably regular, and full of command, and his figure superior to that of any of our white officers,—being six feet high, perfectly proportioned, and of apparently inexhaustible strength and activity. His gait is like a panther's; I never saw such a tread. No anti-slavery novel has described a man of such marked ability. He makes Toussaint perfectly intelligible; and if there should ever be a black monarchy in South Carolina, he will be its king.

I'm sure of one thing: their best qualities will be wasted if they're just kept on garrison duty. They seem especially well-suited for offensive operations and especially for guerrilla warfare; they have a lot of energy and abundant resources, combined with a knowledge of the land and its ways that's reminiscent of Native Americans. These traits have been proven in missions sent to capture deserters. For instance, I sent one of my best lieutenants and my top sergeant with a squad to search a specific plantation, where there were two separate African American villages. They went at night, and the group was split up. The lieutenant took one set of huts, and the sergeant took the other. Before the lieutenant even reached his first house, everyone in the village was already in the woods, both the innocent and guilty. The corporal from a white regiment, who happened to be inside one of the African American houses, described the sergeant's approach. He said it was completely quiet until suddenly a red leg appeared in the open doorway, and a voice outside called out, "Rally." When he went to the door, he saw a similar pair of red legs in front of every hut, and no one was allowed to leave until the quarters were thoroughly searched and the three deserters were found. This operation was led by Sergeant Prince Rivers, our color-sergeant, who is also the provost-sergeant and is completely in charge of the prisoners and daily policing of the camp. He has a distinguished appearance and was once the top coachman in Beaufort, where he drove Beauregard from this plantation to Charleston, I believe. They say he was allowed to present a petition to the Governor of South Carolina on behalf of slaves for the resolution of certain grievances; and there's still a poster offering two thousand dollars for his capture on the roadside between here and Charleston. He was a sergeant in the old "Hunter Regiment," and General Hunter took him to New York last spring, where the stripes on his arm attracted a mob in Broadway that he held off until the police stepped in. No white officer in this regiment has more administrative skill or more authority over the men; they don't particularly like him, but his mere presence commands their respect. He writes well enough to prepare a daily report of his camp duties for me; if he had a higher level of education, I see no reason why he couldn't command the Army of the Potomac. He is jet-black, or rather, I should say, wine-black; his skin, like that of my darkest men, has a rich, clear depth, without any hint of dullness, and I find him very handsome. His features are quite regular and commanding, and his figure is superior to that of any of our white officers—standing six feet tall, perfectly proportioned, and seemingly full of endless strength and energy. His stride is like a panther's; I've never seen anyone walk like that. No anti-slavery novel has ever depicted a man with such remarkable ability. He makes Toussaint perfectly understandable; and if there is ever a black monarchy in South Carolina, he will be its king.

January 15.

January 15th.

This morning is like May. Yesterday I saw bluebirds and a butterfly; so this whiter of a fortnight is over. I fancy there is a trifle less coughing in the camp. We hear of other stations in the Department where the mortality, chiefly from yellow fever, has been frightful. Dr. —— is rubbing his hands professionally over the fearful tales of the surgeon of a New York regiment, just from Key West, who has had two hundred cases of the fever. "I suppose he is a skilful, highly educated man," said I. "Yes," he responded with enthusiasm. "Why, he had seventy deaths!"—as if that proved his superiority past question.

This morning feels like May. Yesterday, I saw bluebirds and a butterfly, so this rough patch of two weeks is finally behind us. I think there’s a little less coughing in the camp. We’re hearing about other places in the Department where the death toll, mostly from yellow fever, has been horrific. Dr. —– is getting a kick out of the terrifying stories from the surgeon of a New York regiment who just came from Key West, where he dealt with two hundred cases of the fever. “I assume he’s a skilled and well-educated guy,” I said. “Definitely,” he replied excitedly. “He had seventy deaths!”—as if that proved his excellence without a doubt.

January 19.

January 19th.

"And first, sitting proud as a lung on his throne, At the head of them all rode Sir Richard Tyrone."

"And first, sitting confidently like a king on his throne, at the head of everyone, rode Sir Richard Tyrone."

But I fancy that Sir Richard felt not much better satisfied with his following than I to-day. J. R. L. said once that nothing was quite so good as turtle-soup, except mock-turtle; and I have heard officers declare that nothing was so stirring as real war, except some exciting parade. To-day, for the first time, I marched the whole regiment through Beaufort and back,—the first appearance of such a novelty on any stage. They did march splendidly; this all admit. M——'s prediction was fulfilled: "Will not —— be in bliss? A thousand men, every one as black as a coal!" I confess it. To look back on twenty broad double-ranks of men (for they marched by platoons),—every polished musket having a black face beside it, and every face set steadily to the front,—a regiment of freed slaves marching on into the future,—it was something to remember; and when they returned through the same streets, marching by the flank, with guns at a "support," and each man covering his file-leader handsomely, the effect on the eye was almost as fine. The band of the Eighth Maine joined us at the entrance of the town, and escorted us in. Sergeant Rivers said ecstatically afterwards, in describing the affair, "And when dat band wheel in before us, and march on,—my God! I quit dis world altogeder." I wonder if he pictured to himself the many dusky regiments, now unformed, which I seemed to see marching up behind us, gathering shape out of the dim air.

But I bet Sir Richard wasn’t feeling any more satisfied with his followers than I am today. J. R. L. once said nothing was better than turtle soup, except mock turtle; and I’ve heard officers claim that nothing is as thrilling as real war, except an exciting parade. Today, for the first time, I marched the entire regiment through Beaufort and back—this was the first time such a thing had happened anywhere. They marched incredibly well; everyone agrees on that. M——'s prediction came true: "Will not —— be in bliss? A thousand men, every one as black as coal!" I admit it. Looking back at twenty rows of men (because they marched by platoons)—every shiny musket paired with a black face, and every face focused straight ahead—a regiment of freed slaves moving confidently into the future—it was something to remember; and when they returned through the same streets, marching side by side, with their guns at the ready, and each man keeping in step beautifully with his file leader, the visual impact was almost just as striking. The band of the Eighth Maine joined us at the town entrance and led us in. Sergeant Rivers later said excitedly while describing it, "And when that band wheeled in front of us and marched on—my God! I left this world entirely." I wonder if he imagined all the dark regiments, now unformed, that I seemed to picture marching up behind us, taking shape from the misty air.

I had cautioned the men, before leaving camp, not to be staring about them as they marched, but to look straight to the front, every man; and they did it with their accustomed fidelity, aided by the sort of spontaneous eye-for-effect which is in all their melodramatic natures. One of them was heard to say exultingly afterwards, "We didn't look to de right nor to de leff. I didn't see notin' in Beaufort. Eb'ry step was worth a half a dollar." And they all marched as if it were so. They knew well that they were marching through throngs of officers and soldiers who had drilled as many months as we had drilled weeks, and whose eyes would readily spy out every defect. And I must say, that, on the whole, with a few trivial exceptions, those spectators behaved in a manly and courteous manner, and I do not care to write down all the handsome things that were said. Whether said or not, they were deserved; and there is no danger that our men will not take sufficient satisfaction in their good appearance. I was especially amused at one of our recruits, who did not march in the ranks, and who said, after watching the astonishment of some white soldiers, "De buckra sojers look like a man who been-a-steal a sheep,"—that is, I suppose, sheepish.

I had warned the guys before we left camp not to look around as they marched but to keep their eyes straight ahead, and they followed this advice dutifully, aided by their natural flair for drama. One of them was heard excitedly saying afterward, "We didn’t look to the right or the left. I didn’t see anything in Beaufort. Every step was worth fifty cents." And they all marched like that was true. They knew they were passing by officers and soldiers who had trained for as long as we had trained in weeks, and those eyes would quickly catch every mistake. I have to say, though, that overall, with a few minor exceptions, those onlookers were quite respectful and courteous, and I won’t list all the nice things that were said. Whether spoken or not, they were deserved; and there’s no doubt our men were proud of how they looked. I especially got a kick out of one of our recruits who wasn’t marching in formation and remarked, after seeing the surprise on some white soldiers' faces, "The white soldiers look like a guy who just stole a sheep,"—which I assume means they looked sheepish.

After passing and repassing through the town, we marched to the parade-ground, and went through an hour's drill, forming squares and reducing them, and doing other things which look hard on paper, and are perfectly easy in fact; and we were to have been reviewed by General Saxton, but he had been unexpectedly called to Ladies Island, and did not see us at all, which was the only thing to mar the men's enjoyment. Then we marched back to camp (three miles), the men singing the "John Brown Song," and all manner of things,—as happy creatures as one can well conceive.

After going back and forth through the town, we marched to the parade ground and spent an hour drilling. We formed squares and broke them down, doing other things that look tough on paper but are really easy in practice. We were supposed to be reviewed by General Saxton, but he was unexpectedly called to Ladies Island and didn't see us at all, which was the only thing that dampened the men's enjoyment. Then we marched back to camp (three miles), with the men singing the "John Brown Song" and all sorts of other tunes— as happy as you can imagine.

It is worth mentioning, before I close, that we have just received an article about "Negro Troops," from the London Spectator, which is so admirably true to our experience that it seems as if written by one of us. I am confident that there never has been, in any American newspaper, a treatment of the subject so discriminating and so wise.

It’s important to note, before I wrap up, that we just got an article about "Black Troops" from the London Spectator, which reflects our experience so perfectly that it feels like it was written by one of us. I'm sure there has never been a treatment of this topic in any American newspaper that is as insightful and thoughtful.

January 21.

January 21st.

To-day brought a visit from Major-General Hunter and his staff, by General Saxton's invitation,—the former having just arrived in the Department. I expected them at dress-parade, but they came during battalion drill, rather to my dismay, and we were caught in our old clothes. It was our first review, and I dare say we did tolerably; but of course it seemed to me that the men never appeared so ill before,—just as one always thinks a party at one's own house a failure, even if the guests seem to enjoy it, because one is so keenly sensitive to every little thing that goes wrong. After review and drill, General Hunter made the men a little speech, at my request, and told them that he wished there were fifty thousand of them. General Saxton spoke to them afterwards, and said that fifty thousand muskets were on their way for colored troops. The men cheered both the generals lustily; and they were complimentary afterwards, though I knew that the regiment could not have appeared nearly so well as on its visit to Beaufort. I suppose I felt like some anxious mamma whose children have accidentally appeared at dancing-school in their old clothes.

Today, Major-General Hunter and his staff visited at General Saxton's invitation, as the former had just arrived in the Department. I expected them at the dress parade, but they came during battalion drill, which was disappointing, as we were caught in our old uniforms. It was our first review, and I think we did okay; but of course, it seemed to me that the men looked worse than ever before—just like how one always thinks a party at home is a failure, even if the guests are enjoying themselves, because you're so aware of every little thing that goes wrong. After the review and drill, General Hunter gave the men a brief speech at my request, expressing his wish that there were fifty thousand of them. General Saxton spoke to them afterward and mentioned that fifty thousand muskets were on their way for colored troops. The men cheered both generals enthusiastically; they were complimentary afterward, although I knew the regiment hadn’t looked nearly as good as it did during its visit to Beaufort. I suppose I felt like a worried mom whose kids accidentally showed up at dance class in their old clothes.

General Hunter promises us all we want,—pay when the funds arrive, Springfield rifled muskets, and blue trousers. Moreover, he has graciously consented that we should go on an expedition along the coast, to pick up cotton, lumber, and, above all, recruits. I declined an offer like this just after my arrival, because the regiment was not drilled or disciplined, not even the officers; but it is all we wish for now.

General Hunter promises us everything we want—payment when the funds come in, Springfield rifled muskets, and blue trousers. Plus, he has kindly agreed to let us go on an expedition along the coast to collect cotton, lumber, and, most importantly, recruits. I turned down a similar offer right after I arrived because the regiment wasn’t trained or organized, not even the officers; but now, it’s exactly what we need.

  "What care I how black I be?
  Forty pounds will marry me,"
"What do I care how dark my skin is?  
Forty pounds will get me married,"

quoth Mother Goose. Forty rounds will marry us to the American Army, past divorcing, if we can only use them well. Our success or failure may make or mar the prospects of colored troops. But it is well to remember in advance that military success is really less satisfactory than any other, because it may depend on a moment's turn of events, and that may be determined by some trivial thing, neither to be anticipated nor controlled. Napoleon ought to have won at Waterloo by all reasonable calculations; but who cares? All that one can expect is, to do one's best, and to take with equanimity the fortune of war.

quoth Mother Goose. Forty rounds will tie us to the American Army, beyond breaking away, if we can just use them effectively. Our success or failure might shape the future of colored troops. But it's important to remember that military success is often less fulfilling than any other type, because it can hinge on a split-second change in events, influenced by something minor that can’t be predicted or controlled. Napoleon should have won at Waterloo by all reasonable measures; but who really cares? All we can do is our best and accept the outcomes of war with calmness.





Chapter 3. Up the St. Mary's

If Sergeant Rivers was a natural king among my dusky soldiers, Corporal Robert Sutton was the natural prime-minister. If not in all respects the ablest, he was the wisest man in our ranks. As large, as powerful, and as black as our good-looking Color-Sergeant, but more heavily built and with less personal beauty, he had a more massive brain and a far more meditative and systematic intellect. Not yet grounded even in the spelling-book, his modes of thought were nevertheless strong, lucid, and accurate; and he yearned and pined for intellectual companionship beyond all ignorant men whom I have ever met. I believe that he would have talked all day and all night, for days together, to any officer who could instruct him, until his companions, at least, fell asleep exhausted. His comprehension of the whole problem of Slavery was more thorough and far-reaching than that of any Abolitionist, so far as its social and military aspects went; in that direction I could teach him nothing, and he taught me much. But it was his methods of thought which always impressed me chiefly: superficial brilliancy he left to others, and grasped at the solid truth.

If Sergeant Rivers was a natural leader among my dark-skinned soldiers, Corporal Robert Sutton was the natural second-in-command. He might not have been the most skilled in every way, but he was the wisest person in our group. He was as big, strong, and dark-skinned as our good-looking Color-Sergeant, but more heavily built and less conventionally handsome. However, he had a more substantial brain and a far more reflective and organized way of thinking. Even though he wasn't even familiar with the basics of reading and writing, his way of thinking was still powerful, clear, and precise; he longed for intellectual companionship more than any uneducated person I've ever met. I believe he would have talked all day and night, for days on end, to any officer who could teach him, until his peers eventually fell asleep from exhaustion. His understanding of the entire issue of Slavery was deeper and more comprehensive than that of any Abolitionist, especially regarding its social and military aspects; in that area, I couldn't teach him anything, and he taught me a lot. But what always struck me the most were his ways of thinking: he left superficial brilliance to others and focused on solid truth.

Of course his interest in the war and in the regiment was unbounded; he did not take to drill with especial readiness, but he was insatiable of it, and grudged every moment of relaxation. Indeed, he never had any such moments; his mind was at work all the time, even when he was singing hymns, of which he had endless store. He was not, however, one of our leading religionists, but his moral code was solid and reliable, like his mental processes. Ignorant as he was, the "years that bring the philosophic mind" had yet been his, and most of my young officers seemed boys beside him. He was a Florida man, and had been chiefly employed in lumbering and piloting on the St. Mary's River, which divides Florida from Georgia. Down this stream he had escaped in a "dug-out," and after thus finding the way, had returned (as had not a few of my men in other cases) to bring away wife and child. "I wouldn't have left my child, Cunnel," he said, with an emphasis that sounded the depths of his strong nature. And up this same river he was always imploring to be allowed to guide an expedition.

Of course, his interest in the war and the regiment was limitless; he didn't take to drill with much enthusiasm, but he was obsessed with it and resented every moment of downtime. In fact, he never truly had those moments; his mind was always at work, even when he was singing hymns, of which he had an endless supply. He wasn’t one of our leading religious figures, but his moral code was solid and dependable, just like his thinking. Despite his ignorance, he had experienced the "years that bring the philosophic mind," and most of my young officers seemed like boys next to him. He was from Florida and had mainly worked in lumber and piloting on the St. Mary's River, which separates Florida from Georgia. He had escaped down this river in a "dug-out," and after finding his way, he returned (as several of my men had in other situations) to bring his wife and child back. "I wouldn't have left my child, Colonel," he said, with a conviction that revealed the depth of his strong character. And up this same river, he was always begging to be allowed to lead an expedition.

Many other men had rival propositions to urge, for they gained self-confidence from drill and guard-duty, and were growing impatient of inaction. "Ought to go to work, Sa,—don't believe in we lyin' in camp eatin' up de perwisions." Such were the quaint complaints, which I heard with joy. Looking over my note-books of that period, I find them filled with topographical memoranda, jotted down by a flickering candle, from the evening talk of the men,—notes of vulnerable points along the coast, charts of rivers, locations of pickets. I prized these conversations not more for what I thus learned of the country than for what I learned of the men. One could thus measure their various degrees of accuracy and their average military instinct; and I must say that in every respect, save the accurate estimate of distances, they stood the test well. But no project took my fancy so much, after all, as that of the delegate from the St. Mary's River.

Many other guys had different ideas to share because they were gaining confidence from drills and guard duty and were getting impatient with doing nothing. "We should get to work, sir—I can’t stand us just lying around in camp eating up the supplies." Those were the quirky complaints I happily heard. Looking through my notes from that time, I see they are filled with topographical details, written down by a flickering candle, from the evening chats with the men—notes on weak spots along the coast, river maps, and picket locations. I valued these conversations not only for what I learned about the area but also for what I learned about the men. This way, I could gauge their different levels of accuracy and their overall military instincts; I must say that, except for their not-so-great sense of distance, they held up pretty well in every other way. But after all was said and done, I was most interested in the idea put forward by the delegate from the St. Mary's River.

The best peg on which to hang an expedition in the Department of the South, in those days, was the promise of lumber. Dwelling in the very land of Southern pine, the Department authorities had to send North for it, at a vast expense. There was reported to be plenty in the enemy's country, but somehow the colored soldiers were the only ones who had been lucky enough to obtain any, thus far, and the supply brought in by our men, after flooring the tents of the white regiments and our own, was running low. An expedition of white troops, four companies, with two steamers and two schooners, had lately returned empty-handed, after a week's foraging; and now it was our turn. They said the mills were all burned; but should we go up the St. Mary's, Corporal Sutton was prepared to offer more lumber than we had transportation to carry. This made the crowning charm of his suggestion. But there is never any danger of erring on the side of secrecy, in a military department; and I resolved to avoid all undue publicity for our plans, by not finally deciding on any until we should get outside the bar. This was happily approved by my superior officers, Major-General Hunter and Brigadier-General Saxton; and I was accordingly permitted to take three steamers, with four hundred and sixty-two officers and men, and two or three invited guests, and go down the coast on my own responsibility. We were, in short, to win our spurs; and if, as among the Araucanians, our spurs were made of lumber, so much the better. The whole history of the Department of the South had been defined as "a military picnic," and now we were to take our share of the entertainment.

The best reason to launch an expedition in the Department of the South back then was the promise of lumber. Living in the heart of Southern pine territory, the Department officials had to source it from the North at a huge cost. Reports said there was plenty in the enemy's territory, but somehow the Black soldiers were the only ones who had managed to gather any so far, and the supply our men brought in was running low after covering the tents of the white regiments and our own. A recent expedition of white troops, consisting of four companies with two steamers and two schooners, returned empty-handed after a week of searching, and now it was our turn. They claimed all the mills had burned down; however, if we headed up the St. Mary's, Corporal Sutton was ready to offer more lumber than we could transport. This made his suggestion even more appealing. But there’s never a risk of being too secretive in a military department, so I decided to keep our plans under wraps until we were out past the bar. Thankfully, Major-General Hunter and Brigadier-General Saxton agreed, and I was allowed to take three steamers with four hundred and sixty-two officers and men, along with a couple of invited guests, to head down the coast on my own authority. In summary, we were set to earn our stripes; and if, like the Araucanians, our stripes were made of lumber, all the better. The entire history of the Department of the South had been described as "a military picnic," and now it was our turn to join in the fun.

It seemed a pleasant share, when, after the usual vexations and delays, we found ourselves (January 23, 1863) gliding down the full waters of Beaufort River, the three vessels having sailed at different hours, with orders to rendezvous at St. Simon's Island, on the coast of Georgia. Until then, the flagship, so to speak, was to be the "Ben De Ford," Captain Hallet,—this being by far the largest vessel, and carrying most of the men. Major Strong was in command upon the "John Adams," an army gunboat, carrying a thirty-pound Parrott gun, two ten-pound Parrotts, and an eight-inch howitzer. Captain Trowbridge (since promoted Lieutenant-Colonel of the regiment) had charge of the famous "Planter," brought away from the Rebels by Robert Small; she carried a ten-pound Parrott gun, and two howitzers. The John Adams was our main reliance. She was an old East Boston ferry-boat, a "double-ender," admirable for river-work, but unfit for sea-service. She drew seven feet of water; the Planter drew only four; but the latter was very slow, and being obliged to go to St. Simon's by an inner passage, would delay us from the beginning. She delayed us so much, before the end, that we virtually parted company, and her career was almost entirely separated from our own.

It felt like a nice journey when, after the usual frustrations and delays, we found ourselves (January 23, 1863) smoothly navigating the full waters of Beaufort River. The three ships had left at different times, with plans to meet up at St. Simon's Island on the coast of Georgia. Until then, the flagship was the "Ben De Ford," captained by Hallet—this was by far the largest ship and carried most of the crew. Major Strong was in charge of the "John Adams," an army gunboat equipped with a thirty-pound Parrott gun, two ten-pound Parrotts, and an eight-inch howitzer. Captain Trowbridge (who was later promoted to Lieutenant-Colonel of the regiment) commanded the well-known "Planter," taken from the Rebels by Robert Small; it was armed with a ten-pound Parrott gun and two howitzers. The John Adams was our primary support. She was an old East Boston ferry boat, a "double-ender," great for river missions but not suitable for the open sea. She had a draft of seven feet, while the Planter only drew four; however, the Planter was much slower and needed to take an inner route to St. Simon's, which would slow us down from the start. In the end, she delayed us so much that we effectively drifted apart, and her journey became almost entirely separate from ours.

From boyhood I have had a fancy for boats, and have seldom been without a share, usually more or less fractional, in a rather indeterminate number of punts and wherries. But when, for the first time, I found myself at sea as Commodore of a fleet of armed steamers,—for even the Ben De Ford boasted a six-pounder or so,—it seemed rather an unexpected promotion. But it is a characteristic of army life, that one adapts one's self, as coolly as in a dream, to the most novel responsibilities. One sits on court-martial, for instance, and decides on the life of a fellow-creature, without being asked any inconvenient questions as to previous knowledge of Blackstone; and after such an experience, shall one shrink from wrecking a steamer or two in the cause of the nation? So I placidly accepted my naval establishment, as if it were a new form of boat-club, and looked over the charts, balancing between one river and another, as if deciding whether to pull up or down Lake Quinsigamond. If military life ever contemplated the exercise of the virtue of humility under any circumstances this would perhaps have been a good opportunity to begin its practice. But as the "Regulations" clearly contemplated nothing of the kind, and as I had never met with any precedent which looked in that direction, I had learned to check promptly all such weak proclivities.

Since childhood, I’ve had a thing for boats and have rarely been without some level of ownership—usually just a small share—in a pretty vague number of small boats and rowboats. But when I first found myself at sea as the Commodore of a fleet of armed steamers—even the Ben De Ford had a six-pounder or two—it felt like a pretty surprising promotion. It’s a funny thing about military life: you adapt, almost dreamlike, to the craziest new responsibilities. For example, you might sit on a court-martial and decide the fate of someone’s life without anyone asking if you’ve ever cracked open Blackstone’s law books; after an experience like that, why would you hesitate to wreck a steamer or two for your country? So, I calmly accepted my naval role as if it were just another boat club and started looking over the charts, weighing one river against another, like I was deciding whether to paddle up or down Lake Quinsigamond. If military life ever had a moment to practice humility, this should have been it. But since the "Regulations" didn’t expect anything of the sort and I’d never come across any rules that suggested it, I quickly learned to suppress any such weak tendencies.

Captain Hallett proved the most frank and manly of sailors, and did everything for our comfort. He was soon warm in his praises of the demeanor of our men, which was very pleasant to hear, as this was the first time that colored soldiers in any number had been conveyed on board a transport, and I know of no place where a white volunteer appears to so much disadvantage. His mind craves occupation, his body is intensely uncomfortable, the daily emergency is not great enough to call out his heroic qualities, and he is apt to be surly, discontented, and impatient even of sanitary rules. The Southern black soldier, on the other hand, is seldom sea-sick (at least, such is my experience), and, if properly managed, is equally contented, whether idle or busy; he is, moreover, so docile that all needful rules are executed with cheerful acquiescence, and the quarters can therefore be kept clean and wholesome. Very forlorn faces were soon visible among the officers in the cabin, but I rarely saw such among the men.

Captain Hallett was the most open and genuine sailor, doing everything he could for our comfort. He quickly praised the behavior of our men, which was nice to hear since this was the first time that a significant number of Black soldiers had been transported on a ship, and I can't think of any place where white volunteers seem to struggle more. They often crave something to do, feel very uncomfortable physically, and the daily issues don’t push them to show their best qualities, making them likely to be grumpy, dissatisfied, and impatient even with basic health rules. In contrast, the Southern Black soldier rarely gets seasick (at least in my experience), and, when managed well, is just as content whether he's working or not. He’s also so willing to follow instructions that all necessary rules are followed cheerfully, allowing for clean and healthy living conditions. While the officers in the cabin often looked quite downcast, I seldom noticed that among the men.

Pleasant still seemed our enterprise, as we anchored at early morning in the quiet waters of St. Simon's Sound, and saw the light fall softly on the beach and the low bluffs, on the picturesque plantation-houses which nestled there, and the graceful naval vessels that lay at anchor before us. When we afterwards landed the air had that peculiar Mediterranean translucency which Southern islands wear; and the plantation we visited had the loveliest tropical garden, though tangled and desolate, which I have ever seen in the South. The deserted house was embowered In great blossoming shrubs, and filled with hyacinthine odors, among which predominated that of the little Chickasaw roses which everywhere bloomed and trailed around. There were fig-trees and date-palms, crape-myrtles and wax-myrtles, Mexican agaves and English ivies, japonicas, bananas, oranges, lemons, oleanders, jonquils, great cactuses, and wild Florida lilies. This was not the plantation which Mrs. Kemble has since made historic, although that was on the same island; and I could not waste much sentiment over it, for it had belonged to a Northern renegade, Thomas Butler King. Yet I felt then, as I have felt a hundred times since, an emotion of heart-sickness at this desecration of a homestead,—and especially when, looking from a bare upper window of the empty house upon a range of broad, flat, sunny roofs, such as children love to play on, I thought how that place might have been loved by yet Innocent hearts, and I mourned anew the sacrilege of war.

Pleasant still felt our adventure as we anchored in the early morning in the calm waters of St. Simon's Sound, watching the light gently spill over the beach and the low bluffs, on the charming plantation houses nestled there, and the elegant naval vessels that floated before us. When we landed later, the air had that unique Mediterranean clarity that Southern islands possess; and the plantation we explored had the most beautiful tropical garden, though wild and overgrown, that I’ve ever seen in the South. The abandoned house was surrounded by lush blooming shrubs and filled with fragrant scents, especially the sweet smell of the little Chickasaw roses that bloomed and trailed everywhere. There were fig trees and date palms, crape myrtles and wax myrtles, Mexican agaves and English ivies, japonicas, bananas, oranges, lemons, oleanders, jonquils, giant cacti, and wild Florida lilies. This wasn’t the plantation that Mrs. Kemble later made famous, although it was on the same island; I couldn’t muster much affection for it since it had belonged to a Northern renegade, Thomas Butler King. Yet I felt then, as I have many times since, a deep sadness over the destruction of a home—especially when, looking out from a bare upper window of the empty house onto a stretch of broad, flat, sunlit roofs, where children love to play, I thought about how that place might have been cherished by innocent hearts, and I mourned once more the tragedy of war.

I had visited the flag-ship Wabash ere we left Port Royal Harbor, and had obtained a very kind letter of introduction from Admiral Dupont, that stately and courtly potentate, elegant as one's ideal French marquis; and under these credentials I received polite attention from the naval officers at St. Simon's,—Acting Volunteer Lieutenant Budd, of the gunboat Potomska, and Acting Master Moses, of the barque Fernandina. They made valuable suggestions in regard to the different rivers along the coast, and gave vivid descriptions of the last previous trip up the St. Mary's undertaken by Captain Stevens, U.S.N., in the gunboat Ottawa, when he had to fight his way past batteries at every bluff in descending the narrow and rapid stream. I was warned that no resistance would be offered to the ascent, but only to our return; and was further cautioned against the mistake, then common, of underrating the courage of the Rebels. "It proved impossible to dislodge those fellows from the banks," my informant said; "they had dug rifle-pits, and swarmed like hornets, and when fairly silenced in one direction they were sure to open upon us from another." All this sounded alarming, but it was nine months since the event had happened; and although nothing had gone up the river meanwhile, I counted on less resistance now. And something must be risked anywhere.

I had visited the flagship Wabash before we left Port Royal Harbor and received a very kind letter of introduction from Admiral Dupont, who was as impressive and formal as an ideal French marquis. With this recommendation, I got polite attention from the naval officers at St. Simon's—Acting Volunteer Lieutenant Budd of the gunboat Potomska and Acting Master Moses of the barque Fernandina. They made helpful suggestions about the different rivers along the coast and shared vivid descriptions of the last trip up the St. Mary's by Captain Stevens, U.S.N., on the gunboat Ottawa, when he had to fight his way past batteries at every bluff in the narrow, fast-flowing river. I was warned that no resistance would be encountered on the way up, but only on our return, and was further cautioned against the common mistake of underestimating the courage of the Rebels. "It was impossible to dislodge those guys from the banks," my informant said, "they had dug rifle pits and swarmed like hornets, and when we managed to silence them in one direction, they always opened fire from another." All this sounded alarming, but it had been nine months since the event occurred, and although nothing had gone up the river in the meantime, I expected there would be less resistance now. And we had to take some risks anyway.

We were delayed all that day in waiting for our consort, and improved our time by verifying certain rumors about a quantity of new railroad-iron which was said to be concealed in the abandoned Rebel forts on St. Simon's and Jekyll Islands, and which would have much value at Port Royal, if we could unearth it. Some of our men had worked upon these very batteries, so that they could easily guide us; and by the additional discovery of a large flat-boat we were enabled to go to work in earnest upon the removal of the treasure. These iron bars, surmounted by a dozen feet of sand, formed an invulnerable roof for the magazines and bomb-proofs of the fort, and the men enjoyed demolishing them far more than they had relished their construction. Though the day was the 24th of January, 1863, the sun was very oppressive upon the sands; but all were in the highest spirits, and worked with the greatest zeal. The men seemed to regard these massive bars as their first trophies; and if the rails had been wreathed with roses, they could not have been got out in more holiday style. Nearly a hundred were obtained that day, besides a quantity of five-inch plank with which to barricade the very conspicuous pilot-houses of the John Adams. Still another day we were delayed, and could still keep at this work, not neglecting some foraging on the island from which horses, cattle, and agricultural implements were to be removed, and the few remaining colored families transferred to Fernandina. I had now become quite anxious about the missing steamboat, as the inner passage, by which alone she could arrive, was exposed at certain points to fire from Rebel batteries, and it would have been unpleasant to begin with a disaster. I remember that, as I stood on deck, in the still and misty evening, listening with strained senses for some sound of approach, I heard a low continuous noise from the distance, more wild and desolate than anything in my memory can parallel. It came from within the vast girdle of mist, and seemed like the cry of a myriad of lost souls upon the horizon's verge; it was Dante become audible: and yet it was but the accumulated cries of innumerable seafowl at the entrance of the outer bay.

We spent the entire day waiting for our partner and used the time to check out some rumors about a stash of new railroad iron that was supposedly hidden in the abandoned Rebel forts on St. Simon's and Jekyll Islands. This iron would be quite valuable at Port Royal if we could dig it up. Some of our men had actually worked on these fortifications, so they could easily lead us. Plus, when we discovered a large flatboat, we were ready to get serious about retrieving the treasure. Those iron bars, covered by a dozen feet of sand, made a solid roof over the fort's magazines and bomb shelters, and the men enjoyed tearing them down much more than they had enjoyed building them. Even though it was January 24, 1863, the sun was really hot on the sand, but everyone was in great spirits and worked with a lot of enthusiasm. The men seemed to see these heavy bars as their first trophies; if the rails had been decorated with roses, they couldn't have been pulled out in a more celebratory way. We managed to collect nearly a hundred that day, along with some five-inch planks to barricade the noticeable pilot houses of the John Adams. We were delayed another day but continued our work, not forgetting to forage on the island for horses, cattle, and farming tools to move, along with the few remaining Black families being relocated to Fernandina. I was starting to get worried about the missing steamboat since the only route she could take was vulnerable to fire from Rebel batteries, and starting off with a disaster wouldn’t have been ideal. I remember standing on deck in the calm, misty evening, straining to hear any sounds of her approaching. Then, I heard a low, continuous noise in the distance, more haunting and desolate than anything I could remember. It came from within the thick mist and sounded like the cries of countless lost souls at the edge of the horizon; it was like Dante's voice made real. But it turned out to be just the combined cries of numerous seabirds near the entrance of the outer bay.

Late that night the Planter arrived. We left St. Simon's on the following morning, reached Fort Clinch by four o'clock, and there transferring two hundred men to the very scanty quarters of the John Adams, allowed the larger transport to go into Fernandina, while the two other vessels were to ascend the St. Mary's River, unless (as proved inevitable in the end) the defects in the boiler of the Planter should oblige her to remain behind. That night I proposed to make a sort of trial-trip up stream, as far as Township landing, some fifteen miles, there to pay our respects to Captain Clark's company of cavalry, whose camp was reported to lie near by. This was included in Corporal Sutton's programme, and seemed to me more inviting, and far more useful to the men, than any amount of mere foraging. The thing really desirable appeared to be to get them under fire as soon as possible, and to teach them, by a few small successes, the application of what they had learned in camp-.

Late that night, the Planter arrived. We left St. Simon's the next morning, reached Fort Clinch by four o'clock, and transferred two hundred men to the cramped quarters of the John Adams, allowing the larger transport to head into Fernandina while the other two vessels were supposed to go up the St. Mary's River, unless (as ultimately happened) the issues with the Planter's boiler forced her to stay behind. That night, I suggested we take a trial trip upstream to Township landing, about fifteen miles away, to pay our respects to Captain Clark's company of cavalry, whose camp was reported to be nearby. This was part of Corporal Sutton's plan and seemed much more interesting and valuable for the men than just foraging. The real goal was to get them under fire as soon as possible and to teach them, through a few small victories, how to apply what they had learned in camp.

I had ascertained that the camp of this company lay five miles from the landing, and was accessible by two roads, one of which was a lumber-path, not commonly used, but which Corporal Sutton had helped to construct, and along which he could easily guide us. The plan was to go by night, surround the house and negro cabins at the landing (to prevent an alarm from being given), then to take the side path, and if all went well, to surprise the camp; but if they got notice of our approach, through their pickets, we should, at worst, have a fight, in which the best man must win.

I figured out that the camp of this company was five miles from the landing and could be reached by two roads. One was a rarely used lumber path, which Corporal Sutton had helped build and could easily guide us along. The plan was to go at night, surround the house and the cabins at the landing (to keep anyone from raising an alarm), then take the side path. If everything went well, we would surprise the camp; but if they got word of our approach through their pickets, we would at least be ready for a fight, where the best man would have to win.

The moon was bright, and the river swift, but easy of navigation thus far. Just below Township I landed a small advance force, to surround the houses silently. With them went Corporal Sutton; and when, after rounding the point, I went on shore with a larger body of men, he met me with a silent chuckle of delight, and with the information that there was a negro in a neighboring cabin who had just come from the Rebel camp, and could give the latest information. While he hunted up this valuable auxiliary, I mustered my detachment, winnowing out the men who had coughs (not a few), and sending them ignominiously on board again: a process I had regularly to perform, during this first season of catarrh, on all occasions where quiet was needed. The only exception tolerated at this time was in the case of one man who offered a solemn pledge, that, if unable to restrain his cough, he would lie down on the ground, scrape a little hole, and cough into it unheard. The ingenuity of this proposition was irresistible, and the eager patient was allowed to pass muster.

The moon was bright, and the river was flowing quickly, but easy to navigate so far. Just below Township, I landed a small advance team to surround the houses quietly. Corporal Sutton went with them, and when I went ashore with a larger group of men after rounding the point, he greeted me with a silent chuckle of delight and told me there was a Black man in a nearby cabin who had just come from the Rebel camp and could provide the latest information. While he tracked down this valuable ally, I organized my team, filtering out the men with coughs (there were quite a few) and sending them back on board in disgrace: I had to do this regularly during this first season of colds whenever quiet was needed. The only exception allowed at this time was for one man who made a serious promise that if he couldn't control his cough, he would lie down on the ground, dig a little hole, and cough into it quietly. The cleverness of this idea was hard to resist, so the eager man was allowed to stay.

It was after midnight when we set off upon our excursion. I had about a hundred men, marching by the flank, with a small advanced guard, and also a few flankers, where the ground permitted. I put my Florida company at the head of the column, and had by my side Captain Metcalf, an excellent officer, and Sergeant Mclntyre, his first sergeant. We plunged presently in pine woods, whose resinous smell I can still remember. Corporal Sutton marched near me, with his captured negro guide, whose first fear and sullenness had yielded to the magic news of the President's Proclamation, then just issued, of which Governor Andrew had sent me a large printed supply;—we seldom found men who could read it, but they all seemed to feel more secure when they held it in their hands. We marched on through the woods, with no sound but the peeping of the frogs in a neighboring marsh, and the occasional yelping of a dog, as we passed the hut of some "cracker." This yelping always made Corporal Sutton uneasy; dogs are the detective officers of Slavery's police.

It was after midnight when we set off on our journey. I had about a hundred men marching in a line, along with a small advance guard and a few scouts wherever the terrain allowed. I positioned my Florida company at the front of the column, and Captain Metcalf, a great officer, and Sergeant McIntyre, his first sergeant, were by my side. We soon entered the pine woods, whose resinous smell I can still recall. Corporal Sutton marched close to me with his captured Black guide, whose initial fear and sullen demeanor had given way to the hopeful news of the President's Proclamation, which Governor Andrew had sent me in a large printed supply; we rarely encountered anyone who could read it, but they all seemed to feel safer holding it in their hands. We continued through the woods, with only the sounds of frogs peeping in a nearby marsh and the occasional barking of a dog as we passed the hut of some "cracker." This barking always made Corporal Sutton anxious; dogs are the watchmen of Slavery's patrols.

We had halted once or twice to close up the ranks, and had marched some two miles, seeing and hearing nothing more. I had got all I could out of our new guide, and was striding on, rapt in pleasing contemplation. All had gone so smoothly that I had merely to fancy the rest as being equally smooth. Already I fancied our little detachment bursting out of the woods, in swift surprise, upon the Rebel quarters,—already the opposing commander, after hastily firing a charge or two from his revolver (of course above my head), had yielded at discretion, and was gracefully tendering, in a stage attitude, his unavailing sword,—when suddenly—

We had stopped once or twice to regroup and had marched about two miles, seeing and hearing nothing more. I had gotten all I could from our new guide and was walking on, lost in pleasant thoughts. Everything had gone so smoothly that I just imagined the rest would be just as easy. I could already picture our small group bursting out of the woods, catching the Rebel camp off guard—already I imagined the opposing commander, after quickly firing a couple of shots from his revolver (of course over my head), surrendering and dramatically offering his useless sword—when suddenly—

There was a trampling of feet among the advanced guard as they came confusedly to a halt, and almost at the same instant a more ominous sound, as of galloping horses in the path before us. The moonlight outside the woods gave that dimness of atmosphere within which is more bewildering than darkness, because the eyes cannot adapt themselves to it so well. Yet I fancied, and others aver, that they saw the leader of an approaching party mounted on a white horse and reining up in the pathway; others, again, declare that he drew a pistol from the holster and took aim; others heard the words, "Charge in upon them! Surround them!" But all this was confused by the opening rifle-shots of our advanced guard, and, as clear observation was impossible, I made the men fix their bayonets and kneel in the cover on each side the pathway, and I saw with delight the brave fellows, with Sergeant Mclntyre at their head, settling down in the grass as coolly and warily as if wild turkeys were the only game. Perhaps at the first shot a man fell at my elbow. I felt it no more than if a tree had fallen,—I was so busy watching my own men and the enemy, and planning what to do next. Some of our soldiers, misunderstanding the order, "Fix bayonets," were actually charging with them, dashing off into the dim woods, with nothing to charge at but the vanishing tail of an imaginary horse,—for we could really see nothing. This zeal I noted with pleasure, and also with anxiety, as our greatest danger was from confusion and scattering; and for infantry to pursue cavalry would be a novel enterprise. Captain Metcalf stood by me well in keeping the men steady, as did Assistant Surgeon Minor, and Lieutenant, now Captain, Jackson. How the men in the rear were behaving I could not tell,—not so coolly, I afterwards found, because they were more entirely bewildered, supposing, until the shots came, that the column had simply halted for a moment's rest, as had been done once or twice before. They did not know who or where their assailants might be, and the fall of the man beside me created a hasty rumor that I was killed, so that it was on the whole an alarming experience for them. They kept together very tolerably, however, while our assailants, dividing, rode along on each side through the open pine-barren, firing into our ranks, but mostly over the heads of the men. My soldiers in turn fired rapidly,—too rapidly, being yet beginners,—and it was evident that, dim as it was, both sides had opportunity to do some execution.

There was a commotion among the advance guard as they came to a confused stop, and almost at the same moment, a more threatening sound, like galloping horses, echoed in front of us. The moonlight outside the woods created a hazy atmosphere that was more disorienting than complete darkness because our eyes couldn't adjust as well. Yet, I thought, and others claimed, that they saw the leader of an approaching group on a white horse pulling up in the path; some insisted he pulled a pistol from the holster and aimed it; others heard him shout, "Charge them! Surround them!" But all this was drowned out by the initial rifle shots from our advance guard, and since it was impossible to see clearly, I ordered the men to fix their bayonets and kneel in the cover on either side of the path. I watched with satisfaction as the brave guys, with Sergeant McIntyre leading them, settled into the grass calmly and cautiously, as if they were just hunting wild turkeys. Perhaps at the first shot, a man fell next to me. I barely noticed it, as busy as I was keeping an eye on my men and the enemy, strategizing our next move. Some of our soldiers, misunderstanding the command to "Fix bayonets," actually charged with them, racing into the dim woods, chasing nothing but the flickering tail of an imaginary horse—since we could hardly see anything at all. I noted this eagerness with both pleasure and concern, as our biggest risk was confusion and scattering; and it would be unusual for infantry to chase cavalry. Captain Metcalf stood by me, helping to keep the men steady, along with Assistant Surgeon Minor and Lieutenant, now Captain, Jackson. I couldn't tell how the men in the rear were doing—not as coolly, I later discovered, as they were completely bewildered, thinking that the column had only stopped for a quick break, as had happened a couple of times before. They were unsure who or where their attackers were, and the fall of the man next to me sparked a hasty rumor that I was killed, making it a pretty alarming experience for them. They stayed relatively together, though, while our attackers split up and rode on either side through the open pine barrens, firing into our ranks, mostly over the heads of the men. My soldiers, in turn, fired quickly—perhaps too quickly, as they were still inexperienced—and it was clear that, despite the gloom, both sides had a chance to cause some damage.

I could hardly tell whether the fight had lasted ten minutes or an hour, when, as the enemy's fire had evidently ceased or slackened, I gave the order to cease firing. But it was very difficult at first to make them desist: the taste of gunpowder was too intoxicating. One of them was heard to mutter, indignantly, "Why de Cunnel order Cease firing, when de Secesh blazin' away at de rate ob ten dollar a day?" Every incidental occurrence seemed somehow to engrave itself upon my perceptions, without interrupting the main course of thought. Thus I know, that, in one of the pauses of the affair, there came wailing through the woods a cracked female voice, as if calling back some stray husband who had run out to join in the affray, "John, John, are you going to leave me, John? Are you going to let me and the children be killed, John?" I suppose the poor thing's fears of gunpowder were very genuine; but it was such a wailing squeak, and so infinitely ludicrous, and John was probably ensconced so very safely in some hollow tree, that I could see some of the men showing all their white teeth in the very midst of the fight. But soon this sound, with all others, had ceased, and left us in peaceful possession of the field.

I could hardly tell if the fight had lasted ten minutes or an hour when, noticing the enemy's fire had clearly stopped or slowed down, I ordered a ceasefire. But at first, it was really tough to get them to stop: the thrill of gunpowder was too exhilarating. One of them was heard muttering, annoyed, "Why does the Colonel order Cease firing, when the Secesh are blasting away at the rate of ten dollars a day?" Every little thing that happened seemed to stick in my mind without interrupting my main thoughts. I remember, during one of the lulls in the action, a cracked female voice wailing through the woods, as if calling back some husband who had gone out to join the fight, “John, John, are you going to leave me, John? Are you going to let me and the kids get killed, John?” I guess the poor woman's fears about the gunfire were very real; but it was such a squeaky wail and so incredibly ridiculous, and John was probably safely tucked away in some hollow tree, that I could see some of the men grinning widely in the middle of the fight. But soon this sound, along with all the others, faded away, leaving us in peaceful control of the field.

I have made the more of this little affair because it was the first stand-up fight in which my men had been engaged, though they had been under fire, in an irregular way, in their small early expeditions. To me personally the event was of the greatest value: it had given us all an opportunity to test each other, and our abstract surmises were changed into positive knowledge. Hereafter it was of small importance what nonsense might be talked or written about colored troops; so long as mine did not flinch, it made no difference to me. My brave young officers, themselves mostly new to danger, viewed the matter much as I did; and yet we were under bonds of life and death to form a correct opinion, which was more than could be said of the Northern editors, and our verdict was proportionately of greater value.

I amplified the significance of this little event because it was the first real fight my soldiers had participated in, even though they had been under fire in a less direct way during their early missions. For me personally, this moment was incredibly valuable: it allowed us all to evaluate one another, and our previous theories were replaced with actual knowledge. Moving forward, it didn’t really matter what nonsense was said or written about colored troops; as long as mine stood strong, I didn’t care. My brave young officers, most of whom were also new to danger, felt similarly; yet we had a serious responsibility to form an accurate opinion, which was more than could be said for the Northern editors, and our judgment was correspondingly more valuable.

I was convinced from appearances that we had been victorious, so far, though I could not suppose that this would be the last of it. We knew neither the numbers of the enemy, nor their plans, nor their present condition: whether they had surprised us or whether we had surprised them was all a mystery. Corporal Sutton was urgent to go on and complete the enterprise. All my impulses said the same thing; but then I had the most explicit injunctions from General Saxton to risk as little as possible in this first enterprise, because of the fatal effect on public sentiment of even an honorable defeat. We had now an honorable victory, so far as it went; the officers and men around me were in good spirits, but the rest of the column might be nervous; and it seemed so important to make the first fight an entire success, that I thought it wiser to let well alone; nor have I ever changed this opinion. For one's self, Montrose's verse may be well applied, "To win or lose it all." But one has no right to deal thus lightly with the fortunes of a race, and that was the weight which I always felt as resting on our action. If my raw infantry force had stood unflinchingly a night-surprise from "de boss cavalry," as they reverentially termed them, I felt that a good beginning had been made. All hope of surprising the enemy's camp was now at an end; I was willing and ready to fight the cavalry over again, but it seemed wiser that we, not they, should select the ground.

I was convinced from the looks of things that we had won for now, although I couldn't believe this would be the end of it. We didn’t know how many enemies we were facing, what their plans were, or what their current state was: whether they had caught us off guard or we had surprised them was a complete mystery. Corporal Sutton was eager to push forward and finish the job. I felt the same way, but I also had very clear instructions from General Saxton to minimize risks in this first operation, due to the potentially devastating impact an honorable defeat could have on public opinion. We had a respectable victory so far; the officers and men around me were in good spirits, but the rest of the column might be on edge. It felt crucial to ensure the first fight was a total success, so I thought it was smarter to leave things as they were; I’ve never wavered from that view. For oneself, the lines from Montrose could apply, “To win or lose it all.” But we can’t take such risks lightly with the future of a whole race, and that's the weight I always felt resting on our decisions. If my inexperienced infantry could withstand a night surprise from “de boss cavalry,” as they respectfully referred to them, I felt we had made a solid start. All hope of surprising the enemy’s camp was now out the window; I was prepared and willing to fight the cavalry again, but it seemed wiser for us to choose the battlefield, not them.

Attending to the wounded, therefore, and making as we best could stretchers for those who were to be carried, including the remains of the man killed at the first discharge (Private William Parsons of Company G), and others who seemed at the point of death, we marched through the woods to the landing,—expecting at every moment to be involved in another fight. This not occurring, I was more than ever satisfied that we had won a victory; for it was obvious that a mounted force would not allow a detachment of infantry to march two miles through open woods by night without renewing the fight, unless they themselves had suffered a good deal. On arrival at the landing, seeing that there was to be no immediate affray, I sent most of the men on board, and called for volunteers to remain on shore with me and hold the plantation-house till morning. They eagerly offered; and I was glad to see them, when posted as sentinels by Lieutenants Hyde and Jackson, who stayed with me, pace their beats as steadily and challenge as coolly as veterans, though of course there was some powder wasted on imaginary foes. Greatly to my surprise, however, we had no other enemies to encounter. We did not yet know that we had killed the first lieutenant of the cavalry, and that our opponents had retreated to the woods in dismay, without daring to return to their camp. This at least was the account we heard from prisoners afterwards, and was evidently the tale current in the neighborhood, though the statements published in Southern newspapers did not correspond. Admitting the death of Lieutenant Jones, the Tallahassee Floridian of February 14th stated that "Captain Clark, finding the enemy in strong force, fell back with his command to camp, and removed his ordnance and commissary and other stores, with twelve negroes on their way to the enemy, captured on that day."

Taking care of the wounded and doing our best to make stretchers for those who needed to be carried, including the body of Private William Parsons from Company G, who was killed in the first attack, and others who appeared to be dying, we marched through the woods to the landing, expecting to get caught up in another fight at any moment. Since that didn't happen, I felt even more convinced that we had won a victory; it was clear that a mounted force wouldn’t let a group of infantry march two miles through open woods at night without starting another fight, unless they had taken significant losses themselves. When we arrived at the landing and realized there wouldn't be an immediate altercation, I sent most of the men aboard and asked for volunteers to stay onshore with me to guard the plantation house until morning. They eagerly stepped up, and I was pleased to see them, as they paced their posts like seasoned sentinels under the command of Lieutenants Hyde and Jackson, remaining calm while occasionally wasting powder on imagined threats. To my surprise, we encountered no other enemies. We still didn't know that we had killed the first lieutenant of the cavalry, and that our foes had retreated into the woods in fear, too scared to return to their camp. This is at least what we learned later from prisoners, and it seemed to be the story circulating in the area, even though the accounts in Southern newspapers didn't match. While the Tallahassee Floridian on February 14th acknowledged the death of Lieutenant Jones, it claimed that "Captain Clark, finding the enemy in strong force, fell back with his command to camp and removed his ordnance and commissary and other stores, along with twelve negroes on their way to the enemy, captured that day."

In the morning, my invaluable surgeon, Dr. Rogers, sent me his report of killed and wounded; and I have been since permitted to make the following extracts from his notes: "One man killed instantly by ball through the heart, and seven wounded, one of whom will die. Braver men never lived. One man with two bullet-holes through the large muscles of the shoulders and neck brought off from the scene of action, two miles distant, two muskets; and not a murmur has escaped his lips. Another, Robert Sutton, with three wounds,—one of which, being on the skull, may cost him his life,—would not report himself till compelled to do so by his officers. While dressing his wounds, he quietly talked of what they had done, and of what they yet could do. To-day I have had the Colonel order him to obey me. He is perfectly quiet and cool, but takes this whole affair with the religious bearing of a man who realizes that freedom is sweeter than life. Yet another soldier did not report himself at all, but remained all night on guard, and possibly I should not have known of his having had a buck-shot in his shoulder, if some duty requiring a sound shoulder had not been required of him to-day." This last, it may be added, had persuaded a comrade to dig out the buck-shot, for fear of being ordered on the sick-list. And one of those who were carried to the vessel—a man wounded through the lungs—asked only if I were safe, the contrary having been reported. An officer may be pardoned some enthusiasm for such men as these.

In the morning, my invaluable surgeon, Dr. Rogers, sent me his report on the killed and wounded, and I have been allowed to share the following excerpts from his notes: "One man was killed instantly by a bullet to the heart, and seven were wounded, one of whom will die. Braver men have never lived. One man, with two bullet holes in the large muscles of his shoulders and neck, was brought off from the battlefield, two miles away, carrying two muskets, and he didn’t complain at all. Another, Robert Sutton, had three wounds—one of which, on his skull, may cost him his life—yet he wouldn’t report himself until his officers insisted. While I was treating his wounds, he calmly talked about what they had accomplished and what they could still do. Today, I had the Colonel order him to follow my instructions. He remains completely calm and collected, but he approaches this whole situation with the dignified attitude of someone who understands that freedom is more precious than life itself. Another soldier didn’t report his injuries at all but stayed on guard throughout the night, and I might not have known about the buckshot in his shoulder if some duty requiring a healthy shoulder hadn’t come up for him today." It’s worth noting that this last soldier convinced a comrade to remove the buckshot, fearing he would be put on the sick list. One of those who were taken to the ship—a man wounded in the lungs—only asked if I was safe, as the opposite had been reported. An officer can be forgiven for feeling a bit enthusiastic about such men as these.

The anxious night having passed away without an attack, another problem opened with the morning. For the first time, my officers and men found themselves in possession of an enemy's abode; and though there was but little temptation to plunder, I knew that I must here begin to draw the line. I had long since resolved to prohibit absolutely all indiscriminate pilfering and wanton outrage, and to allow nothing to be taken or destroyed but by proper authority. The men, to my great satisfaction, entered into this view at once, and so did (perhaps a shade less readily, in some cases) the officers. The greatest trouble was with the steamboat hands, and I resolved to let them go ashore as little as possible. Most articles of furniture were already, however, before our visit, gone from the plantation-house, which was now used only as a picket-station. The only valuable article was a pianoforte, for which a regular packing-box lay invitingly ready outside. I had made up my mind, in accordance with the orders given to naval commanders in that department,* to burn all picket-stations, and all villages from which I should be covertly attacked, and nothing else; and as this house was destined to the flames, I should have left the piano in it, but for the seductions of that box. With such a receptacle all ready, even to the cover, it would have seemed like flying in the face of Providence not to put the piano in. I ordered it removed, therefore, and afterwards presented it to the school for colored children at Fernandina. This I mention because it was the only article of property I ever took, or knowingly suffered to be taken, in the enemy's country, save for legitimate military uses, from first to last; nor would I have taken this, but for the thought of the school, and, as aforesaid, the temptation of the box. If any other officer has been more rigid, with equal opportunities, let him cast the first stone.

The anxious night passed without an attack, but a new issue arose with the morning. For the first time, my officers and men found themselves in an enemy's home; and although there was little temptation to loot, I knew I had to set clear boundaries. I had already decided to completely ban any indiscriminate stealing and needless destruction, allowing nothing to be taken or destroyed without proper authority. To my great relief, the men quickly agreed with this approach, and the officers did too (though some were a bit less enthusiastic). The biggest challenge was with the steamboat crew, and I decided to let them go ashore as little as possible. Most of the furniture was already gone from the plantation house before our arrival, which was now used solely as a picket station. The only valuable item left was a piano, and a packing box was conveniently waiting outside. In line with the orders given to naval commanders in that area,* I had resolved to burn all picket stations and any villages from which I was secretly attacked, but nothing else; and since this house was set for destruction, I would have left the piano in it, if not for the allure of that box. With such a perfect container ready, even with a cover, it would have felt wrong not to use it for the piano. So, I ordered it removed and later donated it to the school for colored children in Fernandina. I mention this because it was the only piece of property I ever took, or knowingly allowed to be taken, in enemy territory, except for legitimate military purposes, from beginning to end; and I wouldn’t have taken this, except for the thought of the school and, as mentioned, the temptation of the box. If any other officer has been stricter in similar circumstances, let him cast the first stone.

* "It is my desire to avoid the destruction of private property, unless used for picket or guard-stations, or for other military purposes, by the enemy.... Of course, if fired upon from any place, it is your duty, if possible, to destroy it." Letter of ADMIRAL DUPONT, commanding South Atlantic Squadron, to LIEUTENANT-COMMANDER HUGHES of United States Gunboat Mohawk, Fernandina Harbor.

* "I want to prevent the destruction of private property, unless it’s being used for picket or guard stations, or for other military purposes by the enemy... Naturally, if you are fired upon from any location, it is your duty, if possible, to destroy it." Letter of ADMIRAL DUPONT, commanding South Atlantic Squadron, to LIEUTENANT-COMMANDER HUGHES of United States Gunboat Mohawk, Fernandina Harbor.

I think the zest with which the men finally set fire to the house at my order was enhanced by this previous abstemiousness; but there is a fearful fascination in the use of fire, which every child knows in the abstract, and which I found to hold true in the practice. On our way down river we had opportunity to test this again.

I believe the enthusiasm with which the men finally set fire to the house at my command was heightened by their earlier restraint; however, there’s a terrifying allure in using fire, something every child understands conceptually, which I discovered to be true in reality. On our journey down the river, we had another chance to test this again.

The ruined town of St. Mary's had at that time a bad reputation, among both naval and military men. Lying but a short distance above Fernandina, on the Georgia side, it was occasionally visited by our gunboats. I was informed that the only residents of the town were three old women, who were apparently kept there as spies,—that, on our approach, the aged crones would come out and wave white handkerchiefs,—that they would receive us hospitably, profess to be profoundly loyal, and exhibit a portrait of Washington,—that they would solemnly assure us that no Rebel pickets had been there for many weeks,—but that in the adjoining yard we should find fresh horse-tracks, and that we should be fired upon by guerillas the moment we left the wharf. My officers had been much excited by these tales; and I had assured them that, if this programme were literally carried out, we would straightway return and burn the town, or what was left of it, for our share. It was essential to show my officers and men that, while rigid against irregular outrage, we could still be inexorable against the enemy.

The ruined town of St. Mary's had a bad reputation at that time among both navy and army personnel. Located just a short distance above Fernandina on the Georgia side, it was occasionally visited by our gunboats. I was told that the only people living there were three elderly women, who were apparently kept there as spies. As we approached, these old ladies would come out and wave white handkerchiefs. They would welcome us warmly, claim to be deeply loyal, and show us a portrait of Washington. They would solemnly assure us that no Rebel pickets had been there for weeks, but that we would find fresh horse tracks in the yard and that guerillas would fire on us as soon as we left the wharf. My officers were quite stirred up by these stories, and I promised them that if this scenario played out as described, we would immediately return and burn the town, or what was left of it, as our share. It was important to show my officers and men that while we were tough against irregular violence, we could also be relentless against the enemy.

We had previously planned to stop at this town, on our way down river, for some valuable lumber which we had espied on a wharf; and gliding down the swift current, shelling a few bluffs as we passed, we soon reached it. Punctual as the figures in a panorama appeared the old ladies with their white handkerchiefs. Taking possession of the town, much of which had previously been destroyed by the gunboats, and stationing the color-guard, to their infinite delight, in the cupola of the most conspicuous house, I deployed skirmishers along the exposed suburb, and set a detail of men at work on the lumber. After a stately and decorous interview with the queens of society of St. Mary's,—is it Scott who says that nothing improves the manners like piracy?—I peacefully withdrew the men when the work was done. There were faces of disappointment among the officers,—for all felt a spirit of mischief after the last night's adventure,—when, just as we had fairly swung out into the stream and were under way, there came, like the sudden burst of a tropical tornado, a regular little hail-storm of bullets into the open end of the boat, driving every gunner in an instant from his post, and surprising even those who were looking to be surprised. The shock was but for a second; and though the bullets had pattered precisely like the sound of hail upon the iron cannon, yet nobody was hurt. With very respectable promptness, order was restored, our own shells were flying into the woods from which the attack proceeded, and we were steaming up to the wharf again, according to promise.

We had originally planned to stop at this town on our way downriver to grab some valuable lumber we spotted on a wharf. As we glided down the swift current, skirting a few bluffs along the way, we soon arrived. The old ladies waved their white handkerchiefs, appearing like figures in a panorama. Taking control of the town, much of which had already been damaged by the gunboats, we stationed the color guard, much to their delight, in the cupola of the most noticeable house. I deployed skirmishers along the exposed suburb and assigned a group of men to work on the lumber. After a formal and polite meeting with the social elite of St. Mary's—Isn't it Scott who says that nothing improves manners like piracy?—I peacefully withdrew the men when the job was finished. The officers looked disappointed because everyone was feeling a little mischievous after the previous night's adventure when, just as we swung out into the stream and were on our way, a sudden flurry of bullets rained down on the open end of the boat, driving every gunner away from their posts and catching even those expecting trouble off guard. The shock only lasted a second, and while the bullets sounded just like hail hitting the iron cannon, nobody was injured. With impressive speed, order was restored, our own shells were fired into the woods where the attack came from, and we were heading back to the wharf as promised.

Who shall describe the theatrical attitudes assumed by the old ladies as they reappeared at the front-door,—being luckily out of direct range,—and set the handkerchiefs in wilder motion than ever? They brandished them, they twirled them after the manner of the domestic mop, they clasped their hands, handkerchiefs included. Meanwhile their friends in the wood popped away steadily at us, with small effect; and occasionally an invisible field-piece thundered feebly from another quarter, with equally invisible results. Reaching the wharf, one company, under Lieutenant (now Captain) Danil-son, was promptly deployed in search of our assailants, who soon grew silent. Not so the old ladies, when I announced to them my purpose, and added, with extreme regret, that, as the wind was high, I should burn only that half of the town which lay to leeward of their house, which did not, after all, amount to much. Between gratitude for this degree of mercy, and imploring appeals for greater, the treacherous old ladies manoeuvred with clasped hands and demonstrative handkerchiefs around me, impairing the effect of their eloquence by constantly addressing me as "Mr. Captain"; for I have observed, that, while the sternest officer is greatly propitiated by attributing to him a rank a little higher than his own, yet no one is ever mollified by an error in the opposite direction. I tried, however, to disregard such low considerations, and to strike the correct mean between the sublime patriot and the unsanctified incendiary, while I could find no refuge from weak contrition save in greater and greater depths of courtesy; and so melodramatic became our interview that some of the soldiers still maintain that "dem dar ole Secesh women been a-gwine for kiss de Cunnel," before we ended. But of this monstrous accusation I wish to register an explicit denial, once for all.

Who can describe the dramatic gestures of the old ladies as they reappeared at the front door—thankfully out of direct sight—and waved their handkerchiefs more vigorously than ever? They waved them around, twirled them like a mop, and clasped their hands, handkerchiefs included. Meanwhile, their friends in the woods kept firing at us, but with little effect; occasionally, an unseen cannon boomed softly from a different place, with equally invisible results. When we reached the wharf, one group, led by Lieutenant (now Captain) Danielson, was quickly deployed to look for our attackers, who soon fell silent. The old ladies, however, were quite vocal when I told them my plan and added, with great regret, that since the wind was high, I would only burn down the part of the town that was downwind of their house, which honestly wasn’t much. Caught between gratitude for this small mercy and desperate requests for more, the scheming old ladies surrounded me with clasped hands and exaggerated handkerchiefs, undermining their pleas by constantly calling me "Mr. Captain." I've noticed that while the sternest officer appreciates being given a slightly higher rank, no one is ever pleased by being addressed incorrectly in the opposite way. Still, I tried to overlook such trivial matters and find the right balance between noble patriot and reckless arsonist, with nowhere to escape my own embarrassment except in increasingly polite behavior. Our conversation became so dramatic that some soldiers still claim that "them old Secesh women were gonna kiss the Colonel" before it concluded. But I want to officially deny this ridiculous accusation once and for all.

Dropping down to Fernandina unmolested after this affair, we were kindly received by the military and naval commanders,—Colonel Hawley, of the Seventh Connecticut (now Brigadier-General Hawley), and Lieutenant-Commander Hughes, of the gunboat Mohawk. It turned out very opportunely that both of these officers had special errands to suggest still farther up the St. Mary's, and precisely in the region where I wished to go. Colonel Hawley showed me a letter from the War Department, requesting him to ascertain the possibility of obtaining a supply of brick for Fort Clinch from the brickyard which had furnished the original materials, but which had not been visited since the perilous river-trip of the Ottawa. Lieutenant Hughes wished to obtain information for the Admiral respecting a Rebel steamer,—the Berosa,—said to be lying somewhere up the river, and awaiting her chance to run the blockade. I jumped at the opportunity. Berosa and brickyard,—both were near Wood-stock, the former home of Corporal Sutton; he was ready and eager to pilot us up the river; the moon would be just right that evening, setting at 3h. 19m. A.M.; and our boat was precisely the one to undertake the expedition. Its double-headed shape was just what was needed in that swift and crooked stream; the exposed pilot-houses had been tolerably barricaded with the thick planks from St. Simon's; and we further obtained some sand-bags from Fort Clinch, through the aid of Captain Sears, the officer in charge, who had originally suggested the expedition after brick. In return for this aid, the Planter was sent back to the wharf at St. Mary's, to bring away a considerable supply of the same precious article, which we had observed near the wharf. Meanwhile the John Adams was coaling from naval supplies, through the kindness of Lieutenant Hughes; and the Ben De Ford was taking in the lumber which we had yesterday brought down. It was a great disappointment to be unable to take the latter vessel up the river; but I was unwillingly convinced that, though the depth of water might be sufficient, yet her length would be unmanageable in the swift current and sharp turns. The Planter must also be sent on a separate cruise, as her weak and disabled machinery made her useless for my purpose. Two hundred men were therefore transferred, as before, to the narrow hold of the John Adams, in addition to the company permanently stationed on board to work the guns. At seven o'clock on the evening of January 29th, beneath a lovely moon, we steamed up the river.

Dropping down to Fernandina without any trouble after this incident, we were warmly welcomed by the military and naval leaders—Colonel Hawley of the Seventh Connecticut (now Brigadier-General Hawley) and Lieutenant-Commander Hughes of the gunboat Mohawk. It turned out to be very timely that both of these officers had special tasks to suggest further up the St. Mary's, right in the area I wanted to go. Colonel Hawley showed me a letter from the War Department, asking him to find out if it was possible to get a supply of bricks for Fort Clinch from the brickyard that had originally provided the materials, which hadn’t been visited since the dangerous river trip of the Ottawa. Lieutenant Hughes wanted to gather information for the Admiral about a Rebel steamer—the Berosa—reported to be somewhere up the river, waiting for its chance to run the blockade. I jumped at the chance. The Berosa and the brickyard were both near Woodstock, the former home of Corporal Sutton; he was ready and eager to guide us up the river; the moon would be just right that night, setting at 3:19 A.M.; and our boat was exactly the one to take on this mission. Its double-headed shape was perfect for that fast and winding stream; the exposed pilot houses had been fairly barricaded with thick planks from St. Simon's; and we also got some sandbags from Fort Clinch, thanks to Captain Sears, the officer in charge, who had originally suggested the trip for bricks. In exchange for this help, the Planter was sent back to the wharf at St. Mary's to bring back a good supply of the same valuable material we had seen near the wharf. Meanwhile, the John Adams was refueling from naval supplies, thanks to Lieutenant Hughes; and the Ben De Ford was taking on the lumber we had brought down yesterday. It was a huge disappointment not to be able to take the latter vessel up the river; but I was reluctantly convinced that, although the water depth might be enough, her length would make her unmanageable in the fast current and sharp turns. The Planter also had to go on a separate mission, as her weak and damaged machinery made her useless for my needs. Two hundred men were therefore transferred, as before, to the cramped hold of the John Adams, in addition to the crew permanently stationed on board to operate the guns. At seven o'clock on the evening of January 29th, under a beautiful moon, we steamed up the river.

Never shall I forget the mystery and excitement of that night. I know nothing in life more fascinating than the nocturnal ascent of an unknown river, leading far into an enemy's country, where one glides in the dim moonlight between dark hills and meadows, each turn of the channel making it seem like an inland lake, and cutting you off as by a barrier from all behind,—with no sign of human life, but an occasional picket-fire left glimmering beneath the bank, or the yelp of a dog from some low-lying plantation. On such occasions every nerve is strained to its utmost tension; all dreams of romance appear to promise immediate fulfilment; all lights on board the vessel are obscured, loud voices are hushed; you fancy a thousand men on shore, and yet see nothing; the lonely river, unaccustomed to furrowing keels, lapses by the vessel with a treacherous sound; and all the senses are merged in a sort of anxious trance. Three tunes I have had in full perfection this fascinating experience; but that night was the first, and its zest was the keenest. It will come back to me in dreams, if I live a thousand years.

Never will I forget the mystery and excitement of that night. There's nothing in life more captivating than the nighttime journey up an unknown river, stretching deep into enemy territory, where you glide in the soft moonlight between dark hills and meadows. Each bend of the river makes it feel like an inland lake, cutting you off from everything behind—as if there’s a barrier—without a sign of human life, except for the occasional glow of a campfire flickering beneath the bank or the distant bark of a dog from some nearby plantation. In moments like these, every nerve is on edge; all dreams of adventure seem to promise immediate realization; all lights on the boat are dimmed, loud voices are quieted; you imagine a thousand men on shore, yet see nothing; the lonely river, unused to the disturbance of boats, flows by the vessel with a deceptive sound, and all the senses blend into an anxious trance. I've experienced this enchanting feeling three times in total, but that night was the first, and its thrill was the strongest. It will return to me in dreams, even if I live for a thousand years.

I feared no attack during our ascent,—that danger was for our return; but I feared the intricate navigation of the river, though I did not fully know, till the actual experience, how dangerous it was. We passed without trouble far above the scene of our first fight,—the Battle of the Hundred Pines, as my officers had baptized it; and ever, as we ascended, the banks grew steeper, the current swifter, the channel more tortuous and more encumbered with projecting branches and drifting wood. No piloting less skilful than that of Corporal Sutton and his mate, James Bezzard, could have carried us through, I thought; and no side-wheel steamer less strong than a ferry-boat could have borne the crash and force with which we struck the wooded banks of the river. But the powerful paddles, built to break the Northern ice, could crush the Southern pine as well; and we came safely out of entanglements that at first seemed formidable. We had the tide with us, which makes steering far more difficult; and, in the sharp angles of the river, there was often no resource but to run the bow boldly on shore, let the stern swing round, and then reverse the motion. As the reversing machinery was generally out of order, the engineer stupid or frightened, and the captain excited, this involved moments of tolerably concentrated anxiety. Eight times we grounded in the upper waters, and once lay aground for half an hour; but at last we dropped anchor before the little town of Woodstock, after moonset and an hour before daybreak, just as I had planned, and so quietly that scarcely a dog barked, and not a soul in the town, as we afterwards found, knew of our arrival.

I wasn’t worried about being attacked on our way up—that threat was for our return; but I was concerned about navigating the river, even though I didn’t realize how dangerous it was until we actually experienced it. We passed by the site of our first battle—the Battle of the Hundred Pines, as my officers named it—without any issues; but as we moved up the river, the banks got steeper, the current stronger, and the channel more winding and cluttered with branches and debris. I thought no piloting less skilled than that of Corporal Sutton and his partner, James Bezzard, could have taken us through, and that no side-wheel steamer less sturdy than a ferry boat could have handled the impact and force with which we hit the tree-lined banks. But the robust paddles that could break through Northern ice were also more than capable of smashing Southern pine, and we managed to escape from obstacles that initially seemed intimidating. The tide was with us, which made steering a lot trickier; and at the river's sharp bends, our only option was often to push the bow firmly onto the shore, let the stern swing around, and then reverse direction. Since the reversing machinery was usually out of order, the engineer was either incompetent or scared, and the captain was excited, this led to moments of significant anxiety. We ran aground eight times in the upper waters, and once we were stuck for half an hour; but eventually, we dropped anchor before the small town of Woodstock, after the moon had set and an hour before dawn, just as I had planned, and so quietly that barely a dog barked, and not a single person in town, as we later discovered, knew we had arrived.

As silently as possible, the great flat-boat which we had brought from St. Simon's was filled with men. Major Strong was sent on shore with two companies,—those of Captain James and Captain Metcalf,—with instructions to surround the town quietly, allow no one to leave it, molest no one, and hold as temporary prisoners every man whom he found. I watched them push off into the darkness, got the remaining force ready to land, and then paced the deck for an hour in silent watchfulness, waiting for rifle-shots. Not a sound came from the shore, save the barking of dogs and the morning crow of cocks; the time seemed interminable; but when daylight came, I landed, and found a pair of scarlet trousers pacing on their beat before every house in the village, and a small squad of prisoners, stunted and forlorn as Falstaff's ragged regiment, already hi hand. I observed with delight the good demeanor of my men towards these forlorn Anglo-Saxons, and towards the more tumultuous women. Even one soldier, who threatened to throw an old termagant into the river, took care to append the courteous epithet "Madam."

As quietly as possible, the large flatboat we had brought from St. Simon's was filled with men. Major Strong was sent ashore with two companies—those of Captain James and Captain Metcalf—with orders to quietly surround the town, prevent anyone from leaving, not to harm anyone, and to temporarily detain every man he found. I watched them push off into the darkness, got the remaining forces ready to land, and then walked the deck for an hour in silent vigilance, waiting for gunfire. There was no sound from the shore, other than the barking of dogs and the morning crowing of roosters; the wait felt endless. But when daylight arrived, I landed and saw a pair of scarlet trousers patrolling in front of every house in the village, along with a small group of prisoners, looking as disheveled and miserable as Falstaff's ragged regiment, already in custody. I was pleased to see how well my men treated these downtrodden Anglo-Saxons and the more boisterous women. Even one soldier, who threatened to toss an old shrew into the river, made sure to add the polite title "Madam."

I took a survey of the premises. The chief house, a pretty one with picturesque outbuildings, was that of Mrs. A., who owned the mills and lumber-wharves adjoining. The wealth of these wharves had not been exaggerated. There was lumber enough to freight half a dozen steamers, and I half regretted that I had agreed to take down a freight of bricks instead. Further researches made me grateful that I had already explained to my men the difference between public foraging and private plunder. Along the river-bank I found building after building crowded with costly furniture, all neatly packed, just as it was sent up from St. Mary's when that town was abandoned. Pianos were a drug; china, glass-ware, mahogany, pictures, all were here. And here were my men, who knew that their own labor had earned for their masters these luxuries, or such as these; their own wives and children were still sleeping on the floor, perhaps, at Beaufort or Fernandina; and yet they submitted, almost without a murmur, to the enforced abstinence. Bed and bedding for our hospitals they might take from those store-rooms,—such as the surgeon selected,—also an old flag which we found in a corner, and an old field-piece (which the regiment still possesses),—but after this the doors were closed and left unmolested. It cost a struggle to some of the men, whose wives were destitute, I know; but their pride was very easily touched, and when this abstinence was once recognized as a rule, they claimed it as an honor, in this and all succeeding expeditions. I flatter myself that, if they had once been set upon wholesale plundering, they would have done it as thoroughly as their betters; but I have always been infinitely grateful, both for the credit and for the discipline of the regiment,—as well as for the men's subsequent lives,—that the opposite method was adopted.

I surveyed the area. The main house, a lovely one with charming outbuildings, belonged to Mrs. A., who owned the nearby mills and lumber wharves. The wealth generated by these wharves was not overstated. There was enough lumber to fill half a dozen steamers, and I almost wished I hadn’t agreed to haul bricks instead. Further investigation made me appreciate that I had already explained to my men the difference between public foraging and private theft. Along the riverbank, I discovered building after building filled with expensive furniture, all neatly packed, just as it had arrived from St. Mary's when that town was deserted. Pianos were abundant; china, glassware, mahogany, paintings—everything was here. And my men were aware that their hard work had earned these luxuries for their employers, while their own wives and children might still be sleeping on the floor in Beaufort or Fernandina. Yet, they accepted the enforced restrictions almost without complaint. They could take beds and bedding for our hospitals from those storerooms—whatever the surgeon chose—an old flag we found in a corner, and an old cannon (which the regiment still has), but after that, the doors were closed and left undisturbed. It was a struggle for some of the men, knowing their wives were in need, but their pride was easily affected, and once this restraint was established as a rule, they took pride in it during this and all future missions. I like to think that, had they been encouraged to engage in rampant looting, they would have done it just as thoroughly as others might have, but I am infinitely grateful, for the reputation and discipline of the regiment—as well as for the men’s later lives—that the opposite approach was taken.

When the morning was a little advanced, I called on Mrs. A., who received me in quite a stately way at her own door with "To what am I indebted for the honor of this visit, Sir?" The foreign name of the family, and the tropical look of the buildings, made it seem (as, indeed, did all the rest of the adventure) like a chapter out of "Amyas Leigh"; but as I had happened to hear that the lady herself was a Philadelphian, and her deceased husband a New-Yorker, I could not feel even that modicum of reverence due to sincere Southerners. However, I wished to present my credentials; so, calling up my companion, I said that I believed she had been previously acquainted with Corporal Robert Sutton? I never saw a finer bit of unutterable indignation than came over the face of my hostess, as she slowly recognized him. She drew herself up, and dropped out the monosyllables of her answer as if they were so many drops of nitric acid. "Ah," quoth my lady, "we called him Bob!"

When the morning was a bit further along, I visited Mrs. A., who greeted me quite formally at her door with, "What do I owe the honor of this visit to, Sir?" The foreign name of the family, along with the tropical look of the buildings, made it feel like a scene out of "Amyas Leigh"; but since I had heard that the lady herself was from Philadelphia and her late husband was from New York, I couldn’t muster even that small amount of respect typically reserved for genuine Southerners. Nonetheless, I wanted to present my credentials, so I called my companion over and mentioned that I believed she had met Corporal Robert Sutton before? I’ve never seen such a perfect display of uncontainable outrage cross my hostess's face as she slowly recognized him. She straightened up and delivered her one-word reply as if it were a drop of nitric acid. "Ah," she said, "we called him Bob!"

It was a group for a painter. The whole drama of the war seemed to reverse itself in an instant, and my tall, well-dressed, imposing, philosophic Corporal dropped down the immeasurable depth into a mere plantation "Bob" again. So at least in my imagination; not to that person himself. Too essentially dignified in his nature to be moved by words where substantial realities were in question, he simply turned from the lady, touched his hat to me, and asked if I would wish to see the slave-jail, as he had the keys in his possession.

It was a gathering for a painter. Suddenly, the entire drama of the war seemed to reverse, and my tall, well-dressed, impressive, philosophical Corporal fell back into just being a simple guy named "Bob." At least, that’s how I pictured it; not how he saw himself. He was too inherently dignified to be swayed by words when real issues were at stake. He just turned away from the lady, tipped his hat to me, and asked if I wanted to see the slave jail since he had the keys with him.

If he fancied that I was in danger of being overcome by blandishments, and needed to be recalled to realities, it was a master-stroke.

If he thought I was at risk of being swayed by flattery and needed to be brought back to reality, it was a brilliant move.

I must say that, when the door of that villanous edifice was thrown open before me, I felt glad that my main interview with its lady proprietor had passed before I saw it. It was a small building, like a Northern corn-barn, and seemed to have as prominent and as legitimate a place among the outbuildings of the establishment. In the middle of the door was a large staple with a rusty chain, like an ox-chain, for fastening a victim down. When the door had been opened after the death of the late proprietor, my informant said, a man was found padlocked in that chain. We found also three pairs of stocks of various construction, two of which had smaller as well as larger holes, evidently for the feet of women or children. In a building near by we found something far more complicated, which was perfectly unintelligible till the men explained all its parts: a machine so contrived that a person once imprisoned in it could neither sit, stand, nor lie, but must support the body half raised, in a position scarcely endurable. I have since bitterly reproached myself for leaving this piece of ingenuity behind; but it would have cost much labor to remove it, and to bring away the other trophies seemed then enough. I remember the unutterable loathing with which I leaned against the door of that prison-house; I had thought myself seasoned to any conceivable horrors of Slavery, but it seemed as if the visible presence of that den of sin would choke me. Of course it would have been burned to the ground by us, but that this would have involved the sacrifice of every other building and all the piles of lumber, and for the moment it seemed as if the sacrifice would be righteous. But I forbore, and only took as trophies the instruments of torture and the keys of the jail.

I have to admit that when the door of that wicked building swung open in front of me, I was relieved that my main meeting with its lady owner had happened before I saw it. It was a small structure, similar to a Northern corn-barn, and it seemed to fit in just as prominently and legitimately among the other buildings on the property. In the center of the door was a large staple with a rusty chain, like an ox-chain, used to restrain a victim. When the door was opened after the death of the previous owner, my informant mentioned that a man was found locked in that chain. We also discovered three pairs of stocks of different designs, two of which had smaller as well as larger holes, clearly for the feet of women or children. In a nearby building, we found something much more complex, which was completely incomprehensible until the men explained all its components: a device so designed that a person trapped in it could neither sit, stand, nor lie down, but had to keep their body half-raised in a position that was nearly unbearable. I have since deeply regretted leaving this piece of machinery behind; however, it would have taken a lot of effort to remove it, and at the time, grabbing the other trophies felt like enough. I remember the overwhelming disgust I felt as I leaned against the door of that prison; I had thought I was tough enough to handle any unimaginable horrors of slavery, but the very sight of that den of iniquity made me feel like I was going to suffocate. Of course, we could have burned it to the ground, but doing so would have meant destroying every other building and all the stacks of lumber, and for a moment, it felt like that sacrifice would have been justified. But I held back and only took the torture devices and the keys from the jail as trophies.

We found but few colored people in this vicinity; some we brought away with us, and an old man and woman preferred to remain. All the white males whom we found I took as hostages, in order to shield us, if possible, from attack on our way down river, explaining to them that they would be put on shore when the dangerous points were passed. I knew that their wives could easily send notice of this fact to the Rebel forces along the river. My hostages were a forlorn-looking set of "crackers," far inferior to our soldiers in physique, and yet quite equal, the latter declared, to the average material of the Southern armies. None were in uniform, but this proved nothing as to their being soldiers. One of them, a mere boy, was captured at his own door, with gun in hand. It was a fowling-piece, which he used only, as his mother plaintively assured me, "to shoot little birds with." As the guileless youth had for this purpose loaded the gun with eighteen buck-shot, we thought it justifiable to confiscate both the weapon and the owner, in mercy to the birds.

We found only a few people of color in this area; some we took with us, while an older man and woman chose to stay. All the white men we encountered were taken as hostages to protect us from potential attacks as we traveled down the river. I explained to them that they would be released once we passed the risky areas. I knew their wives could easily inform the Rebel forces along the river of this arrangement. My hostages looked pretty miserable and were far less impressive physically than our soldiers, yet the latter claimed they were on par with what you’d find in the Southern armies. None were in uniform, but that didn't prove anything about whether they were soldiers. One of them, just a kid, was caught right at his doorstep with a gun in hand. It was a shotgun, which, as his mother sadly told me, he only used "to shoot little birds." Since the innocent boy had loaded the gun with eighteen buckshot for this purpose, we thought it was reasonable to take both the weapon and its owner, out of compassion for the birds.

We took from this place, for the use of the army, a flock of some thirty sheep, forty bushels of rice, some other provisions, tools, oars, and a little lumber, leaving all possible space for the bricks which we expected to obtain just below. I should have gone farther up the river, but for a dangerous boom which kept back a great number of logs in a large brook that here fell into the St. Mary's; the stream ran with force, and if the Rebels had wit enough to do it, they might in ten minutes so choke the river with drift-wood as infinitely to enhance our troubles. So we dropped down stream a mile or two, found the very brickyard from which Fort Clinch had been constructed,—still stored with bricks, and seemingly unprotected. Here Sergeant Rivers again planted his standard, and the men toiled eagerly, for several hours, in loading our boat to the utmost with the bricks. Meanwhile we questioned black and white witnesses, and learned for the first tune that the Rebels admitted a repulse at Township Landing, and that Lieutenant Jones and ten of their number were killed,—though this I fancy to have been an exaggeration. They also declared that the mysterious steamer Berosa was lying at the head of the river, but was a broken-down and worthless affair, and would never get to sea. The result has since proved this; for the vessel subsequently ran the blockade and foundered near shore, the crew barely escaping with their lives. I had the pleasure, as it happened, of being the first person to forward this information to Admiral Dupont, when it came through the pickets, many months after,—thus concluding my report on the Berosa.

We took from this place, for the army's use, a flock of about thirty sheep, forty bushels of rice, some other supplies, tools, oars, and a bit of lumber, leaving plenty of room for the bricks we expected to collect just downstream. I would have gone further up the river, but there was a dangerous boom that was blocking a lot of logs in a large stream that flowed into the St. Mary's; the current was strong, and if the Rebels were clever enough, they could easily clog the river with driftwood in just ten minutes, making our situation much worse. So, we went a mile or two downstream and found the very brickyard where Fort Clinch had been built—still filled with bricks and seemingly unguarded. Here, Sergeant Rivers set up his flag again, and the men eagerly worked for several hours loading our boat to its limits with bricks. In the meantime, we interviewed both black and white witnesses and learned for the first time that the Rebels had admitted to being pushed back at Township Landing, and that Lieutenant Jones and ten of their men were killed—though I suspect this was an exaggeration. They also claimed that the mysterious steamer Berosa was at the head of the river, but that it was a broken-down, useless boat that would never get to sea. Subsequent events proved this right; the vessel later ran the blockade and sank near shore, with the crew barely escaping with their lives. I had the pleasure, as it turned out, of being the first person to relay this information to Admiral Dupont, once it came through the pickets many months later—thus finishing my report on the Berosa.

Before the work at the yard was over the pickets reported mounted men in the woods near by, as had previously been the report at Woodstock. This admonished us to lose no time; and as we left the wharf, immediate arrangements were made to have the gun crews all in readiness, and to keep the rest of the men below, since their musketry would be of little use now, and I did not propose to risk a life unnecessarily. The chief obstacle to this was their own eagerness; penned down on one side, they popped up on the other; their officers, too, were eager to see what was going on, and were almost as hard to cork down as the men. Add to this, that the vessel was now very crowded, and that I had to be chiefly on the hurricane-deck with the pilots. Captain Clifton, master of the vessel, was brave to excess, and as much excited as the men; he could no more be kept in the little pilot-house than they below; and when we had passed one or two bluffs, with no sign of an enemy, he grew more and more irrepressible, and exposed himself conspicuously on the upper deck. Perhaps we all were a little lulled by apparent safety; for myself, I lay down for a moment on a settee in a state-room, having been on my feet, almost without cessation, for twenty-four hours.

Before the work at the yard was done, the guards reported seeing mounted men in the nearby woods, just like the previous report from Woodstock. This urged us to act quickly; as we left the wharf, we immediately arranged for the gun crews to be ready and kept the rest of the men below, since their firearms wouldn’t be much help now, and I didn’t want to risk any lives unnecessarily. The main challenge was their eagerness; stuck on one side, they popped up on the other. Their officers were also eager to see what was happening and were just as hard to keep down as the men. On top of this, the vessel was very crowded, and I had to mainly stay on the hurricane deck with the pilots. Captain Clifton, the captain of the ship, was overly brave and just as excited as the men; he couldn’t be kept in the small pilot house any more than they could below. After we passed a bluff or two without seeing any sign of an enemy, he became more and more uncontrollable and made himself very noticeable on the upper deck. Maybe we all felt a bit relaxed by the apparent safety; as for me, I lay down for a moment on a settee in a stateroom, having been on my feet almost continuously for twenty-four hours.

Suddenly there swept down from a bluff above us, on the Georgia side, a mingling of shout and roar and rattle as of a tornado let loose; and as a storm of bullets came pelting against the sides of the vessel, and through a window, there went up a shrill answering shout from our own men. It took but an instant for me to reach the gun-deck. After all my efforts the men had swarmed once more from below, and already, crowding at both ends of the boat, were loading and firing with inconceivable rapidity, shouting to each other, "Nebber gib it up!" and of course having no steady aim, as the vessel glided and whirled in the swift current. Meanwhile the officers in charge of the large guns had their crews in order, and our shells began to fly over the bluffs, which, as we now saw, should have been shelled in advance, only that we had to economize ammunition. The other soldiers I drove below, almost by main force, with the aid of their officers, who behaved exceedingly well, giving the men leave to fire from the open port-holes which lined the lower deck, almost at the water's level. In the very midst of the melee Major Strong came from the upper deck, with a face of horror, and whispered to me, "Captain Clifton was killed at the first shot by my side."

Suddenly, from a high point above us on the Georgia side, there was a mix of shouts, roars, and rattles like a tornado unleashed; and as a storm of bullets hit the sides of the ship and shattered a window, our men responded with a sharp shout. It took me just a second to reach the gun deck. After all my efforts, the men had rushed back up from below, and already, crowding at both ends of the boat, they were loading and firing with incredible speed, shouting to each other, "Never give it up!" and of course having no steady aim as the vessel glided and spun in the fast current. Meanwhile, the officers in charge of the big guns had their crews organized, and our shells began to soar over the bluffs, which we now realized should have been shelled in advance, except we needed to conserve ammunition. I forced the other soldiers below, with the help of their officers, who behaved very well, allowing the men to fire from the open portholes lining the lower deck, almost at water level. In the midst of the chaos, Major Strong came from the upper deck, looking horrified, and whispered to me, "Captain Clifton was killed by the first shot beside me."

If he had said that the vessel was on fire the shock would hardly have been greater. Of course, the military commander on board a steamer is almost as helpless as an unarmed man, so far as the risks of water go. A seaman must command there. In the hazardous voyage of last night, I had learned, though unjustly, to distrust every official on board the steamboat except this excitable, brave, warm-hearted sailor; and now, among these added dangers, to lose him! The responsibility for his life also thrilled me; he was not among my soldiers, and yet he was killed. I thought of his wife and children, of whom he had spoken; but one learns to think rapidly in war, and, cautioning the Major to silence, I went up to the hurricane-deck and drew in the helpless body, that it should be safe from further desecration, and then looked to see where we were.

If he had said that the ship was on fire, the shock couldn't have been greater. Of course, the military commander on a steamer is almost as helpless as an unarmed man when it comes to dangers at sea. A sailor needs to be in charge there. During the dangerous journey last night, I had learned, though unfairly, to distrust every official on the steamboat except for this excitable, brave, warm-hearted sailor; and now, with these new dangers, losing him was unthinkable! The responsibility for his life weighed heavily on me; he wasn't one of my soldiers, yet he had died. I thought about his wife and kids, whom he had mentioned; but you learn to think fast in war, and, telling the Major to keep quiet, I went up to the top deck and pulled in the lifeless body, so it would be safe from any further harm, and then checked to see where we were.

We were now gliding past a safe reach of marsh, while our assailants were riding by cross-paths to attack us at the next bluff. It was Reed's Bluff where we were first attacked, and Scrubby Bluff, I think, was next. They were shelled in advance, but swarmed manfully to the banks again as we swept round one of the sharp angles of the stream beneath their fire. My men were now pretty well imprisoned below in the hot and crowded hold, and actually fought each other, the officers afterwards said, for places at the open port-holes, from which to aim. Others implored to be landed, exclaiming that they "supposed de Cunnel knew best," but it was "mighty mean" to be shut up down below, when they might be "fightin' de Secesh in de clar field." This clear field, and no favor, was what they thenceforward sighed for. But in such difficult navigation it would have been madness to think of landing, although one daring Rebel actually sprang upon the large boat which we towed astern, where he was shot down by one of our sergeants. This boat was soon after swamped and abandoned, then taken and repaired by the Rebels at a later date, and finally, by a piece of dramatic completeness, was seized by a party of fugitive slaves, who escaped in it to our lines, and some of whom enlisted in my own regiment.

We were now gliding past a safe stretch of marsh while our attackers were riding along side paths to ambush us at the next bluff. It was Reed's Bluff where we first got ambushed, and Scrubby Bluff, I think, was next. They got shelled ahead of time but bravely rushed back to the banks as we rounded one of the sharp bends of the stream under their fire. My men were pretty much trapped below in the hot, crowded hold and reportedly fought each other for spots at the open port-holes to aim from. Others begged to be let off, insisting that they "thought the Colonel knew best," but it felt "really unfair" to be stuck down below when they could be "fighting the Secesh in the clear field." This clear field, no favor asked, was what they longed for moving forward. But given the tricky navigation, it would have been crazy to think about landing, although one daring Rebel actually jumped onto the large boat we were towing, where he was shot down by one of our sergeants. This boat was soon capsized and abandoned, then captured and repaired by the Rebels later on, and finally, in a dramatic twist, it was taken by a group of escaped slaves who used it to reach our lines, with some of them eventually enlisting in my own regiment.

It has always been rather a mystery to me why the Rebels did not fell a few trees across the stream at some of the many sharp angles where we might so easily have been thus imprisoned. This, however, they did not attempt, and with the skilful pilotage of our trusty Corporal,—philosophic as Socrates through all the din, and occasionally relieving his mind by taking a shot with his rifle through the high portholes of the pilot-house,—we glided safely on. The steamer did not ground once on the descent, and the mate in command, Mr. Smith, did his duty very well. The plank sheathing of the pilot-house was penetrated by few bullets, though struck by so many outside that it was visited as a curiosity after our return; and even among the gun-crews, though they had no protection, not a man was hurt. As we approached some wooded bluff, usually on the Georgia side, we could see galloping along the hillside what seemed a regiment of mounted riflemen, and could see our shell scatter them ere we approached. Shelling did not, however, prevent a rather fierce fusilade from our old friends of Captain dark's company at Waterman's Bluff, near Township Landing; but even this did no serious damage, and this was the last.

It's always been a bit of a mystery to me why the Rebels didn’t chop down a few trees across the stream at the many sharp angles where we could have easily been trapped. However, they didn’t try that, and with the skilled navigation of our reliable Corporal—calm like Socrates amid all the noise, occasionally taking a shot with his rifle through the high portholes of the pilot house—we moved along safely. The steamer didn’t run aground once on the way down, and the mate in charge, Mr. Smith, did his job very well. The wooden walls of the pilot house were hit by a few bullets, but so many struck outside that it became a point of curiosity after we got back; and even among the gun crews, who had no protection, not a single man was hurt. As we got closer to a wooded bluff, usually on the Georgia side, we could see what looked like a regiment of mounted riflemen galloping along the hillside, and we could see our shells scattering them before we got too close. However, shelling didn’t stop a pretty fierce gunfire from our old friends in Captain Dark’s company at Waterman’s Bluff, near Township Landing; but even that didn’t cause serious damage, and that was the last of it.

It was of course impossible, while thus running the gauntlet, to put our hostages ashore, and I could only explain to them that they must thank their own friends for their inevitable detention. I was by no means proud of their forlorn appearance, and besought Colonel Hawley to take them off my hands; but he was sending no flags of truce at that time, and liked their looks no better than I did. So I took them to Port Royal, where they were afterwards sent safely across the lines. Our men were pleased at taking them back with us, as they had already said, regretfully, "S'pose we leave dem Secesh at Fernandina, General Saxby won't see 'em,"—as if they were some new natural curiosity, which indeed they were. One soldier further suggested the expediency of keeping them permanently in camp, to be used as marks for the guns of the relieved guard every morning. But this was rather an ebullition of fancy than a sober proposition.

It was obviously impossible, while we were running the gauntlet, to drop our hostages off, and I could only tell them that they had to thank their own friends for their unavoidable detention. I wasn’t proud of how miserable they looked and pleaded with Colonel Hawley to take them off my hands; however, he wasn’t sending any flags of truce at that moment and didn’t like their appearance any more than I did. So, I took them to Port Royal, where they were eventually sent safely across the lines. Our men were glad to take them back with us, as they had already said, regrettably, “If we leave those Secesh in Fernandina, General Saxby won’t see them,”—as if they were some kind of new natural curiosity, which they actually were. One soldier even suggested it might be a good idea to keep them in camp permanently, to use as targets for the guns of the relieved guard every morning. But that was more of a wild idea than a serious suggestion.

Against these levities I must put a piece of more tragic eloquence, which I took down by night on the steamer's deck from the thrilling harangue of Corporal Adam Allston, one of our most gifted prophets, whose influence over the men was unbounded. "When I heard," he said, "de bombshell a-screamin' troo de woods like de Judgment Day, I said to myself, 'If my head was took off to-night, dey couldn't put my soul in de torments, perceps [except] God was my enemy!' And when de rifle-bullets came whizzin' across de deck, I cried aloud, 'God help my congregation! Boys, load and fire!'"

Against these lighthearted moments, I have to share something more serious and powerful that I wrote down one night on the steamer's deck from the passionate speech of Corporal Adam Allston, one of our most talented speakers, who had a huge impact on the men. "When I heard," he said, "the bombshell screaming through the woods like Judgment Day, I thought to myself, 'If my head got blown off tonight, they couldn't put my soul in hell, unless God was my enemy!' And when the bullets started whizzing across the deck, I shouted, 'God help my congregation! Guys, load and fire!'"

I must pass briefly over the few remaining days of our cruise. At Fernandina we met the Planter, which had been successful on her separate expedition, and had destroyed extensive salt-works at Crooked River, under charge of the energetic Captain Trowbridge, efficiently aided by Captain Rogers. Our commodities being in part delivered at Fernandina, our decks being full, coal nearly out, and time up, we called once more at St. Simon's Sound, bringing away the remainder of our railroad-iron, with some which the naval officers had previously disinterred, and then steamed back to Beaufort. Arriving there at sunrise (February 2, 1863), I made my way with Dr. Rogers to General Saxton's bedroom, and laid before him the keys and shackles of the slave-prison, with my report of the good conduct of the men,—as Dr. Rogers remarked, a message from heaven and another from hell.

I need to briefly cover the last few days of our cruise. At Fernandina, we encountered the Planter, which had been successful on its own mission, destroying large salt works at Crooked River, led by the hardworking Captain Trowbridge, with efficient support from Captain Rogers. With some of our cargo delivered at Fernandina, our decks full, coal running low, and time running out, we stopped once more at St. Simon's Sound, collecting the rest of our railroad iron, along with some that the naval officers had previously dug up, and then headed back to Beaufort. We arrived there at sunrise (February 2, 1863). I went with Dr. Rogers to General Saxton's bedroom and showed him the keys and shackles from the slave prison, along with my report on the good behavior of the men— as Dr. Rogers put it, a message from heaven and another from hell.

Slight as this expedition now seems among the vast events of the war, the future student of the newspapers of that day will find that it occupied no little space in their columns, so intense was the interest which then attached to the novel experiment of employing black troops. So obvious, too, was the value, during this raid, of their local knowledge and their enthusiasm, that it was impossible not to find in its successes new suggestions for the war. Certainly I would not have consented to repeat the enterprise with the bravest white troops, leaving Corporal Sutton and his mates behind, for I should have expected to fail. For a year after our raid the Upper St. Mary's remained unvisited, till in 1864 the large force with which we held Florida secured peace upon its banks; then Mrs. A. took the oath of allegiance, the Government bought her remaining lumber, and the John Adams again ascended with a detachment of my men under Lieutenant Parker, and brought a portion of it to Fernandina. By a strange turn of fortune, Corporal Sutton (now Sergeant) was at this time in jail at Hilton Head, under sentence of court-martial for an alleged act of mutiny,—an affair in which the general voice of our officers sustained him and condemned his accusers, so that he soon received a full pardon, and was restored in honor to his place in the regiment, which he has ever since held.

As slight as this expedition may seem against the backdrop of the war, future readers of the newspapers from that time will see how prominently it was featured, reflecting the intense interest in the groundbreaking idea of using black troops. Their local knowledge and enthusiasm were clearly invaluable during this raid, making it impossible not to draw new lessons for the war from its successes. I certainly wouldn’t have wanted to repeat this mission with the bravest white troops, leaving Corporal Sutton and his team behind, because I expected it would fail. For a year after our raid, the Upper St. Mary's remained untouched until 1864, when the large force we had in Florida established peace along its banks. Then Mrs. A. took the oath of allegiance, the Government purchased her remaining lumber, and the John Adams once again traveled upstream with a detachment of my men under Lieutenant Parker, bringing part of it back to Fernandina. Interestingly, Corporal Sutton (now Sergeant) was in jail at Hilton Head at that time, sentenced by court-martial for an alleged act of mutiny—an incident where the consensus among our officers supported him and criticized his accusers, so he soon received a full pardon and was restored honorably to his position in the regiment, which he has held ever since.

Nothing can ever exaggerate the fascinations of war, whether on the largest or smallest scale. When we settled down into camp-life again, it seemed like a butterfly's folding its wings to re-enter the chrysalis. None of us could listen to the crack of a gun without recalling instantly the sharp shots that spilled down from the bluffs of the St. Mary's, or hear a sudden trampling of horsemen by night without recalling the sounds which startled us on the Field of the Hundred Pines. The memory of our raid was preserved in the camp by many legends of adventure, growing vaster and more incredible as time wore on,—and by the morning appeals to the surgeon of some veteran invalids, who could now cut off all reproofs and suspicions with "Doctor, I's been a sickly pusson eber since de expeditious." But to me the most vivid remembrancer was the flock of sheep which we had "lifted." The Post Quartermaster discreetly gave us the charge of them, and they rilled a gap in the landscape and in the larder,—which last had before presented one unvaried round of impenetrable beef. Mr. Obabiah Oldbuck, when he decided to adopt a pastoral life, and assumed the provisional name of Thyrsis, never looked upon his flocks and herds with more unalloyed contentment than I upon that fleecy family. I had been familiar, in Kansas, with the metaphor by which the sentiments of an owner were credited to his property, and had heard of a proslavery colt and an antislavery cow. The fact that these sheep were but recently converted from "Se-cesh" sentiments was their crowning charm. Methought they frisked and fattened in the joy of their deliverance from the shadow of Mrs. A.'s slave-jail, and gladly contemplated translation into mutton-broth for sick or wounded soldiers. The very slaves who once, perchance, were sold at auction with yon aged patriarch of the flock, had now asserted their humanity, and would devour him as hospital rations. Meanwhile our shepherd bore a sharp bayonet without a crook, and I felt myself a peer of Ulysses and Rob Roy,—those sheep-stealers of less elevated aims,—when I met in my daily rides these wandering trophies of our wider wanderings.

Nothing can ever capture the excitement of war, whether on a grand or small scale. When we settled back into camp life, it felt like a butterfly folding its wings to re-enter its cocoon. None of us could hear the crack of a gun without instantly recalling the sharp shots that echoed down from the bluffs of St. Mary's, or hear the sudden thundering of horsemen at night without remembering the sounds that startled us on the Field of the Hundred Pines. The memory of our raid was kept alive in camp by many adventurous stories, growing more exaggerated and fantastical as time went by—and by the morning requests to the surgeon from some veteran invalids, who could now silence any criticism with "Doctor, I's been a sickly person ever since de expeditious." But for me, the most vivid reminder was the flock of sheep we had "liberated." The Post Quartermaster wisely entrusted us with them, filling a gap in the landscape and in our food supply—which had previously been nothing but boring beef. Mr. Obabiah Oldbuck, when he chose to live a pastoral life and took on the temporary name of Thyrsis, never looked at his flocks and herds with more pure happiness than I felt toward that fluffy family. I had been familiar in Kansas with the idea that the owner’s feelings were reflected in their property, and had heard about a pro-slavery colt and an anti-slavery cow. The fact that these sheep had recently changed from "Se-cesh" views was their greatest appeal. I thought they frolicked and grew plump in the joy of being freed from the shadow of Mrs. A.'s slave jail and looked forward to becoming mutton broth for sick or wounded soldiers. The very slaves who might have once been sold at auction alongside that old patriarch of the flock had now claimed their humanity and would feast on him as hospital rations. Meanwhile, our shepherd carried a sharp bayonet instead of a crook, and I felt like a peer of Ulysses and Rob Roy—those sheep-stealers with less noble goals—when I encountered these wandering trophies of our broader adventures during my daily rides.





Chapter 4. Up the St. John's

There was not much stirring in the Department of the South early in 1863, and the St. Mary's expedition had afforded a new sensation. Of course the few officers of colored troops, and a larger number who wished to become such, were urgent for further experiments in the same line; and the Florida tax-commissioners were urgent likewise. I well remember the morning when, after some preliminary correspondence, I steamed down from Beaufort, S. C., to Hilton Head, with General Saxton, Judge S., and one or two others, to have an interview on the matter with Major-General Hunter, then commanding the Department.

There wasn't much happening in the Department of the South early in 1863, and the St. Mary's expedition had created a lot of buzz. Naturally, the few officers of colored troops, along with many who wanted to become one, were eager for more projects like this; the Florida tax commissioners were pushing for it too. I clearly remember the morning when, after some initial correspondence, I took a steamship from Beaufort, S.C., to Hilton Head with General Saxton, Judge S., and a couple of others to meet with Major-General Hunter, who was in charge of the Department at the time.

Hilton Head, in those days, seemed always like some foreign military station in the tropics. The long, low, white buildings, with piazzas and verandas on the water-side; the general impression of heat and lassitude, existence appearing to pulsate only with the sea-breeze; the sandy, almost impassable streets; and the firm, level beach, on which everybody walked who could get there: all these suggested Jamaica or the East Indies. Then the head-quarters at the end of the beach, the Zouave sentinels, the successive anterooms, the lounging aids, the good-natured and easy General,—easy by habit and energetic by impulse,—all had a certain air of Southern languor, rather picturesque, but perhaps not altogether bracing. General Hunter received us, that day, with his usual kindliness; there was a good deal of pleasant chat; Miles O'Reilly was called in to read his latest verses; and then we came to the matter in hand.

Hilton Head back then always felt like some foreign military outpost in the tropics. The long, low, white buildings with porches and verandas facing the water, the overall atmosphere of heat and sluggishness, life seeming to only beat with the sea breeze, the sandy, nearly impassable streets, and the wide, even beach where everyone who could go walked—these all made it feel like Jamaica or the East Indies. Then there were the headquarters at the end of the beach, the Zouave sentinels, the various waiting rooms, the relaxed aides, and the good-natured, laid-back General—relaxed by habit but energetic by nature—all gave off a certain Southern laziness that was quite picturesque but maybe not totally invigorating. General Hunter welcomed us that day with his usual warmth; there was a lot of pleasant conversation; Miles O'Reilly was brought in to read his latest poems; and then we got down to business.

Jacksonville, on the St. John's River, in Florida, had been already twice taken and twice evacuated; having been occupied by Brigadier-General Wright, in March, 1862, and by Brigadier-General Brannan, in October of the same year. The second evacuation was by Major-General Hunter's own order, on the avowed ground that a garrison of five thousand was needed to hold the place, and that this force could not be spared. The present proposition was to take and hold it with a brigade of less than a thousand men, carrying, however, arms and uniforms for twice that number, and a month's rations. The claim was, that there were fewer rebel troops in the Department than formerly, and that the St. Mary's expedition had shown the advantage possessed by colored troops, in local knowledge, and in the confidence of the loyal blacks. It was also urged, that it was worth while to risk something, in the effort to hold Florida, and perhaps bring it back into the Union.

Jacksonville, located on the St. John's River in Florida, had already been taken and evacuated twice; it was first occupied by Brigadier-General Wright in March 1862, and then by Brigadier-General Brannan in October of that same year. The second evacuation happened on the orders of Major-General Hunter, who stated that a garrison of five thousand was necessary to defend the area and that this force couldn't be provided. The current proposal was to capture and hold the city with a brigade of fewer than a thousand men, though they would bring arms and uniforms for twice that number and enough rations for a month. The argument was made that there were fewer Confederate troops in the region than before, and that the St. Mary's mission had demonstrated the advantages of having Black troops, who had local knowledge and the trust of loyal Black citizens. It was also pointed out that it was worth taking some risks to attempt to hold Florida and potentially bring it back into the Union.

My chief aim in the negotiation was to get the men into action, and that of the Florida Commissioners to get them into Florida. Thus far coinciding, we could heartily co-operate; and though General Hunter made some reasonable objections, they were yielded more readily than I had feared; and finally, before half our logical ammunition was exhausted, the desired permission was given, and the thing might be considered as done.

My main goal in the negotiation was to get the men moving, and the Florida Commissioners aimed to get them into Florida. Since our objectives aligned, we were able to work together effectively; although General Hunter raised some valid concerns, they were addressed more easily than I feared. Eventually, before we ran out of our logical arguments, we received the necessary permission, and the matter was effectively settled.

We were now to leave, as we supposed forever, the camp which had thus far been our home. Our vast amount of surplus baggage made a heavy job in the loading, inasmuch as we had no wharf, and everything had to be put on board by means of flat-boats. It was completed by twenty-four hours of steady work; and after some of the usual uncomfortable delays which wait on military expeditions, we were at last afloat.

We were about to leave, what we thought would be forever, the camp that had been our home. Our huge pile of extra baggage made loading difficult since we had no dock, and everything had to be loaded onto the boat using flatboats. It took a full twenty-four hours of continuous work, and after some typical frustrating delays that come with military missions, we were finally on the water.

I had tried to keep the plan as secret as possible, and had requested to have no definite orders, until we should be on board ship. But this larger expedition was less within my own hands than was the St. Mary's affair, and the great reliance for concealment was on certain counter reports, ingeniously set afloat by some of the Florida men. These reports rapidly swelled into the most enormous tales, and by the time they reached the New York newspapers, the expedition was "a great volcano about bursting, whose lava will burn, flow, and destroy," "the sudden appearance in arms of no less than five thousand negroes," "a liberating host," "not the phantom, but the reality, of servile insurrection." What the undertaking actually was may be best seen in the instructions which guided it.*

I had tried to keep the plan as secret as possible and had asked not to receive any definite orders until we were on board the ship. However, this larger operation was less under my control than the St. Mary's situation, and we primarily relied on some clever counter reports spread by a few of the Florida men to keep it concealed. These reports quickly turned into wild stories, and by the time they reached the New York newspapers, the expedition was described as "a massive volcano on the verge of erupting, whose lava will burn, flow, and destroy," "the sudden uprising of no fewer than five thousand Black people," "a liberating force," "not a ghost, but the reality of a slave uprising." What the mission actually was can be best understood through the instructions that guided it.*

* HEAD-QUARTERS, BEAUFORT, S. C.,

* Headquarters, Beaufort, SC,

March 5, 1863.

March 5, 1863.

COLONEL,—You will please proceed with your command, the First and Second Regiments South Carolina Volunteers, which are now embarked upon the steamers John Adams, Boston, and Burn-side, to Fernandina, Florida.

COLONEL,—Please proceed with your command, the First and Second Regiments South Carolina Volunteers, which are now on the steamers John Adams, Boston, and Burnside, to Fernandina, Florida.

Relying upon your military skill and judgment. I shall give you no special directions as to your procedure after you leave Fernandina. I expect, however, that you will occupy Jacksonville, Florida, and intrench yourselves there.

Relying on your military skills and judgment, I won’t give you any specific instructions for what to do after you leave Fernandina. However, I do expect you to take control of Jacksonville, Florida, and set up defenses there.

The main objects of your expedition are to carry the proclamation of freedom to the enslaved; to call all loyal men into the service of the United States; to occupy as much of the State of Florida as possible with the forces under your command; and to neglect no means consistent with the usages of civilized warfare to weaken, harass, and annoy those who are in rebellion against the Government of the United States.

The primary goals of your mission are to deliver the message of freedom to the enslaved, to enlist all loyal individuals in service to the United States, to secure as much territory in Florida as possible with your forces, and to utilize all appropriate tactics of modern warfare to undermine, disrupt, and bother those who are rebelling against the Government of the United States.

Trusting that the blessing of our Heavenly Father will rest upon your noble enterprise,

Trusting that the blessing of our Heavenly Father will be on your noble endeavor,

I am yours, sincerely,

Yours sincerely,

R. SAXTON,

R. SAXTON

Brig.-Gen., Mil. Gov. Dept. of the South. Colonel Higginson, Comdg. Expeditionary Corps.

Brigadier General, Military Governor Department of the South. Colonel Higginson, Commanding Expeditionary Corps.

In due time, after touching at Fernandina, we reached the difficult bar of the St. John's, and were piloted safely over. Admiral Dupont had furnished a courteous letter of introduction.* and we were cordially received by Commander Duncan of the Norwich, and Lieutenant Watson, commanding the Uncas. Like all officers on blockade duty, they were impatient of their enforced inaction, and gladly seized the opportunity for a different service. It was some time since they had ascended as high as Jacksonville, for their orders were strict, one vessel's coal was low, the other was in infirm condition, and there were rumors of cotton-clads and torpedoes. But they gladly agreed to escort us up the river, so soon as our own armed gunboat, the John Adams, should arrive,—she being unaccountably delayed.

In due time, after stopping at Fernandina, we reached the tricky bar of the St. John's and were guided safely over. Admiral Dupont had provided a polite letter of introduction, and we were warmly welcomed by Commander Duncan of the Norwich and Lieutenant Watson, who was in charge of the Uncas. Like all officers on blockade duty, they were frustrated with their forced inactivity and eagerly took the chance for a different assignment. It had been a while since they had gone as far as Jacksonville because their orders were strict, one ship had low coal, the other was in poor condition, and there were rumors of cotton-clads and torpedoes. However, they happily agreed to escort us up the river as soon as our own armed gunboat, the John Adams, arrived—she was inexplicably delayed.

FLAG SHIP WABASH,

FLAGSHIP WABASH,

PORT ROYAL HARBOR, S. C., March 6, 1863. SIR,—I am informed by Major-General Hunter that he is sending Colonel Higginson on an important mission in the southerly part of his Department.

PORT ROYAL HARBOR, S. C., March 6, 1863. SIR,—I have been informed by Major-General Hunter that he is sending Colonel Higginson on a significant mission in the southern part of his Department.

I have not been made acquainted with the objects of this mission, but any assistance that you can offer Colonel Higginson, which will not interfere with your other duties, you are authorized to give.

I haven't been informed about the purpose of this mission, but any help you can provide to Colonel Higginson, as long as it doesn't conflict with your other responsibilities, is permitted.

Respectfully your obedient servant,

Sincerely your loyal servant,

S. F. DUPONT, Rear-Adm. Comdg. S. Atl. Block. Squad.

S. F. DUPONT, Rear Admiral, Commanding South Atlantic Blockading Squadron.

To the Senior Officer at the different Blockading Stations on the Coast of Georgia and Florida.

To the Senior Officer at the various Blockading Stations on the Coast of Georgia and Florida.

We waited twenty-four hours for her, at the sultry mouth of that glassy river, watching the great pelicans which floated lazily on its tide, or sometimes shooting one, to admire the great pouch, into which one of the soldiers could insert his foot, as into a boot. "He hold one quart," said the admiring experimentalist. "Hi! boy," retorted another quickly, "neber you bring dat quart measure in my peck o' corn." The protest came very promptly, and was certainly fair; for the strange receptacle would have held nearly a gallon.

We waited twenty-four hours for her at the sweltering edge of that smooth river, watching the big pelicans floating lazily on its current, or sometimes shooting one to check out its huge pouch, into which one of the soldiers could stick his foot, like a boot. "It holds one quart," said the impressed experimenter. "Hey! kid," replied another quickly, "don’t you bring that quart measure in my peck of corn." The protest came in right away and was definitely reasonable; because that strange pouch could have held almost a gallon.

We went on shore, too, and were shown a rather pathetic little garden, which the naval officers had laid out, indulging a dream of vegetables. They lingered over the little microscopic sprouts, pointing them out tenderly, as if they were cradled babies. I have often noticed this touching weakness, in gentlemen of that profession, on lonely stations.

We went ashore, too, and were shown a pretty sad little garden that the naval officers had arranged, dreaming of vegetables. They lingered over the tiny sprouts, pointing them out affectionately, as if they were cradled babies. I've often noticed this endearing vulnerability in men of that profession when they’re stationed in remote places.

We wandered among the bluffs, too, in the little deserted hamlet called "Pilot Town." The ever-shifting sand had in some cases almost buried the small houses, and had swept around others a circular drift, at a few yards' distance, overtopping then: eaves, and leaving each the untouched citadel of this natural redoubt. There was also a dismantled lighthouse, an object which always seems the most dreary symbol of the barbarism of war, when one considers the national beneficence which reared and kindled it. Despite the service rendered by this once brilliant light, there were many wrecks which had been strown upon the beach, victims of the most formidable of the Southern river-bars. As I stood with my foot on the half-buried ribs of one of these vessels,—so distinctly traced that one might almost fancy them human,—the old pilot, my companion, told me the story of the wreck. The vessel had formerly been in the Cuba trade; and her owner, an American merchant residing in Havana, had christened her for his young daughter. I asked the name, and was startled to recognize that of a favorite young cousin of mine, besides the bones of whose representative I was thus strangely standing, upon this lonely shore.

We walked around the bluffs in the abandoned little village called "Pilot Town." The constantly shifting sand had nearly buried some of the small houses, while others were surrounded by a circular drift, rising past their eaves and leaving each house as the untouched stronghold of this natural barrier. There was also a broken-down lighthouse, a gloomy reminder of the cruelty of war, especially considering the national goodwill that built and lit it. Despite the service this once-bright light provided, many shipwrecks littered the beach, casualties of the fierce Southern river-bars. As I stood with my foot on the half-buried ribs of one of these ships—so clearly defined that they almost seemed human—the old pilot, my companion, shared the story of the wreck. The ship had once been part of the Cuba trade, and her owner, an American merchant living in Havana, had named her after his young daughter. I asked for the name and was shocked to realize it was the same as my favorite young cousin, whose remains I was strangely standing upon on this desolate shore.

It was well to have something to relieve the anxiety naturally felt at the delay of the John Adams,—anxiety both for her safety and for the success of our enterprise, The Rebels had repeatedly threatened to burn the whole of Jacksonville, in case of another attack, as they had previously burned its mills and its great hotel. It seemed as if the news of our arrival must surely have travelled thirty miles by this time. All day we watched every smoke that rose among the wooded hills, and consulted the compass and the map, to see if that sign announced the doom of our expected home. At the very last moment of the tide, just in time to cross the bar that day, the missing vessel arrived; all anxieties vanished; I transferred my quarters on board, and at two the next morning we steamed up the river.

It was good to have something to ease the anxiety naturally felt due to the delay of the John Adams—anxiety for both her safety and the success of our mission. The Rebels had repeatedly threatened to burn down all of Jacksonville if there was another attack, just as they had previously destroyed its mills and its large hotel. It seemed like the news of our arrival must have traveled thirty miles by now. All day we watched every plume of smoke that rose among the wooded hills and checked the compass and the map to see if that sign indicated the doom of our expected home. At the very last moment of the tide, just in time to cross the bar that day, the missing vessel finally arrived; all anxieties vanished. I moved my quarters on board, and at two the next morning, we steamed up the river.

Again there was the dreamy delight of ascending an unknown stream, beneath a sinking moon, into a region where peril made fascination. Since the time of the first explorers, I suppose that those Southern waters have known no sensations so dreamy and so bewitching as those which this war has brought forth. I recall, in this case, the faintest sensations of our voyage, as Ponce de Leon may have recalled those of his wandering search, in the same soft zone, for the secret of the mystic fountain. I remember how, during that night, I looked for the first time through a powerful night-glass. It had always seemed a thing wholly inconceivable, that a mere lens could change darkness into light; and as I turned the instrument on the preceding gunboat, and actually discerned the man at the wheel and the others standing about him,—all relapsing into vague gloom again at the withdrawal of the glass,—it gave a feeling of childish delight. Yet it seemed only in keeping with the whole enchantment of the scene; and had I been some Aladdin, convoyed by genii or giants, I could hardly have felt more wholly a denizen of some world of romance.

Once again, there was the dreamy joy of navigating an unknown stream, under a setting moon, into a place where danger added to the intrigue. Since the first explorers, I think these Southern waters have never experienced sensations as dreamy and enchanting as those brought about by this war. I remember, in this instance, the faintest feelings from our journey, just like Ponce de Leon might have remembered his wandering search in the same gentle area for the secret of the mystical fountain. I remember how, that night, I looked through a powerful night-vision scope for the first time. It had always seemed unbelievable that a simple lens could turn darkness into light, and when I pointed it at the nearby gunboat and actually saw the man at the wheel and the others standing around him—only to fade back into vague darkness when I pulled the scope away—it brought me a childlike joy. Yet, it felt perfectly in line with the entire magic of the scene; and had I been some Aladdin, accompanied by genies or giants, I could hardly have felt more completely like a part of a world of fantasy.

But the river was of difficult navigation; and we began to feel sometimes, beneath the keel, that ominous, sliding, grating, treacherous arrest of motion which makes the heart shudder, as the vessel does. There was some solicitude about torpedoes, also,—a peril which became a formidable thing, one year later, in the very channel where we found none. Soon one of our consorts grounded, then another, every vessel taking its turn, I believe, and then in turn getting off, until the Norwich lay hopelessly stranded, for that tide at least, a few miles below Jacksonville, and out of sight of the city, so that she could not even add to our dignity by her visible presence from afar.

But the river was hard to navigate; and we occasionally felt underneath the keel that unsettling, sliding, grating halt of movement that makes your heart race, just like the ship does. There was also some concern about torpedoes, a danger that became a serious issue a year later in the same channel where we found none. Soon one of our companions ran aground, then another, every ship taking its turn, I believe, and then managing to get free, until the Norwich lay helplessly stuck, at least for that tide, a few miles below Jacksonville and out of sight of the city, so it couldn't even enhance our dignity by being visible from a distance.

This was rather a serious matter, as the Norwich was our main naval reliance, the Uncas being a small steamer of less than two hundred tons, and in such poor condition that Commander Duncan, on finding himself aground, at first quite declined to trust his consort any farther alone. But, having got thus far, it was plainly my duty to risk the remainder with or without naval assistance; and this being so, the courageous officer did not long object, but allowed his dashing subordinate to steam up with us to the city. This left us one naval and one army gunboat; and, fortunately, the Burn-side, being a black propeller, always passed for an armed vessel among the Rebels, and we rather encouraged that pleasing illusion.

This was quite a serious situation since the Norwich was our main naval support, while the Uncas was a small steamer of less than two hundred tons and in such bad shape that Commander Duncan, when he found himself stuck, was initially hesitant to send his partner off alone. However, having come this far, it was clearly my responsibility to take the remaining risks, whether or not we had naval support; and knowing this, the brave officer didn’t object for long, allowing his bold subordinate to steam up with us to the city. This left us with one naval gunboat and one army gunboat; fortunately, the Burn-side, being a black propeller, was often mistaken for an armed vessel by the Rebels, and we actively encouraged that helpful misconception.

We had aimed to reach Jacksonville at daybreak; but these mishaps delayed us, and we had several hours of fresh, early sunshine, lighting up the green shores of that lovely river, wooded to the water's edge, with sometimes an emerald meadow, opening a vista to some picturesque house,—all utterly unlike anything we had yet seen in the South, and suggesting rather the Penobscot or Kennebec. Here and there we glided by the ruins of some saw-mill burned by the Rebels on General Wright's approach; but nothing else spoke of war, except, perhaps, the silence. It was a delicious day, and a scene of fascination. Our Florida men were wild with delight; and when we rounded the point below the city, and saw from afar its long streets, its brick warehouses, its white cottages, and its overshadowing trees,—all peaceful and undisturbed by flames,—it seemed, in the men's favorite phrase, "too much good," and all discipline was merged, for the moment, in a buzz of ecstasy.

We had planned to arrive in Jacksonville at sunrise, but a series of setbacks held us up, giving us several hours of fresh, early sunshine that brightened the green banks of that beautiful river, lined with trees all the way to the water's edge, occasionally revealing an emerald meadow that led to a charming house—totally different from anything we had encountered in the South, and reminiscent of the Penobscot or Kennebec. Here and there, we passed by the ruins of a sawmill that the Rebels had burned as General Wright approached, but nothing else hinted at war, except maybe the silence. It was a wonderful day, captivating and beautiful. Our Florida men were ecstatic; when we rounded the bend below the city and caught a glimpse of its long streets, brick warehouses, white cottages, and towering trees—all tranquil and untouched by fire—it felt, in the favorite phrase of the men, "too much good," and for a moment, all sense of discipline was lost in a buzz of excitement.

The city was still there for us, at any rate; though none knew what perils might be concealed behind those quiet buildings. Yet there were children playing on the wharves; careless men, here and there, lounged down to look at us, hands in pockets; a few women came to their doors, and gazed listlessly upon us, shading their eyes with their hands. We drew momently nearer, in silence and with breathless attention. The gunners were at their posts, and the men in line. It was eight o'clock. We were now directly opposite the town: yet no sign of danger was seen; not a rifle-shot was heard; not a shell rose hissing in the air. The Uncas rounded to, and dropped anchor in the stream; by previous agreement, I steamed to an upper pier of the town, Colonel Montgomery to a lower one; the little boat-howitzers were run out upon the wharves, and presently to the angles of the chief streets; and the pretty town was our own without a shot. In spite of our detention, the surprise had been complete, and not a soul in Jacksonville had dreamed of our coming.

The city was still there for us, at least; though no one knew what dangers might be hidden behind those quiet buildings. Yet there were children playing on the docks; some carefree guys lounged around, hands in pockets, watching us; a few women came to their doors and stared at us with blank expressions, shielding their eyes with their hands. We silently moved closer, holding our breath. The gunners were at their posts, and the men stood in line. It was eight o'clock. We were now directly across from the town: yet there was no sign of danger; not a rifle shot was heard; not a shell soared through the air. The Uncas turned and dropped anchor in the stream; by prior agreement, I steered to an upper pier of the town, while Colonel Montgomery went to a lower one; the small boat howitzers were rolled out onto the docks and soon moved to the corners of the main streets; and the charming town was ours without a shot fired. Despite our delay, the surprise had been complete, and not a single person in Jacksonville had anticipated our arrival.

The day passed quickly, in eager preparations for defence; the people could or would give us no definite information about the Rebel camp, which was, however, known to be near, and our force did not permit our going out to surprise it. The night following was the most anxious I ever spent. We were all tired out; the companies were under arms, in various parts of the town, to be ready for an attack at any moment. My temporary quarters were beneath the loveliest grove of linden-trees, and as I reclined, half-dozing, the mocking-birds sang all night like nightingales,—their notes seeming to trickle down through the sweet air from amid the blossoming boughs. Day brought relief and the sense of due possession, and we could see what we had won.

The day went by quickly as we eagerly prepared for defense. The locals didn’t provide us with any concrete information about the Rebel camp, which was known to be nearby, but our forces couldn’t afford to go out to catch it off guard. The following night was the most anxious I’ve ever experienced. We were all exhausted; the troops were armed and positioned in different parts of the town, ready for an attack at any moment. I was temporarily staying under a beautiful grove of linden trees, and as I lay there, half-awake, the mockingbirds sang all night like nightingales—their melodies seeming to flow through the sweet air from the blooming branches. Daylight brought relief and a sense of rightful ownership, allowing us to see what we had gained.

Jacksonville was now a United States post again: the only post on the main-land in the Department of the South. Before the war it had three or four thousand inhabitants, and a rapidly growing lumber-trade, for which abundant facilities were evidently provided. The wharves were capacious, and the blocks of brick warehouses along the lower street were utterly unlike anything we had yet seen in that region, as were the neatness and thrift everywhere visible. It had been built up by Northern enterprise, and much of the property was owned by loyal men. It had been a great resort for invalids, though the Rebels had burned the large hotel which once accommodated them. Mills had also been burned; but the dwelling-houses were almost all in good condition. The quarters for the men were admirable; and I took official possession of the handsome brick house of Colonel Sunder-land, the established head-quarters through every occupation, whose accommodating flag-staff had literally and repeatedly changed its colors. The seceded Colonel, reputed author of the State ordinance of Secession, was a New-Yorker by birth, and we found his law-card, issued when in practice in Easton, Washington County, New York. He certainly had good taste in planning the inside of a house, though time had impaired its condition. There was a neat office with ample bookcases and no books, a billiard-table with no balls, gas-fixtures without gas, and a bathing-room without water. There was a separate building for servants' quarters, and a kitchen with every convenience, even to a few jars of lingering pickles. On the whole, there was an air of substance and comfort about the town, quite alien from the picturesque decadence of Beaufort.

Jacksonville was now a U.S. post once more: the only one on the mainland in the Department of the South. Before the war, it had about three or four thousand residents and a quickly growing lumber trade, thanks to the ample facilities available. The wharves were large, and the rows of brick warehouses along the lower street were completely different from anything we had seen in that region, as was the neatness and industriousness visible everywhere. It had been developed by Northern entrepreneurs, and much of the property was owned by loyal citizens. It had been a popular spot for people seeking recovery, although the Rebels had burned down the large hotel that once accommodated them. Mills had also been destroyed, but almost all the houses were in good shape. The quarters for the soldiers were excellent, and I took official possession of the attractive brick house of Colonel Sunder-land, the established headquarters throughout every occupation, whose accommodating flagpole had literally and repeatedly changed its flags. The seceded Colonel, believed to be the author of the State ordinance of Secession, was originally from New York, and we found his law card from when he practiced in Easton, Washington County, New York. He certainly had good taste in designing a house's interior, although time had taken its toll on the condition. There was a tidy office with plenty of bookcases but no books, a billiard table without balls, gas fixtures without gas, and a bathroom without water. A separate building served as the servants' quarters, and the kitchen had every convenience, even a few jars of old pickles. Overall, there was a sense of substance and comfort about the town, quite different from the picturesque decline of Beaufort.

The town rose gradually from the river, and was bounded on the rear by a long, sluggish creek, beyond which lay a stretch of woods, affording an excellent covert for the enemy, but without great facilities for attack, as there were but two or three fords and bridges. This brook could easily be held against a small force, but could at any time and at almost any point be readily crossed by a large one. North of the town the land rose a little, between the river and the sources of the brook, and then sank to a plain, which had been partially cleared by a previous garrison. For so small a force as ours, however, this clearing must be extended nearer to the town; otherwise our lines would be too long for our numbers.

The town gradually rose from the river and was bordered at the back by a long, slow-moving creek, beyond which lay a stretch of woods that provided great cover for the enemy, but with limited options for attack since there were only two or three fords and bridges. This creek could easily be defended against a small force, but could be crossed by a large one at almost any point. North of the town, the land rose slightly between the river and the sources of the creek before dropping down to a plain, which had been partially cleared by a previous garrison. For such a small force as ours, though, this clearing needed to be extended closer to the town; otherwise, our lines would be too long for our numbers.

This deficiency in numbers at once became a source of serious anxiety. While planning the expedition, it had seemed so important to get the men a foothold in Florida that I was willing to risk everything for it. But this important post once in our possession, it began to show some analogies to the proverbial elephant in the lottery. To hold it permanently with nine hundred men was not, perhaps, impossible, with the aid of a gunboat (I had left many of my own regiment sick and on duty in Beaufort, and Colonel Montgomery had as yet less than one hundred and fifty); but to hold it, and also to make forays up the river, certainly required a larger number. We came in part to recruit, but had found scarcely an able-bodied negro in the city; all had been removed farther up, and we must certainly contrive to follow them. I was very unwilling to have, as yet, any white troops under my command, with the blacks. Finally, however, being informed by Judge S. of a conversation with Colonel Hawley, commanding at Fernandina, in which the latter had offered to send four companies and a light battery to swell our force,—in view of the aid given to his position by this more advanced post, I decided to authorize the energetic Judge to go back to Fernandina and renew the negotiation, as the John Adams must go thither at any rate for coal.

This lack of manpower quickly became a major concern. When we were planning the expedition, securing a foothold in Florida seemed so crucial that I was willing to risk everything for it. But now that we had this key post, it felt like the clichéd elephant in the lottery. Holding it permanently with nine hundred men might not be impossible, especially with a gunboat's support (I had left many of my regiment sick and on duty in Beaufort, and Colonel Montgomery had fewer than one hundred and fifty men); however, maintaining control and launching forays upriver certainly required a larger force. We came in part to recruit, but we had found almost no able-bodied Black individuals in the city; they had all been moved further up, and we needed to find a way to follow them. I was reluctant to command any white troops alongside the Black troops at this point. However, after Judge S. informed me about a conversation he had with Colonel Hawley, who was in charge at Fernandina, in which Hawley offered to send four companies and a light battery to boost our numbers—considering the support his position would gain from our advanced post—I decided to let the proactive Judge return to Fernandina and reopen the negotiations, since the John Adams had to go there for coal anyway.

Meanwhile all definite display of our force was avoided; dress-parades were omitted; the companies were so distributed as to tell for the utmost; and judicious use was made, here and there, of empty tents. The gunboats and transports moved impressively up and down the river, from time to time. The disposition of pickets was varied each night to perplex the enemy, and some advantage taken of his distrust, which might be assumed as equalling our own. The citizens were duly impressed by our supply of ammunition, which was really enormous, and all these things soon took effect. A loyal woman, who came into town, said that the Rebel scouts, stopping at her house, reported that there were "sixteen hundred negroes all over the woods, and the town full of them besides." "It was of no use to go in. General Finnegan had driven them into a bad place once, and should not do it again." "They had lost their captain and their best surgeon in the first skirmish, and if the Savannah people wanted the negroes driven away, they might come and do it themselves." Unfortunately, we knew that they could easily come from Savannah at any time, as there was railroad communication nearly all the way; and every time we heard the steam-whistle, the men were convinced of their arrival. Thus we never could approach to any certainty as to their numbers, while they could observe, from the bluffs, every steamboat that ascended the river.

Meanwhile, we avoided showing our strength; there were no dress parades, and the companies were arranged strategically for maximum impact. We made clever use of empty tents here and there. The gunboats and transports moved impressively up and down the river periodically. Each night, we varied the position of the pickets to confuse the enemy and took advantage of their distrust, which we assumed was equal to ours. The citizens were genuinely impressed by our massive supply of ammunition, which was indeed huge, and these factors soon had an effect. A loyal woman who came into town said that Rebel scouts, who stopped by her house, reported that there were "sixteen hundred black people all over the woods, and the town full of them too." "It was pointless to go in. General Finnegan had forced them into a tough spot once, and he wouldn’t do it again." "They had lost their captain and their best surgeon in the first skirmish, and if the people in Savannah wanted the black people gone, they could come and do it themselves." Unfortunately, we knew they could easily come from Savannah at any time, as there was railroad access nearly the whole way; and every time we heard the steam whistle, the men became convinced of their arrival. Thus, we could never determine their numbers with certainty while they could watch from the bluffs as every steamboat ascended the river.

To render our weak force still more available, we barricaded the approaches to the chief streets by constructing barriers or felling trees. It went to my heart to sacrifice, for this purpose, several of my beautiful lindens; but it was no time for aesthetics. As the giants lay on the ground, still scenting the air with their abundant bloom, I used to rein up my horse and watch the children playing hide-and-seek amongst their branches, or some quiet cow grazing at the foliage. Nothing impresses the mind in war like some occasional object or association that belongs apparently to peace alone.

To make our weak position more effective, we blocked the entrances to the main streets by building barriers and cutting down trees. It broke my heart to sacrifice several of my beautiful linden trees for this, but there was no time for beauty. As the trees lay on the ground, still giving off their lovely scent, I would stop my horse and watch the kids playing hide-and-seek among the branches, or a quiet cow grazing on the leaves. Nothing leaves a stronger impression in war than a random object or memory that seems to belong solely to peace.

Among all these solicitudes, it was a great thing that one particular anxiety vanished in a day. On the former expedition the men were upon trial as to their courage; now they were to endure another test, as to their demeanor as victors. Here were five hundred citizens, nearly all white, at the mercy of their former slaves. To some of these whites it was the last crowning humiliation, and they were, or professed to be, in perpetual fear. On the other hand, the most intelligent and lady-like woman I saw, the wife of a Rebel captain, rather surprised me by saying that it seemed pleasanter to have these men stationed there, whom they had known all their lives, and who had generally borne a good character, than to be in the power of entire strangers. Certainly the men deserved the confidence, for there was scarcely an exception to their good behavior. I think they thoroughly felt that their honor and dignity were concerned in the matter, and took too much pride in their character as soldiers,—to say nothing of higher motives,—to tarnish it by any misdeeds. They watched their officers vigilantly and even suspiciously, to detect any disposition towards compromise; and so long as we pursued a just course it was evident that they could be relied on. Yet the spot was pointed out to me where two of our leading men had seen their brothers hanged by Lynch law; many of them had private wrongs to avenge; and they all had utter disbelief in all pretended loyalty, especially on the part of the women.

Among all these concerns, it was a relief that one specific worry disappeared in a day. On the previous mission, the men were tested on their bravery; now they were facing another evaluation of how they behaved as victors. Here were five hundred citizens, almost all white, at the mercy of their former slaves. For some of these white people, it was the final indignity, and they were in, or claimed to be in, constant fear. On the flip side, the most intelligent and refined woman I encountered, the wife of a Rebel captain, surprised me by saying that it felt better to have these men there, whom they had known all their lives and who generally had a good reputation, than to be at the mercy of total strangers. The men certainly earned that trust, as there were hardly any exceptions to their good conduct. I believe they felt that their honor and dignity were at stake in the situation and took too much pride in their identity as soldiers—let alone higher motives—to tarnish it with any wrongdoing. They watched their officers closely and even skeptically for any signs of compromise; as long as we kept to a fair course, it was clear they could be counted on. Yet the place was pointed out to me where two of our leading men had witnessed their brothers being hanged by lynch law; many of them had personal grievances to settle; and they all had complete disbelief in any so-called loyalty, especially from the women.

One citizen alone was brought to me in a sort of escort of honor by Corporal Prince Lambkin,—one of the color-guard, and one of our ablest men,—the same who had once made a speech in camp, reminding his hearers that they had lived under the American flag for eighteen hundred and sixty-two years, and ought to live and die under it. Corporal Lambkin now introduced his man, a German, with the highest compliment in his power, "He hab true colored-man heart." Surrounded by mean, cajoling, insinuating white men and women who were all that and worse, I was quite ready to appreciate the quality he thus proclaimed. A colored-man heart, in the Rebel States, is a fair synonyme for a loyal heart, and it is about the only such synonyme. In this case, I found afterwards that the man in question, a small grocer, had been an object of suspicion to the whites from his readiness to lend money to the negroes, or sell to them on credit; in which, perhaps, there may have been some mixture of self-interest with benevolence.

One citizen was brought to me with a kind of honor by Corporal Prince Lambkin—one of the color guard and one of our most capable men—who once gave a speech in camp reminding everyone that they had lived under the American flag for eighteen hundred and sixty-two years and should continue to live and die under it. Corporal Lambkin introduced his man, a German, with the highest compliment he could give, saying, "He has a true colored-man heart." Surrounded by deceitful, manipulative white men and women who were even worse, I was fully prepared to appreciate the quality he described. A "colored-man heart" in the Rebel States is essentially synonymous with a loyal heart, and it’s pretty much the only such synonym. I later learned that the man in question, a small grocer, had been viewed with suspicion by the whites because he was quick to lend money to the Black community or sell to them on credit, which may have combined self-interest with kindness.

I resort to a note-book of that period, well thumbed and pocket-worn, which sometimes received a fragment of the day's experience.

I turn to a notebook from that time, well-used and worn from being in my pocket, which sometimes held a piece of the day's experiences.

"March 16, 1863.

March 16, 1863.

"Of course, droll things are constantly occurring. Every white man, woman, and child is flattering, seductive, and professes Union sentiment; every black ditto believes that every white ditto is a scoundrel, and ought to be shot, but for good order and military discipline. The Provost Marshal and I steer between them as blandly as we can. Such scenes as succeed each other! Rush of indignant Africans. A white man, in woman's clothes, has been seen to enter a certain house,—undoubtedly a spy. Further evidence discloses the Roman Catholic priest, a peaceful little Frenchman, in his professional apparel.—Anxious female enters. Some sentinel has shot her cow by mistake for a Rebel. The United States cannot think of paying the desired thirty dollars. Let her go to the Post-Quartermaster and select a cow from his herd. If there is none to suit her (and, indeed, not one of them gave a drop of milk,—neither did hers), let her wait till the next lot comes in,—that is all.—Yesterday's operations gave the following total yield: Thirty 'contrabands,' eighteen horses, eleven cattle, ten saddles and bridles, and one new army-wagon. At this rate we shall soon be self-supporting cavalry.

"Of course, amusing things are happening all the time. Every white man, woman, and child is flattering, charming, and claims to support the Union; every black person thinks that every white person is a scoundrel who deserves to be shot, except for the sake of maintaining order and military discipline. The Provost Marshal and I navigate between them as smoothly as we can. What a series of scenes unfold! A rush of outraged African Americans. A white man, dressed as a woman, has been spotted entering a certain house—clearly a spy. Further evidence reveals the Roman Catholic priest, a quiet little Frenchman, in his priestly garb. An anxious woman comes in. Some guard has accidentally shot her cow, mistaking it for a Rebel's. The United States can’t consider paying the requested thirty dollars. She should go to the Post-Quartermaster and pick a cow from his herd. If none of them suit her (and, in fact, none of them produced any milk—just like hers), she’ll have to wait for the next lot to arrive—that's all. Yesterday's activities resulted in the following totals: thirty 'contrabands,' eighteen horses, eleven cattle, ten saddles and bridles, and one new army wagon. At this rate, we’ll soon be self-sufficient cavalry."

"Where complaints are made of the soldiers, it almost always turns out that the women have insulted them most grossly, swearing at them, and the like. One unpleasant old Dutch woman came in, bursting with wrath, and told the whole narrative of her blameless life, diversified with sobs:—

"Whenever soldiers receive complaints, it usually ends up being the case that the women have insulted them severely, yelling at them and so on. One irritable old Dutch woman burst in, fuming with anger, and recounted the entire story of her innocent life, mixed with sobs:—"

"'Last January I ran off two of my black people from St. Mary's to Fernandina,' (sob,)—'then I moved down there myself, and at Lake City I lost six women and a boy,' (sob,)—'then I stopped at Baldwin for one of the wenches to be confined,' (sob,)—'then I brought them all here to live in a Christian country' (sob, sob). "Then the blockheads' [blockades, that is, gunboats] 'came, and they all ran off with the blockheads,' (sob, sob, sob,) 'and left me, an old lady of forty-six, obliged to work for a living.' (Chaos of sobs, without cessation.)

"'Last January, I escaped with two of my Black people from St. Mary's to Fernandina,' (sobbing)—'then I moved down there myself, and at Lake City, I lost six women and a boy,' (sobbing)—'then I stopped at Baldwin for one of the women to give birth,' (sobbing)—'then I brought them all here to live in a Christian country' (sobbing, sobbing). 'Then the blockheads' [blockades, that is, gunboats] 'came, and they all ran off with the blockheads,' (sobbing, sobbing, sobbing), 'and left me, an old lady of forty-six, forced to work for a living.' (A chaos of sobs, without cessation.)

"But when I found what the old sinner had said to the soldiers I rather wondered at their self-control in not throttling her."

"But when I heard what the old sinner had said to the soldiers, I was quite surprised by their self-control in not choking her."

Meanwhile skirmishing went on daily in the outskirts of the town. There was a fight on the very first day, when our men killed, as before hinted, a Rebel surgeon, which was oddly metamorphosed in the Southern newspapers into their killing one of ours, which certainly never happened. Every day, after this, they appeared in small mounted squads in the neighborhood, and exchanged shots with our pickets, to which the gunboats would contribute their louder share, their aim being rather embarrassed by the woods and hills. We made reconnoissances, too, to learn the country in different directions, and were apt to be fired upon during these. Along the farther side of what we called the "Debatable Land" there was a line of cottages, hardly superior to negro huts, and almost all empty, where the Rebel pickets resorted, and from whose windows they fired. By degrees all these nests were broken up and destroyed, though it cost some trouble to do it, and the hottest skirmishing usually took place around them.

Meanwhile, skirmishes happened daily on the outskirts of the town. There was a fight right on the first day, when our men killed, as mentioned before, a Rebel surgeon, which was strangely transformed in the Southern newspapers into them killing one of ours, which definitely didn’t happen. Every day after that, they showed up in small mounted groups nearby, taking shots at our pickets, while the gunboats contributed with their louder fire, though their aim was somewhat hindered by the woods and hills. We also conducted reconnoissances to familiarize ourselves with the area in different directions and often found ourselves getting shot at during these. On the far side of what we called the “Debatable Land,” there was a row of cottages, not much better than shanties, and almost all abandoned, where the Rebel pickets would hang out and shoot from the windows. Gradually, all these hideouts were dismantled and destroyed, although it took some effort to do so, and the most intense skirmishing usually occurred around them.

Among these little affairs was one which we called "Company K's Skirmish," because it brought out the fact that this company, which was composed entirely of South Carolina men, and had never shone in drill or discipline, stood near the head of the regiment for coolness and courage,—the defect of discipline showing itself only in their extreme unwillingness to halt when once let loose. It was at this time that the small comedy of the Goose occurred,—an anecdote which Wendell Phillips has since made his own.

Among these minor incidents was one we referred to as "Company K's Skirmish," because it highlighted that this company, made up entirely of South Carolina men, had never excelled in drills or discipline, yet ranked high in the regiment for composure and bravery. The lack of discipline was evident in their strong reluctance to stop once they were given the go-ahead. It was during this time that the amusing event involving the Goose took place—an anecdote that Wendell Phillips has since claimed for himself.

One of the advancing line of skirmishers, usually an active fellow enough, was observed to move clumsily and irregularly. It soon appeared that he had encountered a fine specimen of the domestic goose, which had surrendered at discretion. Not wishing to lose it, he could yet find no way to hold it but between his legs; and so he went on, loading, firing, advancing, halting, always with the goose writhing and struggling and hissing in this natural pair of stocks. Both happily came off unwounded, and retired in good order at the signal, or some time after it; but I have hardly a cooler thing to put on record.

One of the skirmishers in the advancing line, who was usually quite lively, was seen moving awkwardly and unpredictably. It soon became clear that he had come across a very fine domestic goose, which had surrendered without a fight. Not wanting to let it go, he found no other way to hold it than between his legs; and so he continued on, loading, firing, moving forward, and stopping, all while the goose was flailing and hissing in this unconventional grip. Fortunately, both of them came away unharmed and retreated in good order after the signal, or some time after; but I can't think of anything cooler to recount.

Meanwhile, another fellow left the field less exultingly; for, after a thoroughly courageous share in the skirmish, he came blubbering to his captain, and said,—"Cappen, make Caesar gib me my cane." It seemed that, during some interval of the fighting, he had helped himself to an armful of Rebel sugar-cane, such as they all delighted in chewing. The Roman hero, during another pause, had confiscated the treasure; whence these tears of the returning warrior. I never could accustom myself to these extraordinary interminglings of manly and childish attributes.

Meanwhile, another guy left the field feeling less triumphant; after bravely taking part in the skirmish, he came crying to his captain and said, "Captain, make Caesar give me my cane." Apparently, during a break in the fighting, he had grabbed a bunch of Rebel sugar-cane, which everyone loved to chew on. The Roman hero had taken the stash during another pause, which is what caused these tears from the returning warrior. I could never get used to these strange mixtures of adult and childlike traits.

Our most untiring scout during this period was the chaplain of my regiment,—the most restless and daring spirit we had, and now exulting in full liberty of action. He it was who was daily permitted to stray singly where no other officer would have been allowed to go, so irresistible was his appeal, "You know I am only a chaplain." Methinks I see our regimental saint, with pistols in belt and a Ballard rifle slung on shoulder, putting spurs to his steed, and cantering away down some questionable wood-path, or returning with some tale of Rebel haunt discovered, or store of foraging. He would track an enemy like an Indian, or exhort him, when apprehended, like an early Christian. Some of our devout soldiers shook their heads sometimes over the chaplain's little eccentricities. "Woffor Mr. Chapman made a preacher for?" said one of them, as usual transforming his title into a patronymic. "He's de fightingest more Yankee I eber see in all my days."

Our most tireless scout during this time was the chaplain of my regiment—the most restless and daring spirit we had, now enjoying complete freedom of action. He was the one who was allowed to roam alone where no other officer would have been permitted to go, so strong was his appeal, "You know I'm just a chaplain." I can picture our regimental saint, with pistols in his belt and a Ballard rifle slung over his shoulder, spurring his horse and galloping down some sketchy woodland path, or coming back with stories of Rebel hideouts discovered, or supplies gathered. He could track an enemy like a Native American or persuade them, when caught, like an early Christian. Some of our devout soldiers would sometimes shake their heads at the chaplain’s little quirks. "Why did they make Mr. Chapman a preacher?" one of them would say, as usual turning his title into a last name. "He's the most fighting Yankee I've ever seen in all my days."

And the criticism was very natural, though they could not deny that, when the hour for Sunday service came, Mr. F. commanded the respect and attention of all. That hour never came, however, on our first Sunday in Jacksonville; we were too busy and the men too scattered; so the chaplain made his accustomed foray beyond the lines instead.

And the criticism was understandable, but they couldn't deny that when it was time for Sunday service, Mr. F. commanded everyone's respect and attention. However, that hour never arrived on our first Sunday in Jacksonville; we were too busy and the men were too spread out, so the chaplain went on his usual expedition beyond the lines instead.

"Is it not Sunday?" slyly asked an unregenerate lieutenant. "Nay," quoth his Reverence, waxing fervid; "it is the Day of Judgment"

"Isn’t it Sunday?" asked a cheeky lieutenant. "No," replied his Reverence, growing passionate; "it is the Day of Judgment."

This reminds me of a raid up the river, conducted by one of our senior captains, an enthusiast whose gray beard and prophetic manner always took me back to the Fifth-Monarchy men. He was most successful that day, bringing back horses, cattle, provisions, and prisoners; and one of the latter complained bitterly to me of being held, stating that Captain R. had promised him speedy liberty. But that doughty official spurned the imputation of such weak blandishments, in this day of triumphant retribution.

This brings to mind a raid up the river led by one of our senior captains, an enthusiastic man whose gray beard and prophetic demeanor always reminded me of the Fifth-Monarchy men. He was very successful that day, returning with horses, cattle, supplies, and prisoners; one of those prisoners bitterly complained to me about being detained, saying that Captain R. had promised him quick release. But that brave officer dismissed the accusation of such feeble promises in this time of triumphant justice.

"Promise him!" said he, "I promised him nothing but the Day of Judgment and Periods of Damnation!"

"Promise him!" he said, "I promised him nothing but the Day of Judgment and times of damnation!"

Often since have I rolled beneath my tongue this savory and solemn sentence, and I do not believe that since the days of the Long Parliament there has been a more resounding anathema.

Often have I mulled over this rich and serious statement, and I don't think there has been a stronger condemnation since the days of the Long Parliament.

In Colonel Montgomery's hands these up-river raids reached the dignity of a fine art. His conceptions of foraging were rather more Western and liberal than mine, and on these excursions he fully indemnified himself for any undue abstinence demanded of him when in camp. I remember being on the wharf, with some naval officers, when he came down from his first trip. The steamer seemed an animated hen-coop. Live poultry hung from the foremast shrouds, dead ones from the mainmast, geese hissed from the binnacle, a pig paced the quarter-deck, and a duck's wings were seen fluttering from a line which was wont to sustain duck trousers. The naval heroes, mindful of their own short rations, and taking high views of one's duties in a conquered country, looked at me reproachfully, as who should say, "Shall these things be?" In a moment or two the returning foragers had landed.

In Colonel Montgomery's hands, these upriver raids became a true art form. His approach to foraging was much more Western and open-minded than mine, and during these trips, he fully made up for any restraint he experienced while in camp. I remember being on the wharf with some naval officers when he returned from his first trip. The steamer looked like a lively henhouse. Live poultry were hanging from the foremast rigging, dead ones from the mainmast, geese were hissing from the binnacle, a pig was walking around the quarter-deck, and a duck's wings were flapping from a line that usually held duck trousers. The naval officers, aware of their own meager supplies and with lofty ideas about the responsibilities in a conquered land, looked at me disapprovingly, as if to say, "Is this really happening?" Soon after, the returning foragers had disembarked.

"Captain ——," said Montgomery, courteously, "would you allow me to send a remarkably fine turkey for your use on board ship?"

"Captain ——," Montgomery said politely, "would you let me send a really nice turkey for your use on the ship?"

"Lieutenant ——," said Major Corwin, "may I ask your acceptance of a pair of ducks for your mess?"

"Lieutenant ——," Major Corwin said, "would you accept a pair of ducks for your mess?"

Never did I behold more cordial relations between army and navy than sprang into existence at those sentences. So true it is, as Charles Lamb says, that a single present of game may diffuse kindly sentiments through a whole community. These little trips were called "rest"; there was no other rest during those ten days. An immense amount of picket and fatigue duty had to be done. Two redoubts were to be built to command the Northern Valley; all the intervening grove, which now afforded lurking-ground for a daring enemy, must be cleared away; and a few houses must be reluctantly razed for the same purpose. The fort on the left was named Fort Higginson, and that built by my own regiment, in return, Fort Montgomery. The former was necessarily a hasty work, and is now, I believe, in ruins; the latter was far more elaborately constructed, on lines well traced by the Fourth New Hampshire during the previous occupation. It did great credit to Captain Trowbridge, of my regiment (formerly of the New York Volunteer Engineers), who had charge of its construction.

I had never seen such friendly relations between the army and navy as what developed after those statements. It's true what Charles Lamb said—sometimes a single gift of game can spread goodwill throughout an entire community. These little trips were called "rest," but there really wasn't any other rest during those ten days. There was a huge amount of picket and fatigue duty to get done. Two redoubts needed to be built to oversee the Northern Valley; all the surrounding woods, which provided cover for a bold enemy, had to be cleared; and a few houses had to be unfortunately torn down for the same reason. The fort on the left was named Fort Higginson, and the one built by my own regiment was called Fort Montgomery. The former was built in a hurry and is now, I believe, in ruins; the latter was constructed much more carefully, following plans laid out by the Fourth New Hampshire during the previous occupation. It was a great achievement for Captain Trowbridge of my regiment (who was previously with the New York Volunteer Engineers), as he oversaw its construction.

How like a dream seems now that period of daily skirmishes and nightly watchfulness! The fatigue was so constant that the days hurried by. I felt the need of some occasional change of ideas, and having just received from the North Mr. Brook's beautiful translation of Jean Paul's "Titan," I used to retire to my bedroom for some ten minutes every afternoon, and read a chapter or two. It was more refreshing than a nap, and will always be to me one of the most fascinating books in the world, with this added association. After all, what concerned me was not so much the fear of an attempt to drive us out and retake the city,—for that would be against the whole policy of the Rebels in that region,—as of an effort to fulfil their threats and burn it, by some nocturnal dash. The most valuable buildings belonged to Union men, and the upper part of the town, built chiefly of resinous pine, was combustible to the last degree. In case of fire, if the wind blew towards the river, we might lose steamers and all. I remember regulating my degree of disrobing by the direction of the wind; if it blew from the river, it was safe to make one's self quite comfortable; if otherwise, it was best to conform to Suwarrow's idea of luxury, and take off one spur.

How much like a dream that time of daily skirmishes and nightly vigilance seems now! The exhaustion was so constant that the days flew by. I felt the need for a change of pace, and having just received Mr. Brook's beautiful translation of Jean Paul's "Titan" from the North, I would retreat to my bedroom for about ten minutes every afternoon and read a chapter or two. It was more refreshing than a nap and will always be one of the most captivating books in the world to me, with that added memory. What concerned me most wasn’t really the fear of them trying to force us out and retake the city—since that would go against the entire strategy of the Rebels in that area—but more about their threats to burn it down with some surprise night attack. The most important buildings belonged to Union supporters, and the upper part of the town, mostly made of resinous pine, was extremely flammable. If a fire broke out, and the wind blew towards the river, we could lose both the steamers and everything else. I remember adjusting how much I would undress based on the wind direction; if it blew from the river, it was safe to get comfortable, but otherwise, it was better to follow Suwarrow's idea of luxury and take off one spur.

So passed our busy life for ten days. There were no tidings of reinforcements, and I hardly knew whether I wished for them,—or rather, I desired them as a choice of evils; for our men were giving out from overwork, and the recruiting excursions, for which we had mainly come, were hardly possible. At the utmost, I had asked for the addition of four companies and a light battery. Judge of my surprise when two infantry regiments successively arrived! I must resort to a scrap from the diary. Perhaps diaries are apt to be thought tedious; but I would rather read a page of one, whatever the events described, than any more deliberate narrative,—it gives glimpses so much more real and vivid.

So our busy life went on for ten days. There was no news of reinforcements, and I wasn't sure if I wanted them—really, I only wanted them as a lesser evil; our troops were getting exhausted from overwork, and the recruiting trips we had mainly come for were nearly impossible. At most, I had requested four more companies and a light battery. Imagine my surprise when two infantry regiments showed up one after the other! I need to pull a bit from my diary. Some might find diaries boring, but I’d rather read a page from one, no matter what it talks about, than any more carefully crafted story—it offers such much more real and vivid insights.

"HEAD-QUARTERS, JACKSONVILLE,

HEADQUARTERS, JACKSONVILLE,

"March 20, 1863, Midnight.

March 20, 1863, 12 AM.

"For the last twenty-four hours we have been sending women and children out of town, in answer to a demand by flag of truce, with a threat of bombardment. [N. B. I advised them not to go, and the majority declined doing so.] It was designed, no doubt, to intimidate; and in our ignorance of the force actually outside, we have had to recognize the possibility of danger, and work hard at our defences. At any time, by going into the outskirts, we can have a skirmish, which is nothing but fun; but when night closes in over a small and weary garrison, there sometimes steals into my mind, like a chill, that most sickening of all sensations, the anxiety of a commander. This was the night generally set for an attack, if any, though I am pretty well satisfied that they have not strength to dare it, and the worst they could probably do is to burn the town. But to-night, instead of enemies, appear friends,—our devoted civic ally, Judge S., and a whole Connecticut regiment, the Sixth, under Major Meeker; and though the latter are aground, twelve miles below, yet they enable one to breathe more freely. I only wish they were black; but now I have to show, not only that blacks can fight, but that they and white soldiers can act in harmony together."

"For the last twenty-four hours, we've been sending women and children out of town in response to a truce demand, accompanied by a threat of bombardment. [N. B. I advised them not to leave, and most chose not to.] This was clearly meant to intimidate, and with our uncertainty about the enemy's actual strength outside, we've had to acknowledge the potential danger and put in extra effort on our defenses. At any time, by venturing to the outskirts, we could have a skirmish, which is just a bit of fun; but when night falls over a small, exhausted garrison, I sometimes feel that cold, unsettling anxiety that comes with being in command. This night is usually when we expect an attack, if there is to be one, although I'm fairly confident they lack the strength to attempt it, and the worst they might do is set the town on fire. But tonight, instead of enemies, we welcome friends—our loyal civic ally, Judge S., and the entire Sixth Connecticut Regiment, led by Major Meeker. Even though they're stuck twelve miles downriver, their presence allows us to breathe a little easier. I just wish they were Black soldiers instead; now I have to prove not only that Black soldiers can fight but also that they can work together with white soldiers."

That evening the enemy came up for a reconnoissance, in the deepest darkness, and there were alarms all night. The next day the Sixth Connecticut got afloat, and came up the river; and two days after, to my continued amazement, arrived a part of the Eighth Maine, under Lieutenant-Colonel Twichell. This increased my command to four regiments, or parts of regiments, half white and half black. Skirmishing had almost ceased,—our defences being tolerably complete, and looking from without much more effective than they really were. We were safe from any attack by a small force, and hoped that the enemy could not spare a large one from Charleston or Savannah. All looked bright without, and gave leisure for some small anxieties within.

That evening, the enemy approached for a reconnaissance in complete darkness, and there were alarms all night. The next day, the Sixth Connecticut got underway and moved up the river; two days later, to my ongoing surprise, a part of the Eighth Maine arrived under Lieutenant-Colonel Twichell. This brought my command to four regiments, or parts of regiments, half white and half black. Skirmishing had nearly stopped—our defenses were fairly complete, and from the outside, they looked much more effective than they actually were. We felt secure against any attack by a small force and hoped that the enemy couldn't send a large one from Charleston or Savannah. Everything looked promising outside, allowing for some minor worries inside.

It was the first time in the war (so far as I know) that white and black soldiers had served together on regular duty. Jealousy was still felt towards even the officers of colored regiments, and any difficult contingency would be apt to bring it out. The white soldiers, just from ship-board, felt a natural desire to stray about the town; and no attack from an enemy would be so disastrous as the slightest collision between them and the black provost-guard. I shudder, even now, to think of the train of consequences, bearing on the whole course of subsequent national events, which one such mishap might then have produced. It is almost impossible for us now to remember in what a delicate balance then hung the whole question of negro enlistments, and consequently of Slavery. Fortunately for my own serenity, I had great faith in the intrinsic power of military discipline, and also knew that a common service would soon produce mutual respect among good soldiers; and so it proved. But the first twelve hours of this mixed command were to me a more anxious period than any outward alarms had created.

It was the first time in the war (as far as I know) that white and black soldiers served together on regular duty. There was still jealousy towards even the officers of the colored regiments, and any difficult situation could easily trigger it. The white soldiers, just arriving from the ship, had a natural urge to wander around the town; and no attack from an enemy would be as disastrous as even the smallest conflict between them and the black provost-guard. I still shudder at the thought of the consequences that one such incident could have had on the entire course of subsequent national events. It's almost impossible for us now to remember how delicate the balance was regarding the issue of black enlistments and, consequently, of Slavery. Thankfully, for my own peace of mind, I had great faith in the inherent strength of military discipline and also knew that shared service would soon foster mutual respect among good soldiers; and that's exactly what happened. But the first twelve hours of this mixed command were to me more anxious than any external threats had caused.

Let us resort to the note-book again.

Let’s go back to the notebook.

"JACKSONVILLE, March 22, 1863.

JACKSONVILLE, March 22, 1863.

"It is Sunday; the bell is ringing for church, and Rev. Mr. F., from Beaufort, is to preach. This afternoon our good quartermaster establishes a Sunday-school for our little colony of 'contrabands,' now numbering seventy.

"It’s Sunday; the bell is ringing for church, and Rev. Mr. F. from Beaufort is set to preach. This afternoon, our dedicated quartermaster will start a Sunday school for our small group of 'contrabands,' which now has seventy members."

"Sunday Afternoon.

Sunday Afternoon.

"The bewildering report is confirmed; and in addition to the Sixth Connecticut, which came yesterday, appears part of the Eighth Maine. The remainder, with its colonel, will be here to-morrow, and, report says, Major-General Hunter. Now my hope is that we may go to some point higher up the river, which we can hold for ourselves. There are two other points [Magnolia and Pilatka], which, in themselves, are as favorable as this, and, for getting recruits, better. So I shall hope to be allowed to go. To take posts, and then let white troops garrison them,—that is my programme.

"The confusing report is confirmed; in addition to the Sixth Connecticut, which arrived yesterday, part of the Eighth Maine has also shown up. The rest, along with its colonel, will be here tomorrow, and I've heard that Major-General Hunter is coming too. My hope is that we can move to a point further up the river that we can secure for ourselves. There are two other locations [Magnolia and Pilatka] that are just as favorable as this one, and better for recruiting. So I'm hoping to be allowed to go. My plan is to take these positions and then have white troops garrison them."

"What makes the thing more puzzling is, that the Eighth Maine has only brought ten days' rations, so that they evidently are not to stay here; and yet where they go, or why they come, is a puzzle. Meanwhile we can sleep sound o' nights; and if the black and white babies do not quarrel and pull hair, we shall do very well."

"What makes this even more confusing is that the Eighth Maine only brought ten days' worth of supplies, so they clearly aren't planning to stay here. But where they’re going or why they came is a mystery. In the meantime, we can sleep soundly at night, and as long as the black and white kids don't fight and pull each other's hair, we'll be just fine."

Colonel Rust, on arriving, said frankly that he knew nothing of the plans prevailing in the Department, but that General Hunter was certainly coming soon to act for himself; that it had been reported at the North, and even at Port Royal, that we had all been captured and shot (and, indeed, I had afterwards the pleasure of reading my own obituary in a Northern Democratic journal), and that we certainly needed reinforcements; that he himself had been sent with orders to carry out, so far as possible, the original plans of the expedition; that he regarded himself as only a visitor, and should remain chiefly on shipboard,—which he did. He would relieve the black provost-guard by a white one, if I approved,—which I certainly did. But he said that he felt bound to give the chief opportunities of action to the colored troops,—which I also approved, and which he carried out, not quite to the satisfaction of his own eager and daring officers.

Colonel Rust, upon arrival, openly admitted that he was unaware of the current plans in the Department but that General Hunter would definitely be coming soon to take charge himself. It had been reported up North, and even at Port Royal, that we had all been captured and executed (in fact, I later had the amusing experience of reading my own obituary in a Northern Democratic paper). He emphasized that we definitely needed reinforcements and that he had been sent with orders to implement, as much as possible, the original plans for the expedition. He saw himself mostly as a visitor and planned to stay mainly on the ship, which he did. He offered to replace the black provost guard with a white one, if I agreed—which I definitely did. However, he felt it was important to give the colored troops opportunities for action—which I also supported, though it didn’t sit well with his eager and bold officers.

I recall one of these enterprises, out of which we extracted a good deal of amusement; it was baptized the Battle of the Clothes-Lines. A white company was out scouting in the woods behind the town, with one of my best Florida men for a guide; and the captain sent back a message that he had discovered a Rebel camp with twenty-two tents, beyond a creek, about four miles away; the officers and men had been distinctly seen, and it would be quite possible to capture it. Colonel Rust at once sent me out with two hundred men to do the work, recalling the original scouts, and disregarding the appeals of his own eager officers. We marched through the open pine woods, on a delightful afternoon, and met the returning party. Poor fellows! I never shall forget the longing eyes they cast on us, as we marched forth to the field of glory, from which they were debarred. We went three or four miles out, sometimes halting to send forward a scout, while I made all the men lie down in the long, thin grass and beside the fallen trees, till one could not imagine that there was a person there. I remember how picturesque the effect was, when, at the signal, all rose again, like Roderick Dhu's men, and the green wood appeared suddenly populous with armed life. At a certain point forces were divided, and a detachment was sent round the head of the creek, to flank the unsuspecting enemy; while we of the main body, stealing with caution nearer and nearer, through ever denser woods, swooped down at last in triumph upon a solitary farmhouse,—where the family-washing had been hung out to dry! This was the "Rebel camp"!

I remember one of these missions that brought us a lot of laughs; it was called the Battle of the Clothes-Lines. A unit was out scouting in the woods behind the town, guided by one of my best guys from Florida. The captain sent back word that he had found a rebel camp with twenty-two tents, just across a creek, about four miles away; they had clearly seen the officers and men, and capturing it seemed quite possible. Colonel Rust immediately sent me out with two hundred men to handle it, calling back the original scouts and ignoring the pleas of his eager officers. We marched through the open pine woods on a lovely afternoon and met the returning party. Poor guys! I’ll never forget the longing looks they gave us as we headed off to the field of glory, while they were left behind. We went three or four miles, sometimes stopping to send a scout ahead, while I had everyone lie down in the long, thin grass and next to fallen trees, making it hard to believe there were any people around. I recall how striking it looked when, at the signal, everyone rose at once, like Roderick Dhu’s men, and the green woods suddenly seemed full of armed people. At a certain point, we split our forces, sending a group around the creek to flank the unsuspecting enemy, while the main body of us quietly moved closer through the increasingly dense woods, finally swooping down triumphantly on a lonely farmhouse—where the family’s laundry was hanging out to dry! This was the "Rebel camp"!

It is due to Sergeant Greene, my invaluable guide, to say that he had from the beginning discouraged any high hopes of a crossing of bayonets. He had early explained that it was not he who claimed to have seen the tents and the Rebel soldiers, but one of the officers,—and had pointed out that our undisturbed approach was hardly reconcilable with the existence of a hostile camp so near. This impression had also pressed more and more upon my own mind, but it was our business to put the thing beyond a doubt. Probably the place may have been occasionally used for a picket-station, and we found fresh horse-tracks in the vicinity, and there was a quantity of iron bridle-bits in the house, of which no clear explanation could be given; so that the armed men may not have been wholly imaginary. But camp there was none. After enjoying to the utmost the fun of the thing, therefore, we borrowed the only horse on the premises, hung all the bits over his neck, and as I rode him back to camp, they clanked like broken chains. We were joined on the way by our dear and devoted surgeon, whom I had left behind as an invalid, but who had mounted his horse and ridden out alone to attend to our wounded, his green sash looking quite in harmony with the early spring verdure of those lovely woods. So came we back in triumph, enjoying the joke all the more because some one else was responsible. We mystified the little community at first, but soon let out the secret, and witticisms abounded for a day or two, the mildest of which was the assertion that the author of the alarm must have been "three sheets in the wind."

It’s important to credit Sergeant Greene, my invaluable guide, for discouraging any high hopes of a confrontation from the start. He had explained early on that it wasn’t him who claimed to have seen the tents and the Rebel soldiers, but one of the officers, and he pointed out that our peaceful approach didn’t really fit with a hostile camp being so close by. This idea had increasingly taken hold in my mind as well, but it was our job to settle the matter for sure. The area might have been used occasionally as a picket station, since we found fresh horse tracks nearby, and there were a bunch of iron bridle bits in the house that had no clear explanation, meaning the armed men might not have been totally imaginary. But there was no camp. After fully enjoying the fun of it, we borrowed the only horse on the property, draped all the bits around his neck, and as I rode him back to camp, they jingled like broken chains. On the way back, we were joined by our dear and dedicated surgeon, who I had thought was still behind as an invalid, but he had gotten on his horse and ridden out alone to help our wounded, his green sash looking quite fitting with the early spring greenery of those beautiful woods. Thus, we returned in triumph, relishing the joke even more because someone else was to blame. We initially puzzled the small community, but eventually revealed the secret, leading to plenty of jokes for a day or two, the mildest being that the person who raised the alarm must have been "three sheets to the wind."

Another expedition was of more exciting character. For several days before the arrival of Colonel Rust a reconnaissance had been planned in the direction of the enemy's camp, and he finally consented to its being carried out. By the energy of Major Corwin, of the Second South Carolina Volunteers, aided by Mr. Holden, then a gunner on the Paul Jones, and afterwards made captain of the same regiment, one of the ten-pound Parrott guns had been mounted on a hand-car, for use on the railway. This it was now proposed to bring into service. I took a large detail of men from the two white regiments and from my own, and had instructions to march as far as the four-mile station on the railway, if possible, examine the country, and ascertain if the Rebel camp had been removed, as was reported, beyond that distance. I was forbidden going any farther from camp, or attacking the Rebel camp, as my force comprised half our garrison, and should the town meanwhile be attacked from some other direction, it would be in great danger.

Another expedition was more exciting. For several days before Colonel Rust arrived, a reconnaissance in the direction of the enemy's camp had been planned, and he finally agreed to go ahead with it. Thanks to the efforts of Major Corwin from the Second South Carolina Volunteers, along with Mr. Holden, who was then a gunner on the Paul Jones and later became captain of the same regiment, one of the ten-pound Parrott guns was mounted on a hand-car for use on the railway. The plan was now to bring it into action. I took a large group of men from the two white regiments and my own, with orders to march as far as the four-mile station on the railway, if possible, to survey the area and find out if the Rebel camp had indeed been moved, as reported, beyond that point. I was instructed not to go any further from camp or to engage the Rebel camp, as my force made up half our garrison, and if the town were attacked from another direction, it would be at great risk.

I never shall forget the delight of that march through the open pine barren, with occasional patches of uncertain swamp. The Eighth Maine, under Lieutenant-Colonel Twichell, was on the right, the Sixth Connecticut, under Major Meeker, on the left, and my own men, under Major Strong, in the centre, having in charge the cannon, to which they had been trained. Mr. Heron, from the John Adams, acted as gunner. The mounted Rebel pickets retired before us through the woods, keeping usually beyond range of the skirmishers, who in a long line—white, black, white—were deployed transversely. For the first time I saw the two colors fairly alternate on the military chessboard; it had been the object of much labor and many dreams, and I liked the pattern at last. Nothing was said about the novel fact by anybody,—it all seemed to come as matter-of-course; there appeared to be no mutual distrust among the men, and as for the officers, doubtless "each crow thought its own young the whitest,"—I certainly did, although doing full justice to the eager courage of the Northern portion of my command. Especially I watched with pleasure the fresh delight of the Maine men, who had not, like the rest, been previously in action, and who strode rapidly on with their long legs, irresistibly recalling, as their gaunt, athletic frames and sunburnt faces appeared here and there among the pines, the lumber regions of their native State, with which I was not unfamiliar.

I will never forget the joy of that march through the open pine barrens, with occasional patches of uncertain swamp. The Eighth Maine, led by Lieutenant-Colonel Twichell, was on the right, the Sixth Connecticut, under Major Meeker, was on the left, and my own men, led by Major Strong, were in the center, in charge of the cannon they had been trained to handle. Mr. Heron, from the John Adams, served as the gunner. The mounted Rebel pickets retreated before us through the woods, usually staying out of range of the skirmishers, who were lined up in a long line—white, black, white—deployed across. For the first time, I saw the two colors alternating on the military chessboard; it had been the goal of much effort and many dreams, and I finally liked the pattern. No one mentioned this new fact—it all seemed taken for granted; there appeared to be no mutual distrust among the men, and as for the officers, each certainly thought their own side was the best—I certainly did, while still acknowledging the eager courage of the Northern part of my command. I especially enjoyed watching the fresh excitement of the Maine men, who, unlike the others, had not been in action before, and who strode confidently on with their long legs, irresistibly reminding me, as their lean, athletic frames and sunburned faces appeared here and there among the pines, of the lumber regions of their home state, which I was familiar with.

We passed through a former camp of the Rebels, from which everything had been lately removed; but when the utmost permitted limits of our reconnoissance were reached, there were still no signs of any other camp, and the Rebel cavalry still kept provokingly before us. Their evident object was to lure us on to their own stronghold, and had we fallen into the trap, it would perhaps have resembled, on a smaller scale, the Olustee of the following year. With a good deal of reluctance, however, I caused the recall to be sounded, and, after a slight halt, we began to retrace our steps.

We moved through a previous Rebel camp, which had been cleared out recently; however, when we reached the farthest point of our scouting, there were still no signs of any other camp, and the Rebel cavalry kept teasing us from the front. Their clear goal was to draw us into their stronghold, and if we had fallen for the bait, it might have turned out to be something like the battle of Olustee the following year, just on a smaller scale. With a lot of hesitation, I ordered the recall to be sounded, and after a brief pause, we started to head back.

Straining our eyes to look along the reach of level railway which stretched away through the pine barren, we began to see certain ominous puffs of smoke, which might indeed proceed from some fire in the woods, but were at once set down by the men as coming from the mysterious locomotive battery which the Rebels were said to have constructed. Gradually the smoke grew denser, and appeared to be moving up along the track, keeping pace with our motion, and about two miles distant. I watched it steadily through a field-glass from our own slowly moving battery: it seemed to move when we moved and to halt when we halted. Sometimes in the dun smoke I caught a glimpse of something blacker, raised high in the air like the threatening head of some great gliding serpent. Suddenly there came a sharp puff of lighter smoke that seemed like a forked tongue, and then a hollow report, and we could see a great black projectile hurled into the air, and falling a quarter of a mile away from us, in the woods. I did not at once learn that this first shot killed two of the Maine men, and wounded two more. This was fired wide, but the numerous shots which followed were admirably aimed, and seldom failed to fall or explode close to our own smaller battery.

Straining our eyes to look down the flat railway that stretched through the pine forest, we started to see some ominous puffs of smoke. They could have been from a fire in the woods, but the men quickly decided they came from the mysterious locomotive battery that the Rebels were rumored to have built. Gradually, the smoke became thicker and seemed to be moving along the track, matching our pace, about two miles away. I watched it closely through a field glass from our own slowly advancing battery: it seemed to move when we moved and stop when we stopped. Sometimes, through the gray smoke, I caught a glimpse of something darker, raised high like the threatening head of a massive serpent gliding through the air. Suddenly, there was a sharp puff of lighter smoke that looked like a forked tongue, followed by a hollow sound, and we saw a huge black projectile shot into the air, landing a quarter of a mile away in the woods. I didn't immediately find out that this first shot killed two of the Maine men and wounded two others. It was fired wide, but the many shots that came after were well-aimed and rarely missed, often landing or exploding close to our smaller battery.

It was the first time that the men had been seriously exposed to artillery fire,—a danger more exciting to the ignorant mind than any other, as this very war has shown.* So I watched them anxiously. Fortunately there were deep trenches on each side the railway, with many stout, projecting roots, forming very tolerable bomb-proofs for those who happened to be near them. The enemy's gun was a sixty-four-pound Blakely, as we afterward found, whose enormous projectile moved very slowly and gave ample time to cover,—insomuch, that, while the fragments of shell fell all around and amongst us, not a man was hurt. This soon gave the men the most buoyant confidence, and they shouted with childish delight over every explosion.

It was the first time the men had faced serious artillery fire—a danger more thrilling to the uninformed than anything else, as this very war has shown.* So I watched them nervously. Luckily, there were deep trenches on either side of the railway, with many sturdy, jutting roots that made pretty good cover for anyone nearby. The enemy’s gun was a sixty-four-pound Blakely, as we later discovered, whose huge projectile moved very slowly, giving us plenty of time to take cover. So even though the shell fragments fell all around us, not a single man was injured. This quickly boosted the men’s confidence, and they cheered with childlike joy at every explosion.

*Take this for example: "The effect was electrical. The Rebels were the best men in Ford's command, being Lieutenant-Colonel Showalter's Californians, and they are brave men. They had dismounted and sent their horses to the rear, and were undoubtedly determined upon a desperate fight, and their superior numbers made them confident of success. But they never fought with artillery, and a cannon has more terror for them than ten thousand rifles and all the wild Camanches on the plains of Texas. At first glimpse of the shining brass monsters there was a visible wavering in the determined front of the enemy, and as the shells came screaming over their heads the scare was complete. They broke ranks, fled for their horses, scrambled on the first that came to hand, and skedaddled in the direction of Brownsville."New York Evening Post, September 25, 1864.

*Take this for example: "The effect was electric. The Rebels were the best troops in Ford's command, made up of Lieutenant-Colonel Showalter's Californians, and they were brave. They had dismounted and sent their horses to the back, and were clearly ready for a fierce fight, with their larger numbers giving them confidence in victory. But they had never fought against artillery, and a cannon terrified them more than ten thousand rifles and all the wild Comanches on the Texas plains. At the first sight of the gleaming brass monsters, there was a noticeable falter in the enemy's determined front, and as the shells whistled overhead, they were completely spooked. They broke ranks, rushed for their horses, hopped on the first one they found, and took off toward Brownsville."New York Evening Post, September 25, 1864.*

The moment a shell had burst or fallen unburst, our little gun was invariably fired in return, and that with some precision, so far as we could judge, its range also being nearly as great. For some reason they showed no disposition to overtake us, in which attempt their locomotive would have given them an immense advantage over our heavy hand-car, and their cavalry force over our infantry. Nevertheless, I rather hoped that they would attempt it, for then an effort might have been made to cut them off in the rear by taking up some rails. As it was, this was out of the question, though they moved slowly, as we moved, keeping always about two miles away. When they finally ceased firing we took up the rails beyond us before withdrawing, and thus kept the enemy from approaching so near the city again. But I shall never forget that Dantean monster, rearing its black head amid the distant smoke, nor the solicitude with which I watched for the puff which meant danger, and looked round to see if my chickens were all under cover. The greatest peril, after all, was from the possible dismounting of our gun, in which case we should have been very apt to lose it, if the enemy had showed any dash. There may be other such tilts of railway artillery on record during the war; but if so, I have not happened to read of them, and so have dwelt the longer on this.

The moment a shell exploded or landed without going off, our little gun was always fired back, and we did so with some accuracy, as far as we could tell, and its range was almost as far. For some reason, they didn’t try to catch up to us, even though their locomotive would have given them a huge advantage over our heavy handcar, and their cavalry would have had the upper hand over our infantry. Still, I kind of hoped they would try, because then we might have made an effort to cut them off from behind by taking up some tracks. But that was out of the question since they moved slowly, just like us, always staying about two miles away. When they finally stopped firing, we took up the tracks behind us before we withdrew, preventing the enemy from getting too close to the city again. But I’ll never forget that terrifying beast, raising its dark head among the distant smoke, nor the anxiety with which I waited for the puff that signified danger while checking to see if my people were all under cover. The biggest risk, after all, was the potential dismounting of our gun; if that happened, we would likely lose it if the enemy took any bold action. There may have been other similar instances of railway artillery during the war, but if so, I haven’t come across them, so I’ve spent more time on this one.

This was doubtless the same locomotive battery which had previously fired more than once upon the town,—running up within two miles and then withdrawing, while it was deemed inexpedient to destroy the railroad, on our part, lest it might be needed by ourselves in turn. One night, too, the Rebel threat had been fulfilled, and they had shelled the town with the same battery. They had the range well, and every shot fell near the post headquarters. It was exciting to see the great Blakely shell, showing a light as it rose, and moving slowly towards us like a comet, then exploding and scattering its formidable fragments. Yet, strange to say, no serious harm was done to life or limb, and the most formidable casualty was that of a citizen who complained that a shell had passed through the wall of his bedroom, and carried off his mosquito curtain in its transit.

This was definitely the same artillery battery that had previously targeted the town more than once — advancing within two miles and then pulling back, since it seemed unwise to destroy the railroad, in case we needed it ourselves later. One night, the Rebel threat was realized, and they shelled the town with the same battery. They had their aim down, and every shot landed close to the post headquarters. It was thrilling to see the large Blakely shell, lighting up as it launched and slowly approaching us like a comet, then exploding and scattering its dangerous fragments. Yet, oddly enough, no serious damage was done to anyone, and the biggest complaint came from a citizen who said a shell had gone through the wall of his bedroom and taken his mosquito net with it.

Little knew we how soon these small entertainments would be over. Colonel Montgomery had gone up the river with his two companies, perhaps to remain permanently; and I was soon to follow. On Friday, March 27th, I wrote home: "The Burnside has gone to Beaufort for rations, and the John Adams to Fernandina for coal; we expect both back by Sunday, and on Monday I hope to get the regiment off to a point farther up,—Magnolia, thirty-five miles, or Pilatka, seventy-five,—either of which would be a good post for us. General Hunter is expected every day, and it is strange he has not come." The very next day came an official order recalling the whole expedition, and for the third time evacuating Jacksonville.

We had no idea how soon these small gatherings would come to an end. Colonel Montgomery had moved up the river with his two companies, possibly to stay there permanently; I would be following shortly. On Friday, March 27th, I wrote home: "The Burnside has gone to Beaufort for supplies, and the John Adams to Fernandina for coal; we expect both back by Sunday, and on Monday I hope to get the regiment off to a location farther up,—Magnolia, thirty-five miles, or Pilatka, seventy-five,—either of which would be a good position for us. General Hunter is expected any day now, and it's odd he hasn't arrived." The very next day, we received an official order recalling the entire expedition, and for the third time, evacuating Jacksonville.

A council of military and naval officers was at once called (though there was but one thing to be done), and the latter were even more disappointed and amazed than the former. This was especially the case with the senior naval officer, Captain Steedman, a South-Carolinian by birth, but who had proved himself as patriotic as he was courteous and able, and whose presence and advice had been of the greatest value to me. He and all of us felt keenly the wrongfulness of breaking the pledges which we had been authorized to make to these people, and of leaving them to the mercy of the Rebels once more. Most of the people themselves took the same view, and eagerly begged to accompany us on our departure. They were allowed to bring their clothing and furniture also, and at once developed that insane mania for aged and valueless trumpery which always seizes upon the human race, I believe, in moments of danger. With the greatest difficulty we selected between the essential and the non-essential, and our few transports were at length loaded to the very water's edge on the morning of March 29th,—Colonel Montgomery having by this time returned from up-river, with sixteen prisoners, and the fruits of foraging in plenty.

A meeting of military and naval officers was quickly called (even though there was only one thing to do), and the naval officers were even more disappointed and shocked than the military ones. This was especially true for the senior naval officer, Captain Steedman, who was from South Carolina but had shown himself to be as patriotic as he was polite and skilled. His presence and advice had been incredibly valuable to me. He and the rest of us felt strongly that it was wrong to break the promises we had made to these people and to leave them at the mercy of the Rebels again. Most of the people felt the same way and eagerly asked to join us when we left. They were allowed to take their clothes and furniture with them, and they quickly became fixated on old and worthless items, which seems to happen to people during times of danger. We struggled to decide what was essential and what wasn’t, and by the morning of March 29th, our few transport boats were loaded to the brim—Colonel Montgomery had returned from up-river with sixteen prisoners and plenty of supplies from foraging.

And upon that last morning occurred an act on the part of some of the garrison most deeply to be regretted, and not to be excused by the natural indignation at their recall,—an act which, through the unfortunate eloquence of one newspaper correspondent, rang through the nation,—the attempt to burn the town. I fortunately need not dwell much upon it, as I was not at the time in command of the post,—as the white soldiers frankly took upon themselves the whole responsibility,—and as all the fires were made in the wooden part of the city, which was occupied by them, while none were made in the brick part, where the colored soldiers were quartered. It was fortunate for our reputation that the newspaper accounts generally agreed in exculpating us from all share in the matter;* and the single exception, which one correspondent asserted, I could never verify, and do not believe to have existed. It was stated by Colonel Rust, in his official report, that some twenty-five buildings in all were burned, and I doubt if the actual number was greater; but this was probably owing in part to a change of wind, and did not diminish the discredit of the transaction. It made our sorrow at departure no less, though it infinitely enhanced the impressiveness of the scene.

And on that last morning, something happened that the garrison deeply regretted and couldn't justify, despite their natural anger at being recalled—an act that, due to the unfortunate words of one newspaper correspondent, echoed nationwide: the attempt to burn the town. Luckily, I don’t need to elaborate much on it because I wasn't in charge of the post at the time—the white soldiers fully took responsibility—and all the fires were set in the wooden part of the city, which they occupied, while none were set in the brick section, where the colored soldiers were stationed. It was fortunate for our reputation that most newspaper accounts cleared us of any involvement; the one exception claimed by a correspondent I could never verify and don't believe happened. Colonel Rust noted in his official report that about twenty-five buildings in total were burned, and I doubt the actual number was higher; this was likely due in part to a change in the wind and didn't lessen the disgrace of the incident. Our sadness at leaving was unchanged, although it certainly made the scene even more memorable.

     *"The colored regiments had nothing at all to do with it;
     they behaved with propriety throughout" Boston Journal
     Correspondence. ("Carleton.")
*"The colored regiments had nothing to do with it; they acted appropriately the whole time." Boston Journal Correspondence. ("Carleton.")*

"The negro troops took no part whatever in the perpetration of this Vandalism."New York Tribune Correspondence. ("N. P.")

"The Black troops didn't take part at all in this vandalism."New York Tribune Correspondence. ("N. P.")

"We know not whether we are most rejoiced or saddened to observe, by the general concurrence of accounts, that the negro soldiers had nothing to do with the barbarous act" Boston Journal Editorial, April 10, 1863.

"We don't know if we should be more happy or sad to see, based on the general agreement of reports, that the Black soldiers had no part in the horrific act." Boston Journal Editorial, April 10, 1863.

The excitement of the departure was intense. The embarkation was so laborious that it seemed as if the flames must be upon us before we could get on board, and it was also generally expected that the Rebel skirmishers would be down among the houses, wherever practicable, to annoy us to the utmost, as had been the case at the previous evacuation. They were, indeed, there, as we afterwards heard, but did not venture to molest us. The sight and roar of the flames, and the rolling clouds of smoke, brought home to the impressible minds of the black soldiers all their favorite imagery of the Judgment-Day; and those who were not too much depressed by disappointment were excited by the spectacle, and sang and exhorted without ceasing.

The excitement of leaving was overwhelming. Getting on board was such a struggle that it felt like the flames would reach us before we could embark, and everyone expected that the Rebel skirmishers would be hiding among the houses, wherever they could, to bother us as much as possible, just like during the last evacuation. They were, in fact, present, as we later learned, but they didn't try to attack us. The sight and roar of the flames, along with the billowing clouds of smoke, triggered all sorts of apocalyptic thoughts for the impressionable black soldiers; those who weren't too weighed down by disappointment were stirred by the scene and kept singing and encouraging one another continuously.

With heavy hearts their officers floated down the lovely river, which we had ascended with hopes so buoyant; and from that day to this, the reasons for our recall have never been made public. It was commonly attributed to proslavery advisers, acting on the rather impulsive nature of Major-General Hunter, with a view to cut short the career of the colored troops, and stop their recruiting. But it may have been simply the scarcity of troops in the Department, and the renewed conviction at head-quarters that we were too few to hold the post alone. The latter theory was strengthened by the fact that, when General Seymour reoccupied Jacksonville, the following year, he took with him twenty thousand men instead of one thousand,—and the sanguinary battle of Olustee found him with too few.

With heavy hearts, their officers drifted down the beautiful river, which we had traveled up with such high hopes; and since then, the reasons for our recall have never been revealed. It was often blamed on proslavery advisers influencing the somewhat impulsive Major-General Hunter, aiming to cut short the service of the colored troops and halt their recruiting. But it might have just been due to the lack of troops in the Department, along with the renewed belief at headquarters that we were too few to hold the post by ourselves. This idea was supported by the fact that when General Seymour returned to Jacksonville the following year, he brought along twenty thousand men instead of just one thousand—and the bloody battle of Olustee found him short on troops.





Chapter 5. Out on Picket

One can hardly imagine a body of men more disconsolate than a regiment suddenly transferred from an adventurous life in the enemy's country to the quiet of a sheltered camp, on safe and familiar ground. The men under my command were deeply dejected when, on a most appropriate day,—the First of April, 1863,—they found themselves unaccountably recalled from Florida, that region of delights which had seemed theirs by the right of conquest. My dusky soldiers, who based their whole walk and conversation strictly on the ancient Israelites, felt that the prophecies were all set at naught, and that they were on the wrong side of the Red Sea; indeed, I fear they regarded even me as a sort of reversed Moses, whose Pisgah fronted in the wrong direction. Had they foreseen how the next occupation of the Promised Land was destined to result, they might have acquiesced with more of their wonted cheerfulness. As it was, we were very glad to receive, after a few days of discontented repose on the very ground where we had once been so happy, an order to go out on picket at Port Royal Ferry, with the understanding that we might remain there for some time. This picket station was regarded as a sort of military picnic by the regiments stationed at Beaufort, South Carolina; it meant blackberries and oysters, wild roses and magnolias, flowery lanes instead of sandy barrens, and a sort of guerilla existence in place of the camp routine. To the colored soldiers especially, with their love of country life, and their extensive personal acquaintance on the plantations, it seemed quite like a Christmas festival. Besides, they would be in sight of the enemy, and who knew but there might, by the blessing of Providence, be a raid or a skirmish? If they could not remain on the St. John's River, it was something to dwell on the Coosaw. In the end they enjoyed it as much as they expected, and though we "went out" several times subsequently, until it became an old story, the enjoyment never waned. And as even the march from the camp to the picket lines was something that could not possibly have been the same for any white regiment in the service, it is worth while to begin at the beginning and describe it.

One can hardly imagine a group of men more downcast than a regiment suddenly moved from an adventurous life in enemy territory to the calm of a safe camp on familiar ground. The men under my command were very dejected when, on a particularly fitting day—the First of April, 1863—they found themselves unexpectedly recalled from Florida, that paradise they believed was theirs by right of conquest. My dark-skinned soldiers, who modeled their entire way of living and talking on the ancient Israelites, felt that the prophecies had been completely disregarded and that they were on the wrong side of the Red Sea; indeed, I fear they viewed me as a sort of backwards Moses, whose Pisgah faced the wrong way. If they had foreseen how the next conquest of the Promised Land would turn out, they might have accepted their situation with more of their usual cheer. As it was, we were very glad to receive, after a few days of restless downtime on the very ground where we had once been so happy, an order to go out on picket duty at Port Royal Ferry, with the understanding that we might be there for a while. This picket station was seen as a kind of military picnic by the regiments stationed at Beaufort, South Carolina; it meant picking blackberries and eating oysters, surrounded by wild roses and magnolias, enjoying flower-filled paths instead of sandy wasteland, and living a sort of guerrilla life instead of the usual camp routine. For the Black soldiers in particular, with their love for country living and many connections on the plantations, it felt a lot like a Christmas celebration. Plus, they would be in sight of the enemy, and who knew, with a little divine luck, there might be a raid or a skirmish? If they couldn’t stay on the St. John’s River, it was something to be along the Coosaw. In the end, they enjoyed it just as much as they expected, and even though we went out several times afterward until it became routine, the enjoyment never faded. And since even the march from the camp to the picket lines was something that could never have been the same for any white regiment in the service, it’s worth starting from the beginning and describing it.

A regiment ordered on picket was expected to have reveille at daybreak, and to be in line for departure by sunrise. This delighted our men, who always took a childlike pleasure in being out of bed at any unreasonable hour; and by the time I had emerged, the tents were nearly all struck, and the great wagons were lumbering into camp to receive them, with whatever else was to be transported. The first rays of the sun must fall upon the line of these wagons, moving away across the wide parade-ground, followed by the column of men, who would soon outstrip them. But on the occasion which I especially describe the sun was shrouded, and, when once upon the sandy plain, neither camp nor town nor river could be seen in the dimness; and when I rode forward and looked back there was only visible the long, moving, shadowy column, seeming rather awful in its snake-like advance. There was a swaying of flags and multitudinous weapons that might have been camels' necks for all one could see, and the whole thing might have been a caravan upon the desert. Soon we debouched upon the "Shell Road," the wagon-train drew on one side into the fog, and by the time the sun appeared the music ceased, the men took the "route step," and the fun began.

A regiment sent out on guard duty was supposed to wake up at dawn and be ready to leave by sunrise. This thrilled our men, who always found joy in getting up at such an unreasonable hour; by the time I got up, nearly all the tents had been taken down, and the big wagons were rolling into camp to load them up, along with anything else that needed to be moved. The first light of the sun was supposed to hit the line of wagons as they crossed the wide parade ground, followed by the group of men, who would soon move faster than them. But on this particular occasion that I'm describing, the sun was hidden, and once we were on the sandy plain, neither camp, town, nor river was visible in the gloom; when I rode ahead and looked back, all I could see was the long, moving, shadowy line, which looked quite eerie with its snake-like progress. There was a waving of flags and countless weapons that could have been mistaken for camels' necks for all you could see, and it felt like a caravan crossing the desert. Soon we arrived at the "Shell Road," the wagon train moved off to one side into the mist, and by the time the sun came out, the music stopped, the men fell into step, and the fun began.

The "route step" is an abandonment of all military strictness, and nothing is required of the men but to keep four abreast, and not lag behind. They are not required to keep step, though, with the rhythmical ear of our soldiers, they almost always instinctively did so; talking and singing are allowed, and of this privilege, at least, they eagerly availed themselves. On this day they were at the top of exhilaration. There was one broad grin from one end of the column to the other; it might soon have been a caravan of elephants instead of camels, for the ivory and the blackness; the chatter and the laughter almost drowned the tramp of feet and the clatter of equipments. At cross-roads and plantation gates the colored people thronged to see us pass; every one found a friend and a greeting. "How you do, aunty?" "Huddy (how d'ye), Budder Benjamin?" "How you find yourself dis mor-nin', Tittawisa (Sister Louisa)?" Such saluations rang out to everybody, known or unknown. In return, venerable, kerchiefed matrons courtesied laboriously to every one, with an unfailing "Bress de Lord, budder." Grave little boys, blacker than ink, shook hands with our laughing and utterly unmanageable drummers, who greeted them with this sure word of prophecy, "Dem's de drummers for de nex' war!" Pretty mulatto girls ogled and coquetted, and made eyes, as Thackeray would say, at half the young fellows in the battalion. Meantime the singing was brisk along the whole column, and when I sometimes reined up to see them pass, the chant of each company, entering my ear, drove out from the other ear the strain of the preceding. Such an odd mixture of things, military and missionary, as the successive waves of song drifted byl First, "John Brown," of course; then, "What make old Satan for follow me so?" then, "Marching Along"; then, "Hold your light on Canaan's shore"; then, "When this cruel war is over" (a new favorite, sung by a few); yielding presently to a grand burst of the favorite marching song among them all, and one at which every step instinctively quickened, so light and jubilant its rhythm,—

The "route step" means ditching all military formality, and all the guys need to do is walk four abreast and not fall behind. They’re not required to keep in step, but with the instinctual rhythm of our soldiers, they usually did; chatting and singing are allowed, and they definitely took advantage of that. That day, they were in high spirits. There were broad smiles from one end of the column to the other; it could have easily been a caravan of elephants instead of camels, given the mix of ivory and black. The talking and laughing nearly overshadowed the sound of footsteps and the clanging of equipment. At intersections and plantation gates, local people gathered to watch us go by; everyone found a friend and exchanged greetings. "How you doing, aunty?" "Huddy (how d'ye), Budder Benjamin?" "How's your morning, Tittawisa (Sister Louisa)?" Such greetings bounced around to everyone, known or unknown. In reply, older women wearing headscarves graciously curtsied to everyone with a joyful "Bress de Lord, budder." Serious little boys, darker than ink, shook hands with our laughing and completely rowdy drummers, who responded with a prophetic, "Dem's de drummers for de nex' war!" Attractive mixed-race girls flirted and made eyes at half of the young guys in the battalion. Meanwhile, singing rang out along the entire column, and when I sometimes paused to watch them go by, each company’s song entering one ear pushed out the tune of the one before it. It was such an odd blend of military and spiritual vibes as the waves of song drifted past. First, "John Brown," of course; then, "What make old Satan for follow me so?" followed by, "Marching Along"; then, "Hold your light on Canaan's shore"; then, "When this cruel war is over" (a fresh favorite sung by a few); eventually giving way to a powerful burst of the most popular marching song of them all, which made everyone instinctively pick up the pace, so light and joyful was its rhythm,—

  "All true children gwine in de wilderness,
  Gwine in de wilderness, gwine in de wilderness,
  True believers gwine in de wilderness,
  To take away de sins ob de world,"—
"All true children going into the wilderness,  
Going into the wilderness, going into the wilderness,  
True believers going into the wilderness,  
To take away the sins of the world,"—

ending in a "Hoigh!" after each verse,—a sort of Irish yell. For all the songs, but especially for their own wild hymns, they constantly improvised simple verses, with the same odd mingling,—the little facts of to-day's march being interwoven with the depths of theological gloom, and the same jubilant chorus annexed to all; thus,—

ending in a "Hoigh!" after each verse—a kind of Irish shout. For all the songs, but especially for their own wild hymns, they constantly made up simple verses, with the same strange mix—the little details of today's march being woven in with deep theological gloom, all tied together with the same joyful chorus; thus,—

  "We're gwin to de Ferry,
    De bell done ringing;
  Gwine to de landing,
    De bell done ringing;
  Trust, believer
    O, de bell done ringing;
  Satan's behind me,
    De bell done ringing;
  'T is a misty morning,
    De bell done ringing;
  O de road am sandy,
    De bell done ringing;
  Hell been open,
    De bell done ringing";—
"We're going to the ferry,  
The bell's already ringing;  
Going to the landing,  
The bell's already ringing;  
Trust, believer,  
Oh, the bell's already ringing;  
Satan's behind me,  
The bell's already ringing;  
It's a misty morning,  
The bell's already ringing;  
Oh, the road is sandy,  
The bell's already ringing;  
Hell's been opened,  
The bell's already ringing;"—

and so on indefinitely.

and so on forever.

The little drum-corps kept in advance, a jolly crew, their drums slung on their backs, and the drum-sticks perhaps balanced on their heads. With them went the officers' servant-boys, more uproarious still, always ready to lend their shrill treble to any song. At the head of the whole force there walked, by some self-imposed pre-eminence, a respectable elderly female, one of the company laundresses, whose vigorous stride we never could quite overtake, and who had an enormous bundle balanced on her head, while she waved in her hand, like a sword, a long-handled tin dipper. Such a picturesque medley of fun, war, and music I believe no white regiment in the service could have shown; and yet there was no straggling, and a single tap of the drum would at any moment bring order out of this seeming chaos. So we marched our seven miles out upon the smooth and shaded road,—beneath jasmine clusters, and great pine-cones dropping, and great bunches of misletoe still in bloom among the branches. Arrived at the station, the scene soon became busy and more confused; wagons were being unloaded, tents pitched, water brought, wood cut, fires made, while the "field and staff" could take possession of the abandoned quarters of their predecessors, and we could look round in the lovely summer morning to "survey our empire and behold our home."

The little drum corps marched ahead, a cheerful bunch, with their drums hanging on their backs and maybe their drumsticks balanced on their heads. Along with them were the officers’ servant boys, even louder and always ready to add their high-pitched voices to any song. Leading the whole group was a respectable elderly woman, one of the company laundresses, whose strong stride we could never quite catch up to. She carried a huge bundle on her head and waved a long-handled tin dipper in her hand like a sword. I don't think any white regiment could match such a colorful mix of fun, chaos, and music; yet there was no straggling, and a single beat of the drum could restore order at any moment. So we marched our seven miles along the smooth, shaded road—beneath clusters of jasmine, with large pine cones dropping and bunches of mistletoe still blooming among the branches. When we arrived at the station, the scene quickly became busy and chaotic; wagons were being unloaded, tents were being set up, water was fetched, wood was chopped, and fires were lit, while the "field and staff" took over the former quarters of their predecessors, and we looked around on that lovely summer morning to "survey our empire and behold our home."

The only thoroughfare by land between Beaufort and Charleston is the "Shell Road," a beautiful avenue, which, about nine miles from Beaufort, strikes a ferry across the Coosaw River. War abolished the ferry, and made the river the permanent barrier between the opposing picket lines. For ten miles, right and left, these lines extended, marked by well-worn footpaths, following the endless windings of the stream; and they never varied until nearly the end of the war. Upon their maintenance depended our whole foothold on the Sea Islands; and upon that again finally depended the whole campaign of Sherman. But for the services of the colored troops, which finally formed the main garrison of the Department of the South, the Great March would never have been performed.

The only land route connecting Beaufort and Charleston is the "Shell Road," a lovely road that, about nine miles from Beaufort, crosses the Coosaw River by ferry. The war ended the ferry service, turning the river into a permanent barrier between the opposing outposts. For ten miles on either side, these lines stretched, marked by well-trodden paths that followed the river's winding course; they remained unchanged until almost the end of the war. Our entire position on the Sea Islands depended on their upkeep, and that, in turn, was crucial for Sherman’s entire campaign. Without the contributions of the Black troops, who eventually became the main garrison for the Department of the South, the Great March would never have taken place.

There was thus a region ten or twelve miles square of which I had exclusive military command. It was level, but otherwise broken and bewildering to the last degree. No road traversed it, properly speaking, but the Shell Road. All the rest was a wild medley of cypress swamp, pine barren, muddy creek, and cultivated plantation, intersected by interminable lanes and bridle-paths, through which we must ride day and night, and which our horses soon knew better than ourselves. The regiment was distributed at different stations, the main force being under my immediate command, at a plantation close by the Shell Road, two miles from the ferry, and seven miles from Beaufort. Our first picket duty was just at the time of the first attack on Charleston, under Dupont and Hunter; and it was generally supposed that the Confederates would make an effort to recapture the Sea Islands. My orders were to watch the enemy closely, keep informed as to his position and movements, attempt no advance, and, in case any were attempted from the other side, to delay it as long as possible, sending instant notice to head-quarters. As to the delay, that could be easily guaranteed. There were causeways on the Shell Road which a single battery could hold against a large force; and the plantations were everywhere so intersected by hedges and dikes that they seemed expressly planned for defence. Although creeks wound in and out everywhere, yet these were only navigable at high tide, and at all other times were impassable marshes. There were but few posts where the enemy were within rifle range, and their occasional attacks at those points were soon stopped by our enforcement of a pithy order from General Hunter, "Give them as good as they send." So that, with every opportunity for being kept on the alert, there was small prospect of serious danger; and all promised an easy life, with only enough of care to make it pleasant. The picket station was therefore always a coveted post among the regiments, combining some undeniable importance with a kind of relaxation; and as we were there three months on our first tour of duty, and returned there several times afterwards, we got well acquainted with it. The whole region always reminded me of the descriptions of La Vende'e, and I always expected to meet Henri Larochejaquelein riding in the woods.

There was a region about ten to twelve miles square that I had complete military control over. It was flat but otherwise confusing to the extreme. There was no real road running through it except for the Shell Road. The rest was a chaotic mix of cypress swamps, pine barrens, muddy creeks, and cultivated plantations, crisscrossed by endless lanes and bridle paths where we had to ride day and night, which our horses quickly learned better than we did. The regiment was stationed at various locations, with the main force under my direct command at a plantation near the Shell Road, two miles from the ferry and seven miles from Beaufort. Our first picket duty coincided with the initial attack on Charleston, led by Dupont and Hunter, and it was widely believed that the Confederates would try to reclaim the Sea Islands. My orders were to closely monitor the enemy, stay updated on their position and movements, make no advances, and if any were attempted from the other side, to delay them as long as possible while immediately notifying headquarters. As for the delay, that was easy to ensure. There were causeways on the Shell Road that a single battery could defend against a large force; and the plantations were so interspersed with hedges and dikes that they seemed specifically designed for defense. Although creeks wound in and out everywhere, they were only navigable at high tide, and at all other times were swampy marshes. There were only a few posts where the enemy were within rifle range, and their occasional attacks at those locations were quickly thwarted by our enforcement of a straightforward order from General Hunter: "Give them as good as they send." So, with plenty of chances to stay alert, there was little chance of serious danger, and everything suggested an easy life with just enough concern to keep it enjoyable. The picket station was always a sought-after position among the regiments, combining undeniable importance with a degree of relaxation; and since we were there for three months on our first tour of duty and returned several times after that, we became very familiar with it. The whole area always reminded me of descriptions of La Vendée, and I often expected to see Henri Larochejaquelein riding through the woods.

How can I ever describe the charm and picturesqueness of that summer life? Our house possessed four spacious rooms and a piazza; around it were grouped sheds and tents; the camp was a little way off on one side, the negro-quarters of the plantation on the other; and all was immersed in a dense mass of waving and murmuring locust-blossoms. The spring days were always lovely, while the evenings were always conveniently damp; so that we never shut the windows by day, nor omitted our cheerful fire by night. Indoors, the main head-quarters seemed like the camp of some party of young engineers in time of peace, only with a little female society added, and a good many martial associations thrown in. A large, low, dilapidated room, with an immense fireplace, and with window-panes chiefly broken, so that the sashes were still open even when closed,—such was our home. The walls were scrawled with capital charcoal sketches by R. of the Fourth New Hampshire, and with a good map of the island and its wood-paths by C. of the First Massachusetts Cavalry. The room had the picturesqueness which comes everywhere from the natural grouping of articles of daily use,—swords, belts, pistols, rifles, field-glasses, spurs, canteens, gauntlets,—while wreaths of gray moss above the windows, and a pelican's wing three feet long over the high mantel-piece, indicated more deliberate decoration. This, and the whole atmosphere of the place, spoke of the refining presence of agreeable women; and it was pleasant when they held their little court in the evening, and pleasant all day, with the different visitors who were always streaming in and out,—officers and soldiers on various business; turbaned women from the plantations, coming with complaints or questionings; fugitives from the main-land to be interrogated; visitors riding up on horseback, their hands full of jasmine and wild roses; and the sweet sunny air all perfumed with magnolias and the Southern pine. From the neighboring camp there was a perpetual low hum. Louder voices and laughter re-echoed, amid the sharp sounds of the axe, from the pine woods; and sometimes, when the relieved pickets were discharging their pieces, there came the hollow sound of dropping rifle-shots, as in skirmishing,—perhaps the most unmistakable and fascinating association that war bequeaths to the memory of the ear.

How can I even describe the charm and beauty of that summer life? Our house had four spacious rooms and a piazza; surrounding it were sheds and tents; the camp was located a little way off on one side, and the plantation's quarters on the other; everything was surrounded by a lush, rustling mass of locust blossoms. The spring days were always beautiful, and the evenings were conveniently damp, so we never closed the windows during the day or skipped our cozy fire at night. Inside, the main area felt like the camp of some peaceful group of young engineers, but with a bit of female company added and plenty of military memories mixed in. It was a large, low, worn-out room with a huge fireplace and mostly broken window panes, so the sashes remained open even when closed—this was our home. The walls were covered in impressive charcoal sketches by R. of the Fourth New Hampshire and a detailed map of the island and its paths by C. of the First Massachusetts Cavalry. The room had a unique charm that comes from the natural arrangement of everyday items—swords, belts, pistols, rifles, binoculars, spurs, canteens, gloves—while gray moss draped above the windows and a three-foot-long pelican wing hung over the high mantelpiece, showing more deliberate decoration. This, along with the overall vibe of the place, hinted at the uplifting presence of welcoming women; it was lovely when they held their little gatherings in the evening, and all day long, there were different visitors constantly coming and going—officers and soldiers with various tasks; women from the plantations in turbans, arriving with complaints or questions; refugees from the mainland to be questioned; guests riding up on horseback with hands full of jasmine and wild roses; and the sweet sunny air filled with the scents of magnolias and Southern pines. From the nearby camp, there was a constant low buzz. Louder voices and laughter echoed amid the sharp sounds of axes in the pine woods, and sometimes, when relieved pickets discharged their weapons, the dull sound of falling rifle shots would come through, like in skirmishes—perhaps the most unmistakable and captivating reminder that war leaves behind in memory.

Our domestic arrangements were of the oddest description. From the time when we began housekeeping by taking down the front-door to complete therewith a little office for the surgeon on the piazza, everything seemed upside down. I slept on a shelf in the corner of the parlor, bequeathed me by Major F., my jovial predecessor, and, if I waked at any time, could put my head through the broken window, arouse my orderly, and ride off to see if I could catch a picket asleep. We used to spell the word picquet, because that was understood to be the correct thing, in that Department at least; and they used to say at post head-quarters that as soon as the officer in command of the outposts grew negligent, and was guilty of a k, he was ordered in immediately. Then the arrangements for ablution were peculiar. We fitted up a bathing-place in a brook, which somehow got appropriated at once by the company laundresses; but I had my revenge, for I took to bathing in the family washtub. After all, however, the kitchen department had the advantage, for they used my solitary napkin to wipe the mess-table. As for food, we found it impossible to get chickens, save in the immature shape of eggs; fresh pork was prohibited by the surgeon, and other fresh meat came rarely. We could, indeed, hunt for wild turkeys, and even deer, but such hunting was found only to increase the appetite, without corresponding supply. Still we had our luxuries,—large, delicious drum-fish, and alligator steaks,—like a more substantial fried halibut,—which might have afforded the theme for Charles Lamb's dissertation on Roast Pig, and by whose aid "for the first time in our lives we tested crackling" The post bakery yielded admirable bread; and for vegetables and fruit we had very poor sweet potatoes, and (in their season) an unlimited supply of the largest blackberries. For beverage, we had the vapid milk of that region, in which, if you let it stand, the water sinks instead of the cream's rising; and the delicious sugar-cane syrup, which we had brought from Florida, and which we drank at all hours. Old Floridians say that no one is justified in drinking whiskey, while he can get cane-juice; it is sweet and spirited, without cloying, foams like ale, and there were little spots on the ceiling of the dining-room where our lively beverage had popped out its cork. We kept it in a whiskey-bottle; and as whiskey itself was absolutely prohibited among us, it was amusing to see the surprise of our military visitors when this innocent substitute was brought in. They usually liked it in the end, but, like the old Frenchwoman over her glass of water, wished that it were a sin to give it a relish. As the foaming beakers of molasses and water were handed round, the guests would make with them the courteous little gestures of polite imbiding, and would then quaff the beverage, some with gusto, others with a slight afterlook of dismay. But it was a delicious and cooling drink while it lasted; and at all events was the best and the worst we had.

Our living situation was pretty strange. From the moment we started running our household by taking down the front door to create a little office for the surgeon on the piazza, everything felt chaotic. I slept on a shelf in the corner of the parlor, handed down to me by Major F., my cheerful predecessor. If I happened to wake up at any point, I could poke my head through the broken window, rouse my orderly, and head out to see if I could catch a picket off guard. We used to spell the word picquet, since it was deemed the right way to do it, at least in that department; and they would say at post headquarters that as soon as the officer in charge of the outposts became careless and made a mistake, he would get called back immediately. The arrangements for washing up were also unusual. We set up a bathing area in a brook, which somehow got quickly taken over by the company laundresses; but I got my revenge by starting to bathe in the family washtub. However, the kitchen crew had the upper hand, as they used my solitary napkin to wipe down the mess table. As for food, we found it impossible to get chickens, except in the form of eggs; fresh pork was banned by the surgeon, and other fresh meats were hard to come by. We could hunt wild turkeys and even deer, but that hunting just made us hungrier without providing enough food. Still, we enjoyed some luxuries—big, tasty drumfish and alligator steaks—which were like a more substantial version of fried halibut, possibly inspiring Charles Lamb's essay on Roast Pig, and thanks to which "for the first time in our lives we tested crackling." The post bakery provided excellent bread; and for vegetables and fruit, we had very poor sweet potatoes and, when in season, an unlimited supply of huge blackberries. For drinks, we had the bland milk from the area, where if you let it sit, the water sinks instead of the cream rising; and the delicious sugar-cane syrup we brought from Florida, which we drank at all hours. Old Floridians say no one should drink whiskey when there's cane juice available; it's sweet and spirited without being too heavy, foams like ale, and there were little spots on the dining room ceiling where our lively drink had popped its cork. We kept it in a whiskey bottle, and since whiskey was completely banned among us, it was funny to see the surprise of our military visitors when this harmless substitute was brought out. They usually ended up liking it, but, like the old Frenchwoman with her glass of water, wished it were a sin to enjoy it. As the frothy mixtures of molasses and water were passed around, the guests would make polite gestures of drinking before quaffing the beverage, some with enthusiasm, others with a hint of regret afterward. But it was a refreshing and delicious drink while it lasted, and in any case, it was the best and the worst we had.

We used to have reveille at six, and breakfast about seven; then the mounted couriers began to arrive from half a dozen different directions, with written reports of what had happened during the night,—a boat seen, a picket fired upon, a battery erecting. These must be consolidated and forwarded to head-quarters, with the daily report of the command,—so many sick, so many on detached service, and all the rest. This was our morning newspaper, our Herald and Tribune; I never got tired of it. Then the couriers must be furnished with countersign and instructions, and sent off again. Then we scattered to our various rides, all disguised as duty; one to inspect pickets, one to visit a sick soldier, one to build a bridge or clear a road, and still another to head-quarters for ammunition or commissary stores. Galloping through green lanes, miles of triumphal arches of wild roses,—roses pale and large and fragrant, mingled with great boughs of the white cornel, fantastic masses, snowy surprises,—such were our rides, ranging from eight to fifteen and even twenty miles. Back to a late dinner with our various experiences, and perhaps specimens to match,—a thunder-snake, eight feet long; a live opossum, with a young clinging to the natural pouch; an armful of great white, scentless pond-lilies. After dinner, to the tangled garden for rosebuds or early magnolias, whose cloying fragrance will always bring back to me the full zest of those summer days; then dress-parade and a little drill as the day grew cool. In the evening, tea; and then the piazza or the fireside, as the case might be,—chess, cards,—perhaps a little music by aid of the assistant surgeon's melodeon, a few pages of Jean Paul's "Titan," almost my only book, and carefully husbanded,—perhaps a mail, with its infinite felicities. Such was our day.

We used to wake up at six, have breakfast around seven, and then the mounted couriers would start arriving from several directions with written reports on what happened during the night—like a boat sighting, a picket being fired on, or a battery being set up. These needed to be compiled and sent to headquarters, along with the daily command report—number of sick, number on special duty, and so on. This was our morning news, our Herald and Tribune; I never got tired of it. Then, the couriers were given the countersign and instructions before being sent off again. After that, we spread out for our various rounds, all under the guise of duty; one to check on pickets, one to visit a sick soldier, one to build a bridge or clear a road, and another to headquarters for ammunition or supplies. Riding through green paths, under arches of wild roses—big, pale, and fragrant roses mixed with large branches of white dogwood, creating fantastic, snowy scenes—those were our rides, ranging from eight to fifteen or even twenty miles. We returned for a late dinner with stories from our day, and maybe even souvenirs—like an eight-foot rattlesnake, a live opossum with a baby clinging to its pouch, or a bunch of big, scentless pond lilies. After dinner, we’d head to the overgrown garden for rosebuds or early magnolias, their sweet smell forever reminding me of those vibrant summer days; then there was dress-parade and some drill as evening set in. In the evening, we had tea, then gathered on the porch or by the fire—playing chess or cards, maybe some music from the assistant surgeon’s melodeon, a few pages of Jean Paul's "Titan," my only book which I saved carefully, and perhaps some mail with its little joys. That was our day.

Night brought its own fascinations, more solitary and profound. The darker they were, the more clearly it was our duty to visit the pickets. The paths that had grown so familiar by day seemed a wholly new labyrinth by night; and every added shade of darkness seemed to shift and complicate them all anew, till at last man's skill grew utterly baffled, and the clew must be left to the instinct of the horse. Riding beneath the solemn starlight, or soft, gray mist, or densest blackness, the frogs croaking, the strange "chuckwuts-widow" droning his ominous note above my head, the mocking-bird dreaming in music, the great Southern fireflies rising to the tree-tops, or hovering close to the ground like glowworms, till the horse raised his hoofs to avoid them; through pine woods and cypress swamps, or past sullen brooks, or white tents, or the dimly seen huts of sleeping negroes; down to the glimmering shore, where black statues leaned against trees or stood alert in the pathways;—never, in all the days of my life, shall I forget the magic of those haunted nights.

Night brought its own allure, deeper and more reflective. The darker it got, the more it felt necessary for us to check the pickets. The paths that were so familiar during the day seemed like a completely new maze at night; every added layer of darkness made them even more confusing until it felt like all human skill was lost, and we had to rely on the horse's instincts. Riding under the serious starlight, or soft gray mist, or the thickest darkness, with frogs croaking, the eerie "chuckwuts-widow" droning its unsettling note above me, the mockingbird singing away, and the big Southern fireflies rising to the treetops or hovering near the ground like glowworms, making the horse lift its hooves to avoid them; through pine woods and cypress swamps, past gloomy brooks, white tents, or the faintly visible huts of sleeping Black people; down to the shimmering shore, where dark figures leaned against trees or stood watch in the paths;—I will never, in all my days, forget the enchantment of those eerie nights.

We had nocturnal boat service, too, for it was a part of our instructions to obtain all possible information about the enemy's position; and we accordingly, as usual in such cases, incurred a great many risks that harmed nobody, and picked up much information which did nobody any good. The centre of these nightly reconnoissances, for a long time, was the wreck of the George Washington, the story of whose disaster is perhaps worth telling.

We also had nighttime boat service because it was part of our orders to gather as much information as possible about the enemy's position. As usual in these situations, we took many risks that didn’t harm anyone, and we gathered a lot of information that didn’t benefit anyone either. For a long time, the focus of these nighttime scouting missions was the wreck of the George Washington, and the story of its disaster is probably worth sharing.

Till about the time when we went on picket, it had been the occasional habit of the smaller gunboats to make the circuit of Port Royal Island,—a practice which was deemed very essential to the safety of our position, but which the Rebels effectually stopped, a few days after our arrival, by destroying the army gunboat George Washington with a single shot from a light battery. I was roused soon after daybreak by the firing, and a courier soon came dashing in with the particulars. Forwarding these hastily to Beaufort (for we had then no telegraph), I was soon at the scene of action, five miles away. Approaching, I met on the picket paths man after man who had escaped from the wreck across a half-mile of almost impassable marsh. Never did I see such objects,—some stripped to their shirts, some fully clothed, but all having every garment literally pasted to them—bodies with mud. Across the river, the Rebels were retiring, having done their work, but were still shelling, from greater and greater distances, the wood through which I rode. Arrived at the spot nearest the wreck (a point opposite to what we called the Brickyard Station), I saw the burning vessel aground beyond a long stretch of marsh, out of which the forlorn creatures were still floundering. Here and there in the mud and reeds we could see the laboring heads, slowly advancing, and could hear excruciating cries from wounded men in the more distant depths. It was the strangest mixture of war and Dante and Robinson Crusoe. Our energetic chaplain coming up, I sent him with four men, under a flag of truce, to the place whence the worst cries proceeded, while I went to another part of the marsh. During that morning we got them all out, our last achievement being the rescue of the pilot, an immense negro with a wooden leg,—an article so particularly unavailable for mud travelling, that it would have almost seemed better, as one of the men suggested, to cut the traces, and leave it behind.

Until about the time we went on picket duty, it had been the usual practice for the smaller gunboats to circle Port Royal Island, a routine seen as crucial for our safety. However, the Rebels effectively ended this practice a few days after we arrived by destroying the army gunboat George Washington with a single shot from a light battery. I was jolted awake shortly after dawn by the sound of gunfire, and a courier soon rushed in with the details. I quickly forwarded this information to Beaufort (since we didn't have a telegraph at the time) and then made my way to the scene, which was five miles away. As I approached, I encountered several men on the picket paths who had escaped from the wreck, having crossed a half-mile of nearly impassable marsh. I'd never seen anything like them—some were in just their shirts, others fully clothed, but all had mud clinging to every inch of their clothing. Across the river, the Rebels were retreating after completing their mission, but they continued to shell the woods through which I was riding from a distance. When I arrived at the closest point to the wreck (across from what we referred to as the Brickyard Station), I saw the burning vessel stranded beyond a long stretch of marsh, out of which these unfortunate souls were still struggling. Here and there in the mud and reeds, we could see their laboring heads slowly moving forward, and we could hear the agonizing cries of wounded men deeper in the marsh. It felt like a bizarre mix of war, Dante's hell, and Robinson Crusoe. When our energetic chaplain arrived, I sent him with four men, under a flag of truce, to the area where the worst cries were coming from, while I headed to another part of the marsh. Throughout that morning, we managed to rescue everyone, with our final act being the rescue of the pilot, a large Black man with a wooden leg—a material that proved practically useless for navigating the mud, making it seem almost better, as one of the men remarked, to cut the traces and leave it behind.

A naval gunboat, too, which had originally accompanied this vessel, and should never have left it, now came back and took off the survivors, though there had been several deaths from scalding and shell. It proved that the wreck was not aground after all, but at anchor, having foolishly lingered till after daybreak, and having thus given time for the enemy to bring down then: guns. The first shot had struck the boiler, and set the vessel on fire; after which the officer in command had raised a white flag, and then escaped with his men to our shore; and it was for this flight in the wrong direction that they were shelled in the marshes by the Rebels. The case furnished in this respect some parallel to that of the Kearsage and Alabama, and it was afterwards cited, I believe, officially or unofficially, to show that the Rebels had claimed the right to punish, in this case, the course of action which they approved in Semmes. I know that they always asserted thenceforward that the detachment on board the George Washington had become rightful prisoners of war, and were justly fired upon when they tried to escape.

A naval gunboat, which had originally accompanied this ship and should never have left it, returned and rescued the survivors, although there had been several deaths from scalding and shell fire. It turned out that the wreck wasn’t beached after all, but anchored, having foolishly stayed until after dawn, giving the enemy time to bring down their guns. The first shot hit the boiler and set the ship on fire; after that, the officer in charge raised a white flag and escaped with his men to our shore. It was for this flight in the wrong direction that they were shelled in the marshes by the Rebels. This situation had some similarities to that of the Kearsage and Alabama and was later cited, I believe, officially or unofficially, to demonstrate that the Rebels claimed the right to punish, in this case, the actions they approved in Semmes. I know they always claimed thereafter that the detachment on board the George Washington had become legitimate prisoners of war and were rightfully fired upon when they attempted to escape.

This was at the tune of the first attack on Charleston, and the noise of this cannonading spread rapidly thither, and brought four regiments to reinforce Beaufort in a hurry, under the impression that the town was already taken, and that they must save what remnants they could. General Saxton, too, had made such capital plans for defending the post that he could not bear not to have it attacked; so, while the Rebels brought down a force to keep us from taking the guns off the wreck, I was also supplied with a section or two of regular artillery, and some additional infantry, with which to keep them from it; and we tried to "make believe very hard," and rival the Charleston expedition on our own island. Indeed, our affair came to about as much,—nearly nothing,—and lasted decidedly longer; for both sides nibbled away at the guns, by night, for weeks afterward, though I believe the mud finally got them,—at least, we did not. We tried in vain to get the use of a steamboat or floating derrick of any kind; for it needed more mechanical ingenuity than we possessed to transfer anything so heavy to our small boats by night, while by day we did not go near the wreck in anything larger than a "dug-out."

This was around the time of the first attack on Charleston, and the sound of the cannon fire quickly spread there, bringing four regiments to hurry to reinforce Beaufort, believing that the town had already fallen and they needed to save whatever they could. General Saxton, too, had developed great plans for defending the post and couldn’t stand the idea of it not being attacked; so, while the Rebels sent down a force to prevent us from retrieving the guns from the wreck, I was also provided with a section or two of regular artillery and some extra infantry to keep them at bay. We tried really hard to "fake it" and mirror the Charleston expedition on our own island. In fact, our situation turned out to be about the same—nearly nothing—and lasted significantly longer; both sides picked away at the guns at night for weeks afterward, though I believe the mud eventually got to them—at least, we didn’t. We tried unsuccessfully to get a steamboat or any kind of floating derrick; it required more mechanical skill than we had to move anything so heavy to our small boats at night, and during the day, we didn’t approach the wreck in anything larger than a "dug-out."

One of these nocturnal visits to the wreck I recall with peculiar gusto, because it brought back that contest with catarrh and coughing among my own warriors which had so ludicrously beset me in Florida. It was always fascinating to be on those forbidden waters by night, stealing out with muffled oars through the creeks and reeds, our eyes always strained for other voyagers, our ears listening breathlessly to all the marsh sounds,—blackflsh splashing, and little wakened reed-birds that fled wailing away over the dim river, equally safe on either side. But it always appeared to the watchful senses that we were making noise enough to be heard at Fort Sumter; and somehow the victims of catarrh seemed always the most eager for any enterprise requiring peculiar caution. In this case I thought I had sifted them before-hand; but as soon as we were afloat, one poor boy near me began to wheeze, and I turned upon him in exasperation. He saw his danger, and meekly said, "I won't cough, Gunnel!" and he kept his word. For two mortal hours he sat grasping his gun, with never a chirrup. But two unfortunates in the bow of the boat developed symptoms which I could not suppress; so, putting in at a picket station, with some risk I dumped them in mud knee-deep, and embarked a substitute, who after the first five minutes absolutely coughed louder than both the others united. Handkerchiefs, blankets, over-coats, suffocation in its direst forms, were tried in vain, but apparently the Rebel pickets slept through it all, and we exploded the wreck in safety. I think they were asleep, for certainly across the level marshes there came a nasal sound, as of the "Con-thieveracy" in its slumbers. It may have been a bull-frog, but it sounded like a human snore.

One of those late-night trips to the wreck stands out in my memory, mainly because it reminded me of the struggle with my own crew’s coughs and colds that had so humorously plagued me in Florida. It was always thrilling to be out on those forbidden waters at night, quietly paddling with muffled oars through the creeks and reeds, our eyes scanning for other boats, our ears listening intently to all the sounds of the marsh—blackfish splashing and little reed-birds startled and flapping away, both sides of the dim river feeling equally safe. But it always felt like we were making enough noise to be heard all the way at Fort Sumter; for some reason, those suffering from colds seemed the most enthusiastic about any adventure that required extra caution. I thought I had filtered them out beforehand, but as soon as we were on the water, one poor boy next to me started wheezing, and I turned to him in frustration. He understood the risk and replied quietly, "I won't cough, Gunnel!" and he kept his promise. For two long hours, he sat there holding his gun without making a sound. Unfortunately, two others at the front of the boat developed symptoms I couldn’t control, so I pulled in at a picket station and, risking it, dumped them in knee-deep mud, bringing on a substitute who, after just five minutes, coughed louder than both of the others combined. Handkerchiefs, blankets, coats, and even more extreme measures were tried in vain, but it seemed the Rebel pickets slept through it all, and we managed to blow up the wreck without being caught. I think they were asleep, since across the flat marshes came a nasal sound, as if the “Con-thieveracy” was in slumber. It might have been a bull-frog, but it definitely sounded like a human snore.

Picket life was of course the place to feel the charm of natural beauty on the Sea Islands. We had a world of profuse and tangled vegetation around us, such as would have been a dream of delight to me, but for the constant sense of responsibility and care which came between. Amid this preoccupation, Nature seemed but a mirage, and not the close and intimate associate I had before known. I pressed no flowers, collected no insects or birds' eggs, made no notes on natural objects, reversing in these respects all previous habits. Yet now, in the retrospect, there seems to have been infused into me through every pore the voluptuous charm of the season and the place; and the slightest corresponding sound or odor now calls back the memory of those delicious days. Being afterwards on picket at almost every season, I tasted the sensations of all; and though I hardly then thought of such a result, the associations of beauty will remain forever.

Picket life was definitely the best way to experience the charm of natural beauty on the Sea Islands. We were surrounded by a rich, tangled environment that would have delighted me, if not for the constant stress and responsibility that got in the way. With my mind preoccupied, Nature felt more like a distant dream rather than the close companion I had known before. I didn’t press flowers, collect insects or birds' eggs, or take notes on natural objects, completely turning away from my usual habits. Yet now, when I look back, I realize I absorbed the lush charm of the season and the place; even the faintest sound or scent brings back the memory of those wonderful days. Later, while being on picket almost every season, I experienced all their feelings; and even though I didn’t think about it back then, the memories of beauty will stay with me forever.

In February, for instance,—though this was during a later period of picket service,—the woods were usually draped with that "net of shining haze" which marks our Northern May; and the house was embowered in wild-plum-blossoms, small, white, profuse, and tenanted by murmuring bees. There were peach-blossoms, too, and the yellow jasmine was opening its multitudinous buds, climbing over tall trees, and waving from bough to bough. There were fresh young ferns and white bloodroot in the edges of woods, matched by snowdrops in the garden, beneath budded myrtle and Petisporum. In this wilderness the birds were busy; the two main songsters being the mocking-bird and the cardinal-grosbeak, which monopolized all the parts of our more varied Northern orchestra save the tender and liquid notes, which in South Carolina seemed unattempted except by some stray blue-bird. Jays were as loud and busy as at the North in autumn; there were sparrows and wrens; and sometimes I noticed the shy and whimsical chewink.

In February, for example—though this was later in the picket service—the woods were usually covered with that "net of shining haze" that marks our Northern May; and the house was surrounded by wild plum blossoms, small, white, abundant, and buzzing with bees. There were peach blossoms too, and the yellow jasmine was opening its many buds, climbing over tall trees and swaying from branch to branch. Fresh young ferns and white bloodroot lined the edges of the woods, matched by snowdrops in the garden, under budding myrtle and Petisporum. In this wilderness, the birds were active; the two main songsters were the mockingbird and the cardinal grosbeak, which took over all parts of our more varied Northern orchestra except for the soft and flowing notes, which in South Carolina seemed to be only attempted by a few stray bluebirds. Jays were as loud and busy as they were in the North during autumn; there were sparrows and wrens; and sometimes I spotted the shy and quirky chewink.

From this early spring-time onward, there seemed no great difference in atmospheric sensations, and only a succession of bloom. After two months one's notions of the season grew bewildered, just as very early rising bewilders the day. In the army one is perhaps roused after a bivouac, marches before daybreak, halts, fights, somebody is killed, a long day's life has been lived, and after all it is not seven o'clock, and breakfast is not ready. So when we had lived in summer so long as hardly to remember winter, it suddenly occurred to us that it was not yet June. One escapes at the South that mixture of hunger and avarice which is felt in the Northern summer, counting each hour's joy with the sad consciousness that an hour is gone. The compensating loss is in missing those soft, sweet, liquid sensations of the Northern spring, that burst of life and joy, those days of heaven that even April brings; and this absence of childhood in the year creates a feeling of hardness in the season, like that I have suggested in the melody of the Southern birds. It seemed to me also that the woods had not those pure, clean, innocent odors which so abound in the New England forest in early spring; but there was something luscious, voluptuous, almost oppressively fragrant about the magnolias, as if they belonged not to Hebe, but to Magdalen.

From this early spring onward, there didn't seem to be much difference in the atmosphere, just a continuous bloom. After two months, one's sense of the season became confused, much like how waking up too early can disorient you for the day. In the army, you might be woken up after camping out, march before dawn, take a break, fight, lose someone, live a long day, and still find that it’s not even seven o'clock and breakfast isn't ready. So, after we had spent so much time in summer that we could hardly remember winter, it hit us that it wasn't even June yet. In the South, you avoid that mix of hunger and greed that you feel in the Northern summer, where you count each hour's happiness while sadly knowing an hour has passed. The trade-off is missing those soft, sweet, flowing sensations of the Northern spring—the burst of life and joy during those heavenly days that April brings; and this lack of childhood in the year creates a feeling of harshness in the season, similar to what I’ve suggested about the melody of Southern birds. It also seemed to me that the woods didn't have those pure, clean, innocent scents that are so abundant in the New England forest in early spring; instead, there was something rich, indulgent, almost overwhelmingly fragrant about the magnolias, as if they belonged not to Hebe, but to Magdalen.

Such immense and lustrous butterflies I had never seen but in dreams; and not even dreams had prepared me for sand-flies. Almost too small to be seen, they inflicted a bite which appeared larger than themselves,—a positive wound, more torturing than that of a mosquito, and leaving more annoyance behind. These tormentors elevated dress-parade into the dignity of a military engagement. I had to stand motionless, with my head a mere nebula of winged atoms, while tears rolled profusely down my face, from mere muscular irritation. Had I stirred a finger, the whole battalion would have been slapping its cheeks. Such enemies were, however, a valuable aid to discipline, on the whole, as they abounded in the guard-house, and made that institution an object of unusual abhorrence among the men.

I had never seen such huge and shiny butterflies except in dreams; and not even dreams had prepared me for sand-flies. Almost too tiny to notice, they delivered a bite that seemed bigger than they were—a real wound, more painful than a mosquito bite, and leaving behind more irritation. These little tormentors turned dress-parade into a serious military affair. I had to stand completely still, with my head a cloud of flying particles, while tears streamed down my face from sheer irritation. If I had moved a finger, the whole group would have been swatting at their cheeks. However, these pests were actually a helpful part of maintaining discipline, since they were everywhere in the guardhouse, making that place particularly unpleasant for the men.

The presence of ladies and the homelike air of everything, made the picket station a very popular resort while we were there. It was the one agreeable ride from Beaufort, and we often had a dozen people unexpectedly to dinner. On such occasions there was sometimes mounting in hot haste, and an eager search among the outlying plantations for additional chickens and eggs, or through the company kitchens for some of those villanous tin cans which everywhere marked the progress of our army. In those cans, so far as my observation went, all fruits relapsed into a common acidulation, and all meats into a similarity of tastelessness; while the "condensed milk" was best described by the men, who often unconsciously stumbled on a better joke than they knew, and always spoke of it as condemned milk.

The presence of women and the cozy atmosphere made the picket station a very popular spot while we were there. It was the only enjoyable ride from Beaufort, and we often had a dozen unexpected guests for dinner. On those occasions, there was sometimes a rushed scramble to get ready, along with a frantic search among the nearby plantations for extra chickens and eggs, or through the company kitchens for some of those awful tin cans that marked the army's progress everywhere. From what I observed, all fruits in those cans turned into a common sourness, and all meats ended up tasting similarly bland; while the "condensed milk" was best described by the men, who often stumbled into a better joke than they realized, and always referred to it as condemned milk.

We had our own excursions too,—to the Barnwell plantations, with their beautiful avenues and great live-oaks, the perfection of Southern beauty,—to Hall's Island, debatable ground, close under the enemy's fire, where half-wild cattle were to be shot, under military precautions, like Scottish moss-trooping,—or to the ferry, where it was fascinating to the female mind to scan the Rebel pickets through a field-glass. Our horses liked the by-ways far better than the level hardness of the Shell Road, especially those we had brought from Florida, which enjoyed the wilderness as if they had belonged to Marion's men. They delighted to feel the long sedge brush their flanks, or to gallop down the narrow wood-paths, leaping the fallen trees, and scaring the bright little lizards which shot across our track like live rays broken from the sunbeams. We had an abundance of horses, mostly captured and left in our hands by some convenient delay of the post quartermaster. We had also two side-saddles, which, not being munitions of war, could not properly (as we explained) be transferred like other captured articles to the general stock; otherwise the P. Q. M. (a married man) would have showed no unnecessary delay in their case. For miscellaneous accommodation was there not an ambulance,—that most inestimable of army conveniences, equally ready to carry the merry to a feast or the wounded from a fray. "Ambulance" was one of those words, rather numerous, which Ethiopian lips were not framed by Nature to articulate. Only the highest stages of colored culture could compass it; on the tongue of the many it was transformed mystically as "amulet," or ambitiously as "epaulet," or in culinary fashion as "omelet." But it was our experience that an ambulance under any name jolted equally hard.

We had our own trips too—to the Barnwell plantations, with their beautiful avenues and huge live oaks, the epitome of Southern beauty—to Hall's Island, disputed land, right under enemy fire, where half-wild cattle were to be shot with military precautions, like Scottish moss-troopers—or to the ferry, where it was fascinating for the women to scan the Rebel pickets through binoculars. Our horses preferred the back roads to the flat hardness of the Shell Road, especially those we had brought from Florida, which enjoyed the wilderness as if they had been part of Marion's crew. They loved to feel the long grass brush against their sides or to gallop down the narrow trails, jumping over fallen trees and scaring the bright little lizards that darted across our path like flashes of sunlight. We had plenty of horses, mostly captured and left in our hands due to some convenient delay by the post quartermaster. We also had two side-saddles, which, not being military equipment, couldn’t be transferred like other captured items to the general stock; otherwise, the P. Q. M. (a married man) would have shown no delay in their case. For our various needs, there wasn’t an ambulance—that most invaluable piece of army equipment, equally ready to carry the happy to a feast or the wounded from a battle. "Ambulance" was one of those words that Ethiopian mouths weren't naturally formed to say. Only the highest levels of colored culture could pronounce it; on the tongues of the many, it was mystically transformed into "amulet," ambitiously into "epaulet," or in a cooking context as "omelet." But we found that an ambulance, no matter what it was called, jolted just as hard.

Besides these divertisements, we had more laborious vocations,—a good deal of fatigue, and genuine though small alarms. The men went on duty every third day at furthest, and the officers nearly as often,—most of the tours of duty lasting twenty-four hours, though the stream was considered to watch itself tolerably well by daylight. This kind of responsibility suited the men; and we had already found, as the whole army afterwards acknowledged, that the constitutional watchfulness and distrustfulness of the colored race made them admirable sentinels. Soon after we went on picket, the commanding general sent an aid, with a cavalry escort, to visit all the stations, without my knowledge. They spent the whole night, and the officer reported that he could not get within thirty yards of any post without a challenge. This was a pleasant assurance for me; since our position seemed so secure, compared with Jacksonville, that I had feared some relaxation of vigilance, while yet the safety of all depended on our thorough discharge of duty.

Besides these entertainments, we also had some more demanding tasks—quite a bit of exhaustion and genuine but minor concerns. The men went on duty every three days at most, and the officers almost as often—most shifts lasted twenty-four hours, although the area was thought to be pretty safe during daylight. This type of responsibility worked well for the men, and we had already discovered, as the entire army later acknowledged, that the natural vigilance and wariness of the Black soldiers made them excellent guards. Soon after we started our watch, the commanding general sent an aide with a cavalry escort to check all the posts without informing me. They spent the entire night, and the officer reported that he couldn't approach any station within thirty yards without being challenged. This was reassuring for me since our position felt much more secure compared to Jacksonville, and I had worried about a drop in alertness, knowing that everyone's safety depended on our diligent performance.

Jacksonville had also seasoned the men so well that they were no longer nervous, and did not waste much powder on false alarms. The Rebels made no formal attacks, and rarely attempted to capture pickets. Sometimes they came stealing through the creeks in "dugouts," as we did on their side of the water, and occasionally an officer of ours was fired upon while making his rounds by night. Often some boat or scow would go adrift, and sometimes a mere dark mass of river-weed would be floated by the tide past the successive stations, eliciting a challenge and perhaps a shot from each. I remember the vivid way in which one of the men stated to his officer the manner in which a faithful picket should do his duty, after challenging, in case a boat came in sight. "Fus' ting I shoot, and den I shoot, and den I shoot again. Den I creep-creep up near de boat, and see who dey in 'em; and s'pose anybody pop up he head, den I shoot again. S'pose I fire my forty rounds. I tink he hear at de camp and send more mans,"—which seemed a reasonable presumption. This soldier's name was Paul Jones, a daring fellow, quite worthy of his namesake.

Jacksonville had trained the men so well that they were no longer nervous and didn’t waste much ammo on false alarms. The Rebels didn’t make any formal attacks and rarely tried to capture pickets. Sometimes they quietly moved through the creeks in “dugouts,” just like we did on their side of the water, and occasionally one of our officers would get shot at while making his rounds at night. Often, some boat or scow would float away, and sometimes a simple dark mass of river-weed would drift by on the tide past the different stations, prompting a challenge and maybe a shot from each. I remember how one of the men explained to his officer how a good picket should do his duty after challenging if a boat came into view. “First thing I shoot, and then I shoot, and then I shoot again. Then I creep up near the boat and see who’s in it; and if anyone pops up their head, then I shoot again. Suppose I fire my forty rounds. I think he hears it at the camp and sends more men,”—which seemed like a reasonable assumption. This soldier’s name was Paul Jones, a bold guy, quite deserving of his namesake.

In time, however, they learned quieter methods, and would wade far out in the water, there standing motionless at last, hoping to surround and capture these floating boats, though, to their great disappointment, the prize usually proved empty. On one occasion they tried a still profounder strategy; for an officer visiting the pickets after midnight, and hearing in the stillness a portentous snore from the end of the causeway (our most important station), straightway hurried to the point of danger, with wrath in his soul. But the sergeant of the squad came out to meet him, imploring silence, and explaining that they had seen or suspected a boat hovering near, and were feigning sleep in order to lure and capture those who would entrap them.

In time, though, they figured out quieter ways to do things and would wade far into the water, standing completely still in hopes of surrounding and capturing these floating boats. Sadly, they usually found them empty, which was a big disappointment. One time, they tried an even deeper strategy; an officer visiting the pickets after midnight heard a loud snore coming from the end of the causeway (our most important station) and rushed to the source of the noise, filled with anger. But the squad's sergeant came out to meet him, asking for silence and explaining that they had seen or suspected a boat nearby and were pretending to sleep to trick those who were trying to catch them.

The one military performance at the picket station of which my men were utterly intolerant was an occasional flag of truce, for which this was the appointed locality. These farces, for which it was our duty to furnish the stock actors, always struck them as being utterly despicable, and unworthy the serious business of war. They felt, I suppose, what Mr. Pickwick felt, when he heard his counsel remark to the counsel for the plaintiff, that it was a very fine morning. It goaded their souls to see the young officers from the two opposing armies salute each other courteously, and interchange cigars. They despised the object of such negotiations, which was usually to send over to the enemy some family of Rebel women who had made themselves quite intolerable on our side, but were not above collecting a subscription among the Union officers, before departure, to replenish their wardrobes. The men never showed disrespect to these women by word or deed, but they hated them from the bottom of their souls. Besides, there was a grievance behind all this.

The one military event at the picket station that my men absolutely couldn't stand was the occasional flag of truce, for which this was the designated spot. These absurdities, where it was our responsibility to provide the main players, always seemed completely despicable to them and unworthy of the serious nature of war. They probably felt the same way Mr. Pickwick did when he heard his lawyer say to the plaintiff's lawyer that it was a really nice morning. It annoyed them to see young officers from both sides respectfully salute each other and trade cigars. They looked down on the purpose of these meetings, which usually involved sending over some Rebel women who had become quite unbearable on our side, but weren’t shy about collecting donations from Union officers before leaving to update their wardrobes. The men never disrespected these women with words or actions, but they loathed them from the depths of their being. Besides, there was a deeper grievance behind all this.

The Rebel order remained unrevoked which consigned the new colored troops and their officers to a felon's death, if captured; and we all felt that we fought with ropes round our necks. "Dere's no flags ob truce for us," the men would contemptuously say. "When de Secesh fight de Fus' Souf" (First South Carolina), "he fight in earnest." Indeed, I myself took it as rather a compliment when the commander on the other side—though an old acquaintance of mine in Massachusetts and in Kansas—at first refused to negotiate through me or my officers,—a refusal which was kept up, greatly to the enemy's inconvenience, until our men finally captured some of the opposing pickets, and their friends had to waive all scruples in order to send them supplies. After this there was no trouble, and I think that the first Rebel officer in South Carolina who officially met any officer of colored troops under a flag of truce was Captain John C. Calhoun. In Florida we had been so recognized long before; but that was when they wished to frighten us out of Jacksonville.

The Rebel order remained unchanged, which sentenced the new colored troops and their officers to a death sentence if captured, and we all felt like we were fighting with nooses around our necks. "There are no truce flags for us," the men would say with disdain. "When the Secesh fight the Fus' Souf" (First South Carolina), "they fight for real." In fact, I considered it somewhat flattering when the commander on the other side—who was an old acquaintance of mine from Massachusetts and Kansas—initially refused to negotiate through me or my officers. This refusal continued, much to the enemy's frustration, until our men eventually captured some of their pickets, and their side had to let go of all pretenses to send them supplies. After that, there were no more issues, and I believe that the first Rebel officer in South Carolina who officially met any officer of colored troops under a truce flag was Captain John C. Calhoun. In Florida, we had been acknowledged long before that, but that was when they wanted to scare us out of Jacksonville.

Such was our life on picket at Port Royal,—a thing whose memory is now fast melting into such stuff as dreams are made of. We stayed there more than two months at that tune; the first attack on Charleston exploded with one puff, and had its end; General Hunter was ordered North, and the busy Gilmore reigned in his stead; and in June, when the blackberries were all eaten, we were summoned, nothing loath, to other scenes and encampments new.

Our life on picket duty at Port Royal was something that is now fading into memory like a dream. We were there for over two months; the first attack on Charleston happened quickly and ended just as fast. General Hunter was ordered to head North, and the busy Gilmore took over in his place. By June, when all the blackberries had been picked, we were called, happily, to new places and camps.





Chapter 6. A Night in the Water

Yes, that was a pleasant life on picket, in the delicious early summer of the South, and among the endless flowery forests of that blossoming isle. In the retrospect I seem to see myself adrift upon a horse's back amid a sea of roses. The various outposts were within a six-mile radius, and it was one long, delightful gallop, day and night. I have a faint impression that the moon shone steadily every night for two months; and yet I remember certain periods of such dense darkness that in riding through the wood-paths it was really unsafe to go beyond a walk, for fear of branches above and roots below; and one of my officers was once shot at by a Rebel scout who stood unperceived at his horse's bridle.

Yes, that was a nice life on picket in the lovely early summer of the South, surrounded by the endless flowering forests of that blooming island. Looking back, I can picture myself riding a horse in a sea of roses. The different outposts were within a six-mile radius, and it was one long, enjoyable ride, day and night. I have a vague memory that the moon shone brightly every night for two months; yet I also recall some times of such thick darkness that while riding through the wooded paths, it was really unsafe to go faster than a walk, due to the branches above and roots below. One of my officers was even shot at by a Rebel scout who was hidden right next to his horse's bridle.

To those doing outpost-duty on an island, however large, the main-land has all the fascination of forbidden fruit, and on a scale bounded only by the horizon. Emerson says that every house looks ideal until we enter it,—and it is certainly so, if it be just the other side of the hostile lines. Every grove in that blue distance appears enchanted ground, and yonder loitering gray-back leading his horse to water in the farthest distance, makes one thrill with a desire to hail him, to shoot at him, to capture him, to do anything to bridge this inexorable dumb space that lies between. A boyish feeling, no doubt, and one that time diminishes, without effacing; yet it is a feeling which lies at the bottom of many rash actions in war, and of some brilliant ones. For one, I could never quite outgrow it, though restricted by duty from doing many foolish things in consequence, and also restrained by reverence for certain confidential advisers whom I had always at hand, and who considered it their mission to keep me always on short rations of personal adventure. Indeed, most of that sort of entertainment in the army devolves upon scouts detailed for the purpose, volunteer aides-de-camp and newspaper-reporters,—other officers being expected to be about business more prosaic.

For those stationed on an island, no matter how big, the mainland holds all the allure of forbidden fruit, stretching out to the horizon. Emerson says that every house looks perfect until we step inside, and that’s definitely true if it’s just beyond enemy lines. Every grove in that distant blue looks like enchanted land, and that gray figure in the distance, leading his horse to water, makes you feel an urge to call out to him, to shoot at him, to capture him—anything to close that unyielding silent gap between us. It’s a youthful impulse, no doubt, and one that time eases but doesn’t erase; however, it’s a feeling that motivates many hasty actions in war, and some brave ones too. Personally, I could never fully shake it off, even though my duty prevented me from doing a lot of reckless things and my respect for certain trusted advisers kept me in check. These advisers considered it their job to keep me on a tight leash when it came to personal adventures. In fact, most of that type of excitement in the army falls to scouts assigned for the task, volunteer aides-de-camp, and newspaper reporters, while other officers are expected to focus on more mundane responsibilities.

All the excitements of war are quadrupled by darkness; and as I rode along our outer lines at night, and watched the glimmering flames which at regular intervals starred the opposite river-shore, the longing was irresistible to cross the barrier of dusk, and see whether it were men or ghosts who hovered round those dying embers. I had yielded to these impulses in boat-adventures by night,—for it was a part of my instructions to obtain all possible information about the Rebel outposts,—and fascinating indeed it was to glide along, noiselessly paddling, with a dusky guide, through the endless intricacies of those Southern marshes, scaring the reed-birds, which wailed and fled away into the darkness, and penetrating several miles into the ulterior, between hostile fires, where discovery might be death. Yet there were drawbacks as to these enterprises, since it is not easy for a boat to cross still water, even on the darkest night, without being seen by watchful eyes; and, moreover, the extremes of high and low tide transform so completely the whole condition of those rivers that it needs very nice calculation to do one's work at precisely the right tune. To vary the experiment, I had often thought of trying a personal reconnoissance by swimming, at a certain point, whenever circumstances should make it an object.

All the excitement of war is amplified by darkness; and as I rode along our outer lines at night, watching the flickering flames that dotted the opposite riverbank at regular intervals, I felt an overwhelming urge to cross the barrier of dusk and see whether those shadows were men or ghosts lingering around the dying embers. I had given in to these impulses during nighttime boat adventures—since my orders were to gather as much information as possible about the Rebel outposts—and it was indeed captivating to glide silently along, paddling with a shadowy guide, through the endless twists of those Southern marshes, spooking the reed-birds that cried out and vanished into the darkness, and venturing several miles into enemy territory, amidst hostile fires where being discovered could mean death. However, these operations had their challenges, as it's not easy for a boat to cross still water, even on the darkest night, without being spotted by vigilant eyes; plus, the drastic changes between high and low tide completely alter the conditions of those rivers, requiring precise calculations to time everything just right. To mix things up, I often thought about attempting a personal reconnaissance by swimming at a specific point whenever the situation called for it.

The opportunity at last arrived, and I shall never forget the glee with which, after several postponements, I finally rode forth, a little before midnight, on a night which seemed made for the purpose. I had, of course, kept my own secret, and was entirely alone. The great Southern fireflies were out, not haunting the low ground merely, like ours, but rising to the loftiest tree-tops with weird illumination, and anon hovering so low that my horse often stepped the higher to avoid them. The dewy Cherokee roses brushed my face, the solemn "Chuckwill's-widow" croaked her incantation, and the rabbits raced phantom-like across the shadowy road. Slowly in the darkness I followed the well-known path to the spot where our most advanced outposts were stationed, holding a causeway which thrust itself far out across the separating river,—thus fronting a similar causeway on the other side, while a channel of perhaps three hundred yards, once traversed by a ferry-boat, rolled between. At low tide this channel was the whole river, with broad, oozy marshes on each side; at high tide the marshes were submerged, and the stream was a mile wide. This was the point which I had selected. To ascertain the numbers and position of the picket on the opposite causeway was my first object, as it was a matter on which no two of our officers agreed.

The opportunity finally came, and I’ll never forget the excitement with which, after several delays, I set out a little before midnight on a night that felt perfect for the occasion. I had, of course, kept my secret to myself and was completely alone. The big Southern fireflies were out, not just lingering near the ground like ours but lighting up the tallest treetops in an eerie glow, and sometimes hovering so low that my horse had to step higher to avoid them. The dewy Cherokee roses brushed against my face, the solemn "Chuckwill's-widow" croaked its chant, and rabbits dashed ghost-like across the dark road. Slowly in the darkness, I followed the familiar path to the location of our most advanced outposts, which were holding a causeway that stretched far out over the dividing river—facing a similar causeway on the other side, while a channel of about three hundred yards, once crossed by a ferry, flowed between. At low tide, this channel was the entire river, with wide, muddy marshes on either side; at high tide, the marshes were underwater, and the stream became a mile wide. This was the spot I had chosen. My first objective was to determine the number and position of the picket on the opposite causeway, as it was a detail on which no two of our officers agreed.

To this point, therefore, I rode, and dismounting, after being duly challenged by the sentinel at the causeway-head, walked down the long and lonely path. The tide was well up, though still on the flood, as I desired; and each visible tuft of marsh-grass might, but for its motionlessness, have been a prowling boat. Dark as the night had appeared, the water was pale, smooth, and phosphorescent, and I remember that the phrase "wan water," so familiar in the Scottish ballards, struck me just then as peculiarly appropriate, though its real meaning is quite different. A gentle breeze, from which I had hoped for a ripple, had utterly died away, and it was a warm, breathless Southern night. There was no sound but the faint swash of the coming tide, the noises of the reed-birds in the marshes, and the occasional leap of a fish; and it seemed to my overstrained ear as if every footstep of my own must be heard for miles. However, I could have no more postponements, and the thing must be tried now or never.

To this point, I rode, and after being properly challenged by the guard at the causeway, I got off and walked down the long, empty path. The tide was high, still rising like I wanted, and each visible clump of marsh grass could have been a lurking boat if it hadn’t been so still. Despite how dark the night looked, the water was pale, smooth, and glowing, and I remembered the term "wan water," often found in Scottish ballads, feeling oddly fitting at that moment, even though its actual meaning is quite different. A gentle breeze I had hoped would create some ripples had completely faded away, and it was a warm, still Southern night. The only sounds were the soft lapping of the rising tide, the calls of the reed birds in the marshes, and the occasional splash of a fish; it felt like every step I took could be heard for miles. But I couldn't delay any longer; the moment to try had come, now or never.

Reaching the farther end of the causeway, I found my men couched, like black statues, behind the slight earthwork there constructed. I expected that my proposed immersion would rather bewilder them, but knew that they would say nothing, as usual. As for the lieutenant on that post, he was a steady, matter-of-fact, perfectly disciplined Englishman, who wore a Crimean medal, and never asked a superfluous question in his life. If I had casually remarked to him, "Mr. Hooper, the General has ordered me on a brief personal reconnoissance to the Planet Jupiter, and I wish you to take care of my watch, lest it should be damaged by the Precession of the Equinoxes," he would have responded with a brief "All right, Sir," and a quick military gesture, and have put the thing in his pocket. As it was, I simply gave him the watch, and remarked that I was going to take a swim.

Reaching the far end of the causeway, I found my men lying like black statues behind the low earthwork that had been built there. I thought my plan to dive in would confuse them, but I knew they wouldn’t say anything, as usual. The lieutenant on duty there was a steady, no-nonsense, perfectly disciplined Englishman who wore a Crimean medal and never asked unnecessary questions. If I had casually said to him, "Mr. Hooper, the General has ordered me on a quick personal reconnaissance to the Planet Jupiter, and I’d like you to look after my watch so it doesn't get damaged by the Precession of the Equinoxes," he would have replied with a simple "All right, Sir," and a quick military gesture, then stuffed it in his pocket. As it happened, I just handed him the watch and said I was going for a swim.

I do not remember ever to have experienced a greater sense of exhilaration than when I slipped noiselessly into the placid water, and struck out into the smooth, eddying current for the opposite shore. The night was so still and lovely, my black statues looked so dream-like at their posts behind the low earthwork, the opposite arm of the causeway stretched so invitingly from the Rebel main, the horizon glimmered so low around me,—for it always appears lower to a swimmer than even to an oarsman,—that I seemed floating in some concave globe, some magic crystal, of which I was the enchanted centre. With each little ripple of my steady progress all things hovered and changed; the stars danced and nodded above; where the stars ended the great Southern fireflies began; and closer than the fireflies, there clung round me a halo of phosphorescent sparkles from the soft salt water.

I don't remember ever feeling as exhilarated as I did when I quietly slipped into the calm water and swam toward the opposite shore. The night was so peaceful and beautiful, my dark statues looked so dreamy at their posts behind the low earthwork, the other side of the causeway stretched so invitingly from the Rebel camp, and the horizon glimmered low around me—since it always seems lower to a swimmer than to a rower—I felt like I was floating in some sort of magical globe, a crystal where I was the enchanted center. With each gentle ripple of my steady swimming, everything shifted and transformed; the stars danced and nodded above; where the stars ended, the bright Southern fireflies started; and closer than the fireflies, a halo of phosphorescent sparkles from the soft salt water surrounded me.

Had I told any one of my purpose, I should have had warnings and remonstrances enough. The few negroes who did not believe in alligators believed in sharks; the sceptics as to sharks were orthodox in respect to alligators; while those who rejected both had private prejudices as to snapping-turtles. The surgeon would have threatened intermittent fever, the first assistant rheumatism, and the second assistant congestive chills; non-swimmers would have predicted exhaustion, and swimmers cramp; and all this before coming within bullet-range of any hospitalities on the other shore. But I knew the folly of most alarms about reptiles and fishes; man's imagination peoples the water with many things which do not belong there, or prefer to keep out of his way, if they do; fevers and congestions were the surgeon's business, and I always kept people to their own department; cramp and exhaustion were dangers I could measure, as I had often done; bullets were a more substantial danger, and I must take the chance,—if a loon could dive at the flash, why not I? If I were once ashore, I should have to cope with the Rebels on their own ground, which they knew better than I; but the water was my ground, where I, too, had been at home from boyhood.

If I had shared my plans with anyone, I would have received plenty of warnings and objections. The few Black people who didn’t believe in alligators believed in sharks; those skeptical about sharks believed in alligators; and those who rejected both had their own biases against snapping turtles. The surgeon would have warned about intermittent fever, the first assistant about rheumatism, and the second assistant about chills; non-swimmers would have predicted exhaustion, while swimmers would worry about cramps; and all of this would have happened before we even got close to the hospitality of the other side. But I understood the absurdity of most fears regarding reptiles and fish; people’s imaginations fill the water with many creatures that either don’t belong there or prefer to stay out of sight. Fevers and congestion were the surgeon’s concern, and I preferred to keep people in their own areas of expertise; cramps and exhaustion were risks I knew how to handle, as I had many times before; bullets were a far more real threat, and I had to take the chance—if a loon could dive at the flash, why couldn’t I? Once I was on land, I would have to face the Rebels on their turf, which they were far more familiar with than I was; but the water was my domain, where I felt at home since childhood.

I swam as swiftly and softly as I could, although it seemed as if water never had been so still before. It appeared impossible that anything uncanny should hide beneath that lovely mirror; and yet when some floating wisp of reeds suddenly coiled itself around my neck, or some unknown thing, drifting deeper, coldly touched my foot, it caused that undefinable shudder which every swimmer knows, and which especially comes over one by night. Sometimes a slight sip of brackish water would enter my lips,—for I naturally tried to swim as low as possible,—and then would follow a slight gasping and contest against chocking, that seemed to me a perfect convulsion; for I suppose the tendency to choke and sneeze is always enhanced by the circumstance that one's life may depend on keeping still, just as yawning becomes irresistible where to yawn would be social ruin, and just as one is sure to sleep in church, if one sits in a conspicuous pew. At other times, some unguarded motion would create a splashing which seemed, in the tension of my senses, to be loud enough to be heard at Richmond, although it really mattered not, since there are fishes in those rivers which make as much noise on special occasions as if they were misguided young whales.

I swam as quickly and quietly as I could, even though it felt like the water had never been this still before. It seemed impossible that anything strange could be hiding beneath that beautiful surface; yet when a floating strand of reeds suddenly wrapped around my neck, or some unknown object brushed against my foot, it sent that indescribable shiver that every swimmer experiences, especially at night. Occasionally, a bit of murky water would splash into my mouth—since I naturally tried to swim as low as possible—and then I’d have a brief struggle against choking, which felt like a total convulsion; I guess the urge to choke and sneeze is always heightened by the fact that your life might depend on staying still, just like yawning becomes uncontrollable when it would be socially disastrous, and just like you’re bound to fall asleep in church if you sit in a prominent pew. At other times, a careless movement would create a splash that seemed, in my heightened state of awareness, loud enough to be heard all the way to Richmond, even though it didn’t really matter since there are fish in those rivers that can make just as much noise on special occasions as if they were confused young whales.

As I drew near the opposite shore, the dark causeway projected more and more distinctly, to my fancy at least, and I swam more softly still, utterly uncertain as to how far, in the stillness of air and water, my phosphorescent course could be traced by eye or ear. A slight ripple would have saved me from observation, I was more than ever sure, and I would have whistled for a fair wind as eagerly as any sailor, but that my breath was worth to me more than anything it was likely to bring. The water became smoother and smoother, and nothing broke the dim surface except a few clumps of rushes and my unfortunate head. The outside of this member gradually assumed to its inside a gigantic magnitude; it had always annoyed me at the hatter's from a merely animal bigness, with no commensurate contents to show for it, and now I detested it more than ever. A physical feeling of turgescence and congestion in that region, such as swimmers often feel, probably increased the impression. I thought with envy of the Aztec children, of the headless horseman of Sleepy Hollow, of Saint Somebody with his head tucked under his arm. Plotinus was less ashamed of his whole body than I of this inconsiderate and stupid appendage. To be sure, I might swim for a certain distance under water. But that accomplishment I had reserved for a retreat, for I knew that the longer I stayed down the more surely I should have to snort like a walrus when I came up again, and to approach an enemy with such a demonstration was not to be thought of.

As I got closer to the opposite shore, the dark pathway became clearer to me, at least in my imagination, and I swam even more quietly, completely unsure how far my glowing path could be seen by anyone in the stillness of the air and water. I was more convinced than ever that a slight ripple would have kept me from being noticed, and I would have eagerly whistled for a favorable wind like any sailor, but I valued my breath more than anything it might bring me. The water grew calmer, and the only things breaking the dim surface were a few clusters of reeds and my unfortunate head. The outside of this part of me seemed to take on a massive size compared to its inside; it had always annoyed me at the hatter's shop because of its sheer size without any real use, and now I hated it more than ever. A physical feeling of fullness and congestion in that area, which swimmers often experience, likely added to this feeling. I envied the Aztec children, the headless horseman from Sleepy Hollow, and Saint Somebody with his head tucked under his arm. Plotinus was less embarrassed by his entire body than I was about this foolish and annoying appendage. Of course, I could swim a certain distance underwater. But I had saved that skill for an escape, knowing that the longer I stayed down, the more I would have to come up snorting like a walrus, and approaching an enemy like that was out of the question.

Suddenly a dog barked. We had certain information that a pack of hounds was kept at a Rebel station a few miles off, on purpose to hunt runaways, and I had heard from the negroes almost fabulous accounts of the instinct of these animals. I knew that, although water baffled their scent, they yet could recognize in some manner the approach of any person across water as readily as by land; and of the vigilance of all dogs by night every traveller among Southern plantations has ample demonstration. I was now so near that I could dimly see the figures of men moving to and fro upon the end of the causeway, and could hear the dull knock, when one struck his foot against a piece of limber.

Suddenly, a dog barked. We had reliable information that a pack of hounds was held at a Rebel station a few miles away, specifically to hunt down runaways, and I had heard incredible stories from the Black community about the instincts of these dogs. I knew that, although water could confuse their scent, they could somehow sense the approach of a person across water just as easily as they could on land. And everyone who has traveled through Southern plantations knows how vigilant dogs are at night. I was now so close that I could barely make out the figures of men moving back and forth at the end of the causeway, and I could hear the dull thud when one of them kicked a piece of wood.

As my first object was to ascertain whether there were sentinels at that time at that precise point, I saw that I was approaching the end of my experiment Could I have once reached the causeway unnoticed, I could have lurked in the water beneath its projecting timbers, and perhaps made my way along the main shore, as I had known fugitive slaves to do, while coming from that side. Or had there been any ripple on the water, to confuse the aroused and watchful eyes, I could have made a circuit and approached the causeway at another point, though I had already satisfied myself that there was only a narrow channel on each side of it, even at high tide, and not, as on our side, a broad expanse of water. Indeed, this knowledge alone was worth all the trouble I had taken, and to attempt much more than this, in the face of a curiosity already roused, would have been a waste of future opportunities. I could try again, with the benefit of this new knowledge, on a point where the statements of the negroes had always been contradictory.

As my main goal was to find out if there were guards at that exact spot, I realized I was nearing the end of my experiment. If I could have reached the causeway without being noticed, I could have hidden in the water beneath its overhanging beams and maybe made my way along the main shore, just like I had seen runaway slaves do while coming from that direction. Or if there had been any ripples on the water to distract the alert and watchful eyes, I could have taken a detour and approached the causeway from another angle, though I had already confirmed that there was only a narrow channel on either side of it, even at high tide, unlike on our side, which had a wide expanse of water. In fact, this knowledge alone was worth all the effort I had put in, and trying to go further, with my curiosity already piqued, would have been a waste of future chances. I could try again with this new insight at a spot where the accounts from the Black people had always been inconsistent.

Resolving, however, to continue the observation a very little longer, since the water felt much warmer than I had expected, and there was no sense of chill or fatigue, I grasped at some wisps of straw or rushes that floated near, gathering them round my face a little, and then drifting nearer the wharf in what seemed a sort of eddy was able, without creating further alarm, to make some additional observations on points which it is not best now to particularize. Then, turning my back upon the mysterious shore which had thus far lured me, I sank softly below the surface, and swam as far as I could under water.

Resolving to keep observing a bit longer since the water felt warmer than I expected and I didn’t feel cold or tired, I reached for some bits of straw or rushes floating nearby, gathering them around my face a little. Then, drifting closer to the wharf in what felt like a small current, I managed to make some more observations without raising any alarm about details I won't specify now. After that, I turned my back on the mysterious shore that had intrigued me so far, sank gently below the surface, and swam as far as I could underwater.

During this unseen retreat, I heard, of course, all manner of gurglings and hollow reverberations, and could fancy as many rifle-shots as I pleased. But on rising to the surface all seemed quiet, and even I did not create as much noise as I should have expected. I was now at a safe distance, since the enemy were always chary of showing their boats, and always tried to convince us they had none. What with absorbed attention first, and this submersion afterwards, I had lost all my bearings but the stars, having been long out of sight of my original point of departure. However, the difficulties of the return were nothing; making a slight allowance for the floodtide, which could not yet have turned, I should soon regain the place I had left. So I struck out freshly against the smooth water, feeling just a little stiffened by the exertion, and with an occasional chill running up the back of the neck, but with no nips from sharks, no nudges from alligators, and not a symptom of fever-and-ague.

During this hidden retreat, I heard all sorts of gurgles and echoing sounds and could imagine as many gunshots as I wanted. But when I surfaced, everything seemed calm, and I didn’t make as much noise as I expected. I was now at a safe distance since the enemy was always cautious about showing their boats and tried to convince us they didn’t have any. After being deeply focused first and then submerged, I had lost all sense of direction except for the stars, having been far from my original starting point for a while. However, getting back wasn’t a big deal; accounting for the flood tide, which hadn’t turned yet, I would soon find the location I had left. So, I pushed off into the smooth water, feeling a bit stiff from the effort and getting occasional chills running up my neck, but without any bites from sharks, nudges from alligators, or any signs of fever and chills.

Time I could not, of course, measure,—one never can in a novel position; but, after a reasonable amount of swimming, I began to look, with a natural interest, for the pier which I had quitted. I noticed, with some solicitude, that the woods along the friendly shore made one continuous shadow, and that the line of low bushes on the long causeway could scarcely be relieved against them, yet I knew where they ought to be, and the more doubtful I felt about it, the more I put down my doubts, as if they were unreasonable children. One can scarcely conceive of the alteration made in familiar objects by bringing the eye as low as the horizon, especially by night; to distinguish foreshortening is impossible, and every low near object is equivalent to one higher and more remote. Still I had the stars; and soon my eye, more practised, was enabled to select one precise line of bushes as that which marked the causeway, and for which I must direct my course.

I couldn't really measure time, of course—no one can in a new situation; but after a reasonable amount of swimming, I started to naturally look for the pier I had left behind. I noticed, with some concern, that the woods along the welcoming shore formed one continuous shadow, and the line of low bushes on the long path was hardly distinguishable against them. Still, I knew where they should be, and the more uncertain I felt about it, the more I pushed those doubts aside, like unreasonable children. It's hard to imagine how familiar things change when you bring your gaze down to the horizon, especially at night; it’s impossible to make out the perspective, and every nearby low object seems like one that's higher and farther away. But I had the stars to guide me; soon my eye, becoming more trained, was able to pick out one specific line of bushes that marked the path, and I needed to steer my course toward it.

As I swam steadily, but with some sense of fatigue, towards this phantom-line, I found it difficult to keep my faith steady and my progress true; everything appeared to shift and waver, in the uncertain light. The distant trees seemed not trees, but bushes, and the bushes seemed not exactly bushes, but might, after all, be distant trees. Could I be so confident that, out of all that low stretch of shore, I could select the one precise point where the friendly causeway stretched its long arm to receive me from the water? How easily (some tempter whispered at my ear) might one swerve a little, on either side, and be compelled to flounder over half a mile of oozy marsh on an ebbing tide, before reaching our own shore and that hospitable volley of bullets with which it would probably greet me! Had I not already (thus the tempter continued) been swimming rather unaccountably far, supposing me on a straight track for that inviting spot where my sentinels and my drapery were awaiting my return?

As I swam steadily, though feeling a bit fatigued, towards this imaginary line, I struggled to keep my faith strong and my progress steady; everything seemed to shift and blur in the dim light. The distant trees looked less like trees and more like bushes, and the bushes didn’t quite seem like bushes either, but maybe were actually far-off trees. Could I really be sure that, among all that low stretch of shore, I could pinpoint the exact spot where the welcoming causeway reached out to pull me from the water? How easily (a little voice whispered in my ear) could I veer off course, even slightly, and end up struggling over half a mile of muddy marsh on a receding tide before finally reaching our shore and the warm greeting of gunfire that would probably welcome me! Hadn’t I already (the voice continued) been swimming surprisingly far, assuming I was on a straight path to that inviting place where my sentinels and my clothing were waiting for my return?

Suddenly I felt a sensation as of fine ribbons drawn softly across my person, and I found myself among some rushes. But what business had rushes there, or I among them? I knew that there was not a solitary spot of shoal in the deep channel where I supposed myself swimming, and it was plain in an instant that I had somehow missed my course, and must be getting among the marshes. I felt confident, to be sure, that I could not have widely erred, but was guiding my course for the proper side of tie river. But whether I had drifted above or below the causeway I had not the slightest clew to tell.

Suddenly, I felt a sensation like fine ribbons softly touching my body, and I found myself among some reeds. But what were reeds doing there, or why was I among them? I knew there wasn’t a single shallow spot in the deep channel where I thought I was swimming, and it became clear in an instant that I had somehow lost my way and had to be getting into the marshes. I was sure I couldn’t have strayed too far off track, but I believed I was steering toward the right side of the river. However, I had no clue whether I had drifted upstream or downstream past the causeway.

I pushed steadily forward, with some increasing sense of lassitude, passing one marshy islet after another, all seeming strangely out of place, and sometimes just reaching with my foot a soft tremulous shoal which gave scarce the shadow of a support, though even that shadow rested my feet. At one of these moments of stillness it suddenly occurred to my perception (what nothing but this slight contact could have assured me, in the darkness) that I was in a powerful current, and that this current set the wrong way. Instantly a flood of new intelligence came. Either I had unconsciously turned and was rapidly nearing the Rebel shore,—a suspicion which a glance at the stars corrected,—or else it was the tide itself which had turned, and which was sweeping me down the river with all its force, and was also sucking away at every moment the narrowing water from that treacherous expanse of mud out of whose horrible miry embrace I had lately helped to rescue a shipwrecked crew.

I kept moving forward, feeling more and more tired, passing one marshy little island after another, all seeming oddly out of place. Sometimes I would just reach a soft, shaky area with my foot, which barely provided even the slightest support, but it was enough to rest my feet on. During one of these quiet moments, it suddenly struck me (a realization that only this slight contact could have brought in the darkness) that I was in a strong current that was taking me the wrong way. In an instant, a wave of new understanding hit me. Either I had unknowingly turned around and was quickly approaching the Rebel shore—a thought quickly corrected by a glance at the stars—or it was the tide that had changed, pulling me downstream with all its might and sucking away the narrowing water from that dangerous stretch of mud from which I had recently helped rescue a shipwrecked crew.

Either alternative was rather formidable. I can distinctly remember that for about one half-minute the whole vast universe appeared to swim in the same watery uncertainty in which I floated. I began to doubt everything, to distrust the stars, the line of low bushes for which I was wearily striving, the very land on which they grew, if such visionary things could be rooted anywhere. Doubts trembled in my mind like the weltering water, and that awful sensation of having one's feet unsupported, which benumbs the spent swimmer's heart, seemed to clutch at mine, though not yet to enter it. I was more absorbed in that singular sensation of nightmare, such as one may feel equally when lost by land or by water, as if one's own position were all right, but the place looked for had somehow been preternaturally abolished out of the universe. At best, might not a man in the water lose all his power of direction, and so move in an endless circle until he sank exhausted? It required a deliberate and conscious effort to keep my brain quite cool. I have not the reputation of being of an excitable temperament, but the contrary; yet I could at that moment see my way to a condition in which one might become insane in an instant. It was as if a fissure opened somewhere, and I saw my way into a mad-house; then it closed, and everything went on as before. Once in my life I had obtained a slight glimpse of the same sensation, and then, too, strangely enough, while swimming,—in the mightiest ocean-surge into which I had ever dared plunge my mortal body. Keats hints at the same sudden emotion, in a wild poem written among the Scottish mountains. It was not the distinctive sensation which drowning men are said to have, that spasmodic passing in review of one's whole personal history. I had no well-defined anxiety, felt no fear, was moved to no prayer, did not give a thought to home or friends; only it swept over me, as with a sudden tempest, that, if I meant to get back to my own camp, I must keep my wits about me. I must not dwell on any other alternative, any more than a boy who climbs a precipice must look down. Imagination had no business here. That way madness lay. There was a shore somewhere before me, and I must get to it, by the ordinary means, before the ebb laid bare the flats, or swept me below the lower bends of the stream. That was all.

Either option was pretty daunting. I can clearly remember that for about thirty seconds, the entire universe seemed to swim in the same murky uncertainty that I was experiencing. I started to doubt everything—distrusting the stars, the line of low bushes I was working towards, even the land they grew on, if such imaginative things could actually be anchored anywhere. Doubts swirled in my mind like turbulent water, and that terrible feeling of being unsupported, which weighs on the heart of a tired swimmer, seemed to grip mine, though it hadn't fully taken hold yet. I was more caught up in that strange nightmare-like sensation, much like what one feels when lost, whether on land or at sea, as if my situation was fine, but the destination I'd been seeking had somehow been erased from existence. At best, couldn’t someone in the water lose all sense of direction, moving in endless circles until they sank from exhaustion? It took a conscious effort to keep my mind calm. I’m not known for being excitable; in fact, quite the opposite. Yet at that moment, I could envision a state where one could suddenly go insane. It was as if a crack opened somewhere, and I caught a glimpse of a path to a madhouse; then it closed, and everything returned to normal. Once in my life, I had a brief glimpse of that same sensation, and interestingly, it happened while swimming—in the most powerful ocean waves I had ever dared to dive into. Keats hints at that sudden feeling in a wild poem written among the Scottish mountains. It wasn’t the peculiar sensation that drowning people are said to have—the frantic review of one’s entire life. I had no specific anxiety, felt no fear, wasn’t compelled to pray, and didn’t think of home or friends; instead, it suddenly hit me, like a storm, that if I wanted to return to my camp, I needed to stay sharp. I couldn’t focus on any other option, just like a boy climbing a cliff shouldn’t look down. Imagination had no place here. That way led to madness. There was a shore somewhere in front of me, and I had to reach it using the usual methods before the tide exposed the flats or pulled me under the lower bends of the stream. That was all.

Suddenly a light gleamed for an instant before me, as if from a house in a grove of great trees upon a bank; and I knew that it came from the window of a ruined plantation-building, where our most advanced outposts had their headquarters. The flash revealed to me every point of the situation. I saw at once where I was, and how I got there: that the tide had turned while I was swimming, and with a much briefer interval of slack-water than I had been led to suppose,—that I had been swept a good way down stream, and was far beyond all possibility of regaining the point I had left.

Suddenly, a light shone for a moment in front of me, like it was coming from a house in a grove of tall trees on a bank; and I realized it was coming from the window of a dilapidated plantation building, where our most advanced outposts had their headquarters. The flash showed me every detail of the situation. I immediately understood where I was and how I got there: the tide had turned while I was swimming, with a much shorter interval of slack water than I had been led to believe—that I had been carried quite a distance downstream and was far beyond any chance of going back to the point I had left.

Could I, however, retain my strength to swim one or two hundred yards farther, of which I had no doubt,—and if the water did not ebb too rapidly, of which I had more fear,—then I was quite safe. Every stroke took me more and more out of the power of the current, and there might even be an eddy to aid me. I could not afford to be carried down much farther, for there the channel made a sweep toward the wrong side of the river; but there was now no reason why I should not reach land. I could dismiss all fear, indeed, except that of being fired upon by our own sentinels, many of whom were then new recruits, and with the usual disposition to shoot first and investigate afterwards.

Could I, however, keep my strength to swim another one or two hundred yards, which I was sure I could—and if the water didn’t recede too quickly, which I was more worried about—then I would be safe. Each stroke took me further away from the current’s pull, and there might even be an eddy to help me. I couldn’t afford to be carried down any further because the channel bent toward the wrong side of the river; but there was now no reason I shouldn’t reach the shore. I could let go of all my fears, except for the possibility of being shot at by our own sentinels, many of whom were new recruits and typically had the instinct to shoot first and ask questions later.

I found myself swimming in shallow and shallower water, and the flats seemed almost bare when I neared the shore, where the great gnarled branches of the liveoaks hung far over the muddy bank. Floating on my back for noiselessness, I paddled rapidly in with my hands, expecting momentarily to hear the challenge of the picket, and the ominous click so likely to follow. I knew that some one should be pacing to and fro, along that beat, but could not tell at what point he might be at that precise moment. Besides, there was a faint possibility that some chatty corporal might have carried the news of my bath thus far along the line, and they might be partially prepared for this unexpected visitor. Suddenly, like another flash, came the quick, quaint challenge,—

I found myself swimming in shallower and shallower water, and the flats seemed almost empty as I got closer to the shore, where the twisted branches of the live oaks hung far over the muddy bank. Floating on my back to stay quiet, I paddled rapidly in with my hands, expecting to hear the challenge from the guard and the ominous click that would probably follow. I knew someone should be pacing back and forth along that beat, but I couldn't tell exactly where he might be at that moment. Plus, there was a slight chance that some talkative corporal had passed along the news of my swim, and they might be somewhat prepared for this unexpected visitor. Suddenly, like another flash, came the quick, unusual challenge,—

"Halt! Who's go dar?"

"Stop! Who's over there?"

"F-f-friend with the c-c-countersign," retorted I, with chilly, but conciliatory energy, rising at full length out of the shallow water, to show myself a man and a brother.

"F-f-friend with the c-c-countersign," I replied, with a cool but friendly vibe, standing up straight out of the shallow water to show that I'm a man and a brother.

"Ac-vance, friend, and give de countersign," responded the literal soldier, who at such a tune would have accosted: a spirit of light or goblin damned with no other formula.

"Advance, friend, and give the password," replied the straightforward soldier, who would have approached either a spirit of light or a cursed goblin with no other words.

I advanced and gave it, he recognized my voice at once. | And then and there, as I stood, a dripping ghost, beneath the f trees before him, the unconscionable fellow, wishing to exhaust upon me the utmost resources of military hospitality, deliberately presented arms!

I moved forward and spoke; he recognized my voice immediately. | And right there, as I stood, a soaking ghost, under the trees in front of him, the outrageous guy, wanting to show me the full extent of his military hospitality, deliberately saluted!

Now a soldier on picket, or at night, usually presents arms to nobody; but a sentinel on camp-guard by day is expected to perform that ceremony to anything in human shape that has two rows of buttons. Here was a human shape, but so utterly buttonless that it exhibited not even a rag to which a button could by any earthly possibility be appended, button-less even potentially; and my blameless Ethiopian presented arms to even this. Where, then, are the theories of Carlyle, the axioms of "Sartor Resartus," the inability of humanity to conceive "a naked Duke of Windlestraw addressing a naked House of Lords"? Cautioning my adherent, however, as to the proprieties suitable for such occasions thenceforward, I left him watching the river with renewed vigilance, and awaiting the next merman who should report himself.

Now, a soldier on guard duty at night usually doesn't salute anyone; but a daytime sentinel is expected to perform that salute to anyone human-shaped who has two rows of buttons. Here was a human figure, but completely buttonless, showing not even a scrap of fabric where a button could possibly attach, entirely devoid of buttons; and my innocent friend saluted even this. So, where are the theories of Carlyle, the principles from "Sartor Resartus," and the idea that humanity can't imagine "a naked Duke of Windlestraw addressing a naked House of Lords"? However, after advising my companion on the proper conduct for such occasions going forward, I left him keeping an eye on the river with renewed vigilance, waiting for the next merman to show up.

Finding my way to the building, I hunted up a sergeant and a blanket, got a fire kindled in the dismantled chimney, and sat before it in my single garment, like a moist but undismayed Choctaw, until horse and clothing could be brought round from the causeway. It seemed strange that the morning had not yet dawned, after the uncounted periods that must have elapsed; but when the wardrobe arrived I looked at my watch and found that my night in the water had lasted precisely one hour.

Finding my way to the building, I tracked down a sergeant and a blanket, managed to get a fire going in the broken chimney, and sat in front of it in my only piece of clothing, like a wet but unbothered Choctaw, until my horse and gear could be brought around from the causeway. It felt odd that morning still hadn’t arrived after so much time seemed to pass; but when my clothes arrived, I looked at my watch and realized that my time in the water had lasted exactly one hour.

Galloping home, I turned in with alacrity, and without a drop of whiskey, and waked a few hours after in excellent condition. The rapid changes of which that Department has seen so many—and, perhaps, to so little purpose—soon transferred us to a different scene. I have been on other scouts since then, and by various processes, but never with a zest so novel as was afforded by that night's experience. The thing soon got wind in the regiment, and led to only one ill consequence, so far as I know. It rather suppressed a way I had of lecturing the officers on the importance of reducing their personal baggage to a minimum. They got a trick of congratulating me, very respectfully, on the thoroughness with which I had once conformed my practice to my precepts.

Galloping home, I quickly settled in, and without a sip of whiskey, I woke up a few hours later feeling great. The rapid changes that Department has experienced—often with little purpose—soon moved us to a new setting. I've been on other missions since then, and in various ways, but never with the same excitement as I had that night. Word got around the regiment pretty fast, leading to only one negative outcome, as far as I know. It kind of silenced a routine I had of lecturing the officers about the importance of minimizing their personal baggage. They started to congratulate me, quite respectfully, on how well I had once aligned my actions with my advice.





Chapter 7. Up the Edisto

In reading military history, one finds the main interest to lie, undoubtedly, in the great campaigns, where a man, a regiment, a brigade, is but a pawn in the game. But there is a charm also in the more free and adventurous life of partisan warfare, where, if the total sphere be humbler, yet the individual has more relative importance, and the sense of action is more personal and keen. This is the reason given by the eccentric Revolutionary biographer, Weems, for writing the Life of Washington first, and then that of Marion. And there were, certainly, hi the early adventures of the colored troops in the Department of the South, some of the same elements of picturesqueness that belonged to Marion's band, on the same soil, with the added feature that the blacks were fighting for their personal liberties, of which Marion had helped to deprive them.

In studying military history, it's clear that the main focus tends to be on the major campaigns, where a person, a regiment, or a brigade acts merely as a pawn in the larger scheme. However, there's also an appeal in the more independent and adventurous nature of guerrilla warfare, where, although the overall context may be less grand, the individual plays a more significant role, and the experience of action feels more personal and intense. This is the reasoning provided by the quirky Revolutionary biographer, Weems, for first writing about the Life of Washington and then about Marion. Indeed, in the early experiences of the Black troops in the Department of the South, there were some of the same captivating aspects that characterized Marion's group, on the same land, but with the added element that these soldiers were fighting for their freedom, which Marion had once helped to take away from them.

It is stated by Major-General Gillmore, in his "Siege of Charleston," as one of the three points in his preliminary strategy, that an expedition was sent up the Edisto River to destroy a bridge on the Charleston and Savannah Railway. As one of the early raids of the colored troops, this expedition may deserve narration, though it was, in a strategic point of view, a disappointment. It has already been told, briefly and on the whole with truth, by Greeley and others, but I will venture on a more complete account.

It’s mentioned by Major-General Gillmore in his "Siege of Charleston" as one of the three key points in his initial strategy that an expedition was launched up the Edisto River to demolish a bridge on the Charleston and Savannah Railway. As one of the early missions of the Black troops, this expedition might be worth recounting, even though it was, strategically speaking, a letdown. Greeley and others have already told it briefly and mostly accurately, but I will attempt to provide a more detailed account.

The project dated back earlier than General Gillmore's siege, and had originally no connection with that movement. It had been formed by Captain Trowbridge and myself in camp, and was based on facts learned from the men. General Saxton and Colonel W. W. H. Davis, the successive post-commanders, had both favored it. It had been also approved by General Hunter, before his sudden removal, though he regarded the bridge as a secondary affair, because there was another railway communication between the two cities. But as my main object was to obtain permission to go, I tried to make the most of all results which might follow, while it was very clear that the raid would harass and confuse the enemy, and be the means of bringing away many of the slaves. General Hunter had, therefore, accepted the project mainly as a stroke for freedom and black recruits; and General Gillmore, because anything that looked toward action found favor in his eyes, and because it would be convenient to him at that time to effect a diversion, if nothing more.

The project started before General Gillmore's siege and wasn't originally connected to that effort. Captain Trowbridge and I came up with it in camp, based on information we gathered from the soldiers. Both General Saxton and Colonel W. W. H. Davis, the post commanders who followed each other, supported it. General Hunter had also approved it before his unexpected removal, although he considered the bridge a minor issue since there was another railway link between the two cities. However, since my main goal was to get permission to go, I tried to emphasize all the potential outcomes, knowing that the raid would disrupt and confuse the enemy and help free many of the slaves. General Hunter accepted the project mainly as a move for freedom and to recruit Black soldiers; and General Gillmore was open to anything that seemed proactive and needed a diversion at that moment, if nothing else.

It must be remembered that, after the first capture of Port Royal, the outlying plantations along the whole Southern coast were abandoned, and the slaves withdrawn into the interior. It was necessary to ascend some river for thirty miles in order to reach the black population at all. This ascent could only be made by night, as it was a slow process, and the smoke of a steamboat could be seen for a great distance. The streams were usually shallow, winding, and muddy, and the difficulties of navigation were such as to require a full moon and a flood tide. It was really no easy matter to bring everything to bear, especially as every projected raid must be kept a secret so far as possible. However, we were now somewhat familiar with such undertakings, half military, half naval, and the thing to be done on the Edisto was precisely what we had proved to be practicable on the St. Mary's and the St. John's,—to drop anchor before the enemy's door some morning at daybreak, without his having dreamed of our approach.

It should be noted that after the initial capture of Port Royal, the surrounding plantations along the entire Southern coast were abandoned, and the slaves were moved further inland. It was necessary to travel up a river for thirty miles to even reach the black population. This journey could only be done at night since it was slow, and the smoke from a steamboat could be spotted from far away. The rivers were typically shallow, winding, and muddy, making navigation challenging enough that it required a full moon and high tide. It wasn't easy to coordinate everything, especially since every planned raid had to be kept as secret as possible. However, we were now somewhat experienced with these types of operations, which were part military and part naval, and what needed to be done on the Edisto was exactly what we had shown was possible on the St. Mary's and the St. John's—sneak up and drop anchor right before the enemy’s door at dawn, without him having a clue we were coming.

Since a raid made by Colonel Montgomery up the Combahee, two months before, the vigilance of the Rebels had increased. But we had information that upon the South Edisto, or Pon-Pon River, the rice plantations were still being actively worked by a large number of negroes, in reliance on obstructions placed at the mouth of that narrow stream, where it joins the main river, some twenty miles from the coast. This point was known to be further protected by a battery of unknown strength, at Wiltown Bluff, a commanding and defensible situation. The obstructions consisted of a row of strong wooden piles across the river; but we convinced ourselves that these must now be much decayed, and that Captain Trowbridge, an excellent engineer officer, could remove them by the proper apparatus. Our proposition was to man the John Adams, an armed ferry-boat, which had before done us much service,—and which has now reverted to the pursuits of peace, it is said, on the East Boston line,—to ascend in this to Wiltown Bluff, silence the battery, and clear a passage through the obstructions. Leaving the John Adams to protect this point, we could then ascend the smaller stream with two light-draft boats, and perhaps burn the bridge, which was ten miles higher, before the enemy could bring sufficient force to make our position at Wiltown Bluff untenable.

Since a raid by Colonel Montgomery up the Combahee two months ago, the Rebels had become more vigilant. But we learned that on the South Edisto, or Pon-Pon River, the rice plantations were still being worked actively by a large number of enslaved people, relying on obstructions at the mouth of the narrow stream where it meets the main river, about twenty miles from the coast. This spot was believed to be further protected by a battery of unknown strength at Wiltown Bluff, which was a strategic and defensible location. The obstructions were made up of a line of sturdy wooden piles across the river, but we were confident that these must have decayed significantly, and that Captain Trowbridge, a skilled engineer officer, could remove them with the right equipment. Our plan was to crew the John Adams, an armed ferry-boat that had previously been very useful to us—it is now reportedly back in peaceful service on the East Boston line—to navigate to Wiltown Bluff, take out the battery, and clear a path through the obstructions. After securing the John Adams at this location, we could then ascend the smaller stream with two shallow-draft boats, and potentially burn the bridge, which was ten miles up the river, before the enemy could gather enough force to make our position at Wiltown Bluff untenable.

The expedition was organized essentially upon this plan. The smaller boats were the Enoch Dean,—a river steamboat, which carried a ten-pound Parrott gun, and a small howitzer,—and a little mosquito of a tug, the Governor Milton, upon which, with the greatest difficulty, we found room for two twelve-pound Armstrong guns, with their gunners, forming a section of the First Connecticut Battery, under Lieutenant Clinton, aided by a squad from my own regiment, under Captain James. The John Adams carried, I if I remember rightly, two Parrott guns (of twenty and ten | pounds calibre) and a howitzer or two. The whole force of men did not exceed two hundred and fifty.

The expedition was essentially organized according to this plan. The smaller boats included the Enoch Dean—a river steamboat that carried a ten-pound Parrott gun and a small howitzer—and a little tugboat, the Governor Milton, where we managed to squeeze in two twelve-pound Armstrong guns along with their gunners, making up a section of the First Connecticut Battery, led by Lieutenant Clinton, with support from a squad from my own regiment under Captain James. If I remember correctly, the John Adams carried two Parrott guns (one of twenty pounds and one of ten pounds) and a howitzer or two. The total number of men didn’t exceed two hundred and fifty.

We left Beaufort, S. C., on the afternoon of July 9th, 1863. In former narrations I have sufficiently described the charm of a moonlight ascent into a hostile country, upon an unknown stream, the dark and silent banks, the rippling water, the wail of the reed-birds, the anxious watch, the breathless listening, the veiled lights, the whispered orders. To this was now to be added the vexation of an insufficient pilotage, for our negro guide knew only the upper river, and, as it finally proved, not even that, while, to take us over the bar which obstructed the main stream, we must borrow a pilot from Captain Dutch, whose gunboat blockaded that point. This active naval officer, however, whose boat expeditions had penetrated all the lower branches of those rivers, could supply our want, and we borrowed from him not only a pilot, but a surgeon, to replace our own, who had been prevented by an accident from coming with us. Thus accompanied, we steamed over the bar in safety, had a peaceful ascent, passed the island of Jehossee,—the fine estate of Governor Aiken, then left undisturbed by both sides,—and fired our first shell into the camp at Wiltown Bluff at four o'clock in the morning.

We left Beaufort, S.C., on the afternoon of July 9, 1863. In earlier stories, I’ve described the magic of a moonlit journey into enemy territory, along an unfamiliar river, with dark and quiet shores, the gentle ripples of the water, the calls of the reed-birds, the constant vigilance, the tense listening, the hidden lights, and the whispered commands. Now, we faced the frustration of having a guide who didn’t know the area well; our local guide was only familiar with the upper part of the river and, as it turned out, not even that well. To navigate over the bar blocking the main stream, we needed to borrow a pilot from Captain Dutch, whose gunboat was stationed there. Luckily, this resourceful naval officer, who had explored all the lower branches of these rivers, could help us out, so we not only got a pilot from him but also a surgeon to replace our own, who couldn’t join us due to an accident. With this support, we safely crossed the bar, had a smooth journey, passed the island of Jehossee—Governor Aiken's beautiful estate, which was left untouched by both sides—and fired our first shell into the camp at Wiltown Bluff at four o'clock in the morning.

The battery—whether fixed or movable we knew not—met us with a promptness that proved very shortlived. After three shots it was silent, but we could not tell why. The bluff was wooded, and we could see but little. The only course was to land, under cover of the guns. As the firing ceased and the smoke cleared away, I looked across the rice-fields which lay beneath the bluff. The first sunbeams glowed upon their emerald levels, and on the blossoming hedges along the rectangular dikes. What were those black dots which everywhere appeared? Those moist meadows had become alive with human heads, and along each narrow path came a straggling file of men and women, all on a run for the river-side. I went ashore with a boat-load of troops at once. The landing was difficult and marshy. The astonished negroes tugged us up the bank, and gazed on us as if we had been Cortez and Columbus. They kept arriving by land much faster than we could come by water; every moment increased the crowd, the jostling, the mutual clinging, on that miry foothold. What a scene it was! With the wild faces, eager figures, strange garments, it seemed, as one of the poor things reverently suggested, "like notin' but de judgment day." Presently they began to come from the houses also, with their little bundles on their heads; then with larger bundles. Old women, trotting on the narrow paths, would kneel to pray a little prayer, still balancing the bundle; and then would suddenly spring up, urged by the accumulating procession behind, and would move on till irresistibly compelled by thankfulness to dip down for another invocation.

The battery—whether it was stationary or mobile, we didn't know—greeted us with a quickness that quickly faded. After three shots, it fell silent, but we couldn't figure out why. The bluff was covered in trees, making it hard to see very far. The only option was to land, using the guns as cover. As the firing stopped and the smoke cleared, I looked across the rice fields below the bluff. The first rays of sunlight lit up the vibrant green fields and the flowering hedges along the straight dikes. What were those black dots popping up everywhere? Those wet meadows were filled with human heads, and along each narrow path, a confused line of men and women rushed toward the riverbank. I disembarked with a boatload of troops right away. The landing was hard and muddy. The surprised locals pulled us up the bank, staring at us as if we were Cortés and Columbus. They kept arriving on land much faster than we could make our way by water; with each moment, the crowd grew, jostling, and clinging to each other on that muddy ground. What a scene it was! With wild expressions, eager shapes, and strange clothing, it looked, as one of the poor souls reverently remarked, "like nothing but the judgment day." Soon, they began to come out of their houses too, carrying little bundles on their heads; then larger ones. Old women, hustling along the narrow paths, would kneel to say a quick prayer while still balancing their bundles; then they would suddenly jump up, pushed forward by the growing crowd behind them, and keep moving until they felt thankful enough to pause for another prayer.

Reaching us, every human being must grasp our hands, amid exclamations of "Bress you, mas'r," and "Bress de Lord," at the rate of four of the latter ascriptions to one of the former.

Reaching us, every person has to take our hands, with shouts of "Bless you, master," and "Bless the Lord," at a rate of four of the latter praises for every one of the former.

Women brought children on their shoulders; small black boys learned on their back little brothers equally inky, and, gravely depositing them, shook hands. Never had I seen human beings so clad, or rather so unclad, in such amazing squalid-ness and destitution of garments. I recall one small urchin without a rag of clothing save the basque waist of a lady's dress, bristling with whalebones, and worn wrong side before, beneath which his smooth ebony legs emerged like those of an ostrich from its plumage. How weak is imagination, how cold is memory, that I ever cease, for a day of my life, to see before me the picture of that astounding scene!

Women carried their children on their shoulders; little black boys learned on their backs, just like their equally dark-skinned little brothers, and after carefully setting them down, they shook hands. I had never seen people dressed—or rather undressed—in such shocking rags and poverty. I remember one small kid wearing nothing but the bodice of a lady's dress, stiff with whalebones, and worn inside out, from which his smooth, dark legs stuck out like an ostrich's from its feathers. How weak is imagination, how cold is memory, that I could ever stop, for even a single day, seeing that incredible scene before my eyes!

Yet at the time we were perforce a little impatient of all this piety, protestation, and hand-pressing; for the vital thing was to ascertain what force had been stationed at the bluff, and whether it was yet withdrawn. The slaves, on the other hand, were too much absorbed in their prospective freedom to aid us in taking any further steps to secure it. Captain Trowbridge, who had by this time landed at a different point, got quite into despair over the seeming deafness of the people to all questions. "How many soldiers are there on the bluff?" he asked of the first-comer.

Yet at the time, we couldn’t help but be a little impatient with all the piety, protests, and hand-wringing; the important thing was to find out what force was stationed at the bluff and whether it had been pulled back. The slaves, meanwhile, were too focused on their potential freedom to help us take any further steps to secure it. Captain Trowbridge, who had by now landed at a different spot, grew quite desperate over the apparent indifference of the people to all our questions. "How many soldiers are on the bluff?" he asked the first person he encountered.

"Mas'r," said the man, stuttering terribly, "I c-c-c—"

"Boss," said the man, stuttering terribly, "I c-c-c—"

"Tell me how many soldiers there are!" roared Trowbridge, in his mighty voice, and all but shaking the poor old thing, in his thirst for information.

"Tell me how many soldiers there are!" Trowbridge shouted, his powerful voice almost rattling the poor old thing as he desperately sought information.

"O mas'r," recommenced in terror the incapacitated wit-ness, "I c-c-carpenter!" holding up eagerly a little stump of a hatchet, his sole treasure, as if his profession ought to excuse from all military opinions.

"O master," the terrified witness began again, "I’m a c-c-carpenter!" He eagerly held up a small stump of a hatchet, his only treasure, as if his profession should exempt him from any military judgment.

I wish that it were possible to present all this scene from the point of view of the slaves themselves. It can be most nearly done, perhaps, by quoting the description given of a similar scene on the Combahee River, by a very aged man, who had been brought down on the previous raid, already mentioned. I wrote it down in tent, long after, while the old man recited the tale, with much gesticulation, at the door; and it is by far the best glimpse I have ever had, through a negro's eyes, at these wonderful birthdays of freedom.

I wish it were possible to show this scene from the perspective of the slaves themselves. The closest we can get is by quoting the description of a similar event on the Combahee River, given by an elderly man who had been brought down on the previous raid mentioned earlier. I wrote it down in the tent long after, while the old man told his story with lots of gestures at the door; and it's the best insight I've ever had, through a Black man's eyes, into these incredible moments of freedom.

"De people was all a hoein', mas'r," said the old man. "Dey was a hoein' in the rice-field, when de gunboats come. Den ebry man drap dem hoe, and leff de rice. De mas'r he stand and call, 'Run to de wood for hide! Yankee come, sell you to Cuba! run for hide!' Ebry man he run, and, my God! run all toder way!

"Everyone was working really hard, sir," said the old man. "They were all in the rice field when the gunboats arrived. Then every man dropped his hoe and left the rice. The master stood there shouting, 'Run to the woods to hide! The Yankees are coming to sell you to Cuba! Run and hide!' Every man ran, and, oh my God! They all ran the other way!"

"Mas'r stand in de wood, peep, peep, faid for truss [afraid to trust]. He say, 'Run to de wood!' and ebry man run by him, straight to de boat.

"Master stands in the woods, peeking, afraid to trust. He says, 'Run to the woods!' and every man runs by him, straight to the boat."

"De brack sojer so presumptious, dey come right ashore, hold up dere head. Fus' ting I know, dere was a barn, ten tousand bushel rough rice, all in a blaze, den mas'r's great house, all cracklin' up de roof. Didn't I keer for see 'em blaze? Lor, mas'r, didn't care notin' at all, was gwine to de boat."

"Those arrogant soldiers just came right ashore, standing tall. The next thing I knew, there was a barn filled with ten thousand bushels of rough rice, all on fire, and then the master’s big house was cracking up on the roof. Did I care to see them burn? Lord, the master didn’t care at all, was going to the boat."

Dore's Don Quixote could not surpass the sublime absorption in which the gaunt old man, with arm uplifted, described this stage of affairs, till he ended in a shrewd chuckle, worthy of Sancho Panza. Then he resumed.

Dore's Don Quixote couldn't match the deep involvement of the thin old man, with his arm raised, as he explained this situation, until he concluded with a clever chuckle that was fitting for Sancho Panza. Then he continued.

"De brack sojers so presumptious!" This he repeated three times, slowly shaking his head in an ecstasy of admiration. It flashed upon me that the apparition of a black soldier must amaze those still in bondage, much as a butterfly just from the chrysalis might astound his fellow-grubs. I inwardly vowed that my soldiers, at least, should be as "presumptious" as I could make them. Then he went on.

"Those black soldiers are so arrogant!" He repeated this three times, slowly shaking his head in pure admiration. It struck me that the sight of a black soldier must shock those still in bondage, much like a butterfly emerging from its chrysalis would astonish its fellow grubs. I secretly promised myself that my soldiers, at the very least, would be as "arrogant" as I could make them. Then he continued.

"Ole woman and I go down to de boat; den dey say behind us, 'Rebels comin'l Rebels comin'!' Ole woman say, 'Come ahead, come plenty ahead!' I hab notin' on but my shirt and pantaloon; ole woman one single frock he hab on, and one handkerchief on he head; I leff all-two my blanket and run for de Rebel come, and den dey didn't come, didn't truss for come.

"Ole woman and I went down to the boat; then they said behind us, 'Rebels coming! Rebels coming!' Ole woman said, 'Come on, come on plenty!' I had nothing on but my shirt and pants; the ole woman had just a single dress on and a handkerchief on her head; I left both my blankets and ran because the Rebels were coming, but then they didn't come, didn't even try to come."

"Ise eighty-eight year old, mas'r. My ole Mas'r Lowndes keep all de ages in a big book, and when we come to age ob sense we mark em down ebry year, so I know. Too ole for come? Mas'r joking. Neber too ole for leave de land o' bondage. I old, but great good for chil'en, gib tousand tank ebry day. Young people can go through, force [forcibly], mas'r, but de ole folk mus' go slow."

"I’m eighty-eight years old, sir. My old master Lowndes keeps track of all the ages in a big book, and when we reach the age of reason, we mark them down every year, so I know. Too old to come? Sir, that’s a joke. Never too old to leave the land of bondage. I’m old, but I’m really good for the children, giving a thousand thanks every day. Young people can push through quickly, force [forcibly], sir, but the older folks have to take it slow."

Such emotions as these, no doubt, were inspired by our arrival, but we could only hear their hasty utterance in passing; our duty being, with the small force already landed, to take possession of the bluff. Ascending, with proper precautions, the wooded hill, we soon found ourselves in the deserted camp of a light battery, amid scattered equipments and suggestions of a very unattractive breakfast. As soon as possible, skirmishers were thrown out through the woods to the farther edge of the bluff, while a party searched the houses, finding the usual large supply of furniture and pictures,—brought up for safety from below,—but no soldiers. Captain Trowbridge then got the John Adams beside the row of piles, and went to work for their removal.

Emotions like these were definitely stirred up by our arrival, but we could only catch snippets of their hurried conversations as we passed by; our responsibility, with the small group that had already landed, was to secure the bluff. Climbing the wooded hill with caution, we quickly found ourselves in the abandoned camp of a light battery, surrounded by scattered gear and signs of an unappealing breakfast. As soon as we could, we sent out skirmishers through the woods to the far edge of the bluff, while another group searched the houses, discovering the usual large stash of furniture and pictures—brought up for safekeeping from below—but no soldiers. Captain Trowbridge then positioned the John Adams beside the row of piles and began working on their removal.

Again I had the exciting sensation of being within the hostile lines,—the eager explorations, the doubts, the watchfulness, the listening for every sound of coming hoofs. Presently a horse's tread was heard in earnest, but it was a squad of our own men bringing in two captured cavalry soldiers. One of these, a sturdy fellow, submitted quietly to his lot, only begging that, whenever we should evacuate the bluff, a note should be left behind stating that he was a prisoner. The other, a very young man, and a member of the "Rebel Troop," a sort of Cadet corps among the Charleston youths, came to me in great wrath, complaining that the corporal of our squad had kicked him after he had surrendered. His air of offended pride was very rueful, and it did indeed seem a pathetic reversal of fortunes for the two races. To be sure, the youth was a scion of one of the foremost families of South Carolina, and when I considered the wrongs which the black race had encountered from those of his blood, first and last, it seemed as if the most scrupulous Recording Angel might tolerate one final kick to square the account. But I reproved the corporal, who respectfully disclaimed the charge, and said the kick was an incident of the scuffle. It certainly was not their habit to show such poor malice; they thought too well of themselves.

Once again, I felt the thrilling sensation of being deep within enemy territory—the eager explorations, the uncertainties, the vigilance, listening for every sound of approaching hoofbeats. Soon, we heard the distinct sound of a horse's hooves, but it turned out to be our own men escorting two captured cavalry soldiers. One of them, a tough-looking guy, accepted his fate calmly, only asking that when we left the bluff, we should leave a note stating he was a prisoner. The other soldier, a very young man and a member of the "Rebel Troop," a kind of cadet corps made up of Charleston youths, approached me, furious, complaining that our squad's corporal had kicked him after he’d surrendered. His air of offended pride was quite sorrowful, and it really seemed like a sad twist of fate for the two sides. It was worth noting that the youth came from one of the prominent families in South Carolina, and considering the injustices the black community had faced from those of his background throughout history, it felt like even the most meticulous Recording Angel might overlook one last kick to settle the score. However, I reprimanded the corporal, who respectfully denied the accusation, insisting that the kick was simply part of the struggle. They certainly didn’t usually act out of such petty malice; they held themselves in too high regard for that.

His demeanor seemed less lofty, but rather piteous, when he implored me not to put him on board any vessel which was to ascend the upper stream, and hinted, by awful implications, the danger of such ascent. This meant torpedoes, a peril which we treated, in those days, with rather mistaken contempt. But we found none on the Edisto, and it may be that it was only a foolish attempt to alarm us.

His attitude seemed less grand and more pathetic when he begged me not to put him on any boat that was going to go upstream, hinting ominously at the dangers of such a journey. This referred to torpedoes, a danger we looked down on with misguided disregard back then. But we didn't find any on the Edisto, and it might have just been a silly attempt to scare us.

Meanwhile, Trowbridge was toiling away at the row of piles, which proved easier to draw out than to saw asunder, either work being hard enough. It took far longer than we had hoped, and we saw noon approach and the tide rapidly fall, taking with it, inch by inch, our hopes of effecting a surprise at the bridge. During this time, and indeed all day, the detachments on shore, under Captains Whitney and Sampson, were having occasional skirmishes with the enemy, while the colored people were swarming to the shore, or running to and fro like ants, with the poor treasures of their houses. Our busy Quartermaster, Mr. Bingham—who died afterwards from the overwork of that sultry day—was transporting the refugees on board the steamer, or hunting up bales of cotton, or directing the burning of rice-houses, in accordance with our orders. No dwelling-houses were destroyed or plundered by our men,—Sherman's "bummers" not having yet arrived,—though I asked no questions as to what the plantation negroes might bring in their great bundles. One piece of property, I must admit, seemed a lawful capture,—a United States dress-sword, of the old pattern, which had belonged to the Rebel general who afterwards gave the order to bury Colonel Shaw "with his niggers." That I have retained, not without some satisfaction, to this day.

Meanwhile, Trowbridge was working hard at the row of piles, which turned out to be easier to pull out than to saw in half, though both tasks were tough enough. It took much longer than we had hoped, and we watched as noon approached and the tide quickly fell, taking our hopes of surprising the enemy at the bridge with it, bit by bit. During this time, and really all day, the teams on shore, led by Captains Whitney and Sampson, were occasionally clashing with the enemy, while the local residents were crowding the shore or running around like ants, carrying whatever they could salvage from their homes. Our diligent Quartermaster, Mr. Bingham—who later died from the exhaustion of that hot day—was busy getting the refugees aboard the steamer, tracking down bales of cotton, or overseeing the burning of rice houses, following our orders. No houses were destroyed or looted by our men—Sherman's "bummers" hadn't arrived yet—though I didn't ask questions about what the local workers might be bringing in their large bundles. One item, I must admit, did seem like a legitimate find—a United States dress sword of the old style that had belonged to the Rebel general who later commanded the burial of Colonel Shaw "with his niggers." I have kept that sword, not without some satisfaction, to this day.

A passage having been cleared at last, and the tide having turned by noon, we lost no time in attempting the ascent, leaving the bluff to be held by the John Adams, and by the small force on shore. We were scarcely above the obstructions, however, when the little tug went aground, and the Enoch Dean, ascending a mile farther, had an encounter with a battery on the right,—perhaps our old enemy,—and drove it back. Soon after, she also ran aground, a misfortune of which our opponent strangely took no advantage; and, on getting off, I thought it best to drop down to the bluff again, as the tide was still hopelessly low. None can tell, save those who have tried them, the vexations of those muddy Southern streams, navigable only during a few hours of flood-tide.

A passage finally cleared, and with the tide turning by noon, we wasted no time trying to go up, leaving the bluff under the control of the John Adams and a small group on shore. We had just gotten past the obstacles when the little tug got stuck, and the Enoch Dean, moving up a mile further, ran into a battery on the right—perhaps our old foe—and pushed it back. Shortly after, it also ran aground, a mishap that our adversary oddly didn’t take advantage of; when we got free, I thought it was best to head back down to the bluff since the tide was still frustratingly low. Only those who have experienced them can understand the frustrations of those muddy Southern rivers, which are navigable only for a few hours during high tide.

After waiting an hour, the two small vessels again tried the ascent. The enemy on the right had disappeared; but we could now see, far off on our left, another light battery moving parallel with the river, apparently to meet us at some upper bend. But for the present we were safe, with the low rice-fields on each side of us; and the scene was so peaceful, it seemed as if all danger were done. For the first time, we saw in South Carolina blossoming river-banks and low emerald meadows, that seemed like New England. Everywhere there were the same rectangular fields, smooth canals, and bushy dikes. A few negroes stole out to us in dugouts, and breathlessly told us how others had been hurried away by the overseers. We glided safely on, mile after mile. The day was unutterably hot, but all else seemed propitious. The men had their combustibles all ready to fire the bridge, and our hopes were unbounded.

After waiting an hour, the two small boats tried to move up again. The enemy on the right had vanished, but we could now see, far off on our left, another light artillery unit moving along the river, seemingly to intercept us at some point further up. For now, we were safe, with the low rice fields on either side; the scene felt so peaceful that it seemed all danger had passed. For the first time, we saw the blooming riverbanks and lush green meadows of South Carolina, which reminded us of New England. Everywhere there were the same rectangular fields, smooth canals, and bushy embankments. A few Black individuals approached us in dugout canoes and breathlessly informed us how others had been quickly taken away by the overseers. We glided safely on, mile after mile. The day was incredibly hot, but everything else seemed favorable. The men had their flammable materials ready to set fire to the bridge, and our hopes were high.

But by degrees the channel grew more tortuous and difficult, and while the little Milton glided smoothly over everything, the Enoch Dean, my own boat, repeatedly grounded. On every occasion of especial need, too, something went wrong in her machinery,—her engine being constructed on some wholly new patent, of which, I should hope, this trial would prove entirely sufficient. The black pilot, who was not a soldier, grew more and more bewildered, and declared that it was the channel, not his brain, which had gone wrong; the captain, a little elderly man, sat wringing his hands in the pilot-box; and the engineer appeared to be mingling his groans with those of the diseased engine. Meanwhile I, in equal ignorance of machinery and channel, had to give orders only justified by minute acquaintance with both. So I navigated on general principles, until they grounded us on a mud-bank, just below a wooded point, and some two miles from the bridge of our destination. It was with a pang that I waved to Major Strong, who was on the other side of the channel in a tug, not to risk approaching us, but to steam on and finish the work, if he could.

But gradually the channel became more winding and tricky, and while the little Milton sailed smoothly over everything, my boat, the Enoch Dean, kept getting stuck. Whenever we really needed something to work, something went wrong with her mechanics—her engine was built on some entirely new patent, and I hoped this trial would prove it was reliable. The black pilot, who wasn’t a soldier, became more and more confused and insisted it was the channel, not his mind, that was off; the captain, an older man, sat nervously wringing his hands in the pilot box; and the engineer seemed to mix his groans with those of the malfunctioning engine. Meanwhile, I, equally clueless about both the machinery and the channel, had to give orders based on only a little knowledge of each. So I navigated using general principles until we got stuck on a mudbank just below a wooded area, about two miles from the bridge we were aiming for. It was with a heavy heart that I signaled to Major Strong, who was on the other side of the channel in a tug, not to come any closer but to keep going and finish the job if he could.

Short was his triumph. Gliding round the point, he found himself instantly engaged with a light battery of four or six guns, doubtless the same we had seen in the distance. The Milton was within two hundred and fifty yards. The Connecticut men fought then: guns well, aided by the blacks, and it was exasperating for us to hear the shots, while we could see nothing and do nothing. The scanty ammunition of our bow gun was exhausted, and the gun in the stern was useless, from the position in which we lay. In vain we moved the men from side to side, rocking the vessel, to dislodge it. The heat was terrific that August afternoon; I remember I found myself constantly changing places, on the scorched deck, to keep my feet from being blistered. At last the officer in charge of the gun, a hardy lumberman from Maine, got the stern of the vessel so far round that he obtained the range of the battery through the cabin windows, "but it would be necessary," he cooly added, on reporting to me this fact, "to shoot away the corner of the cabin." I knew that this apartment was newly painted and gilded, and the idol of the poor captain's heart; but it was plain that even the thought of his own upholstery could not make the poor soul more wretched than he was. So I bade Captain Dolly blaze away, and thus we took our hand in the little game, though at a sacrifice.

Short was his triumph. Gliding around the point, he found himself immediately engaged with a light battery of four or six guns, likely the same ones we had seen in the distance. The Milton was within two hundred and fifty yards. The Connecticut men fought bravely: the guns were well-managed, aided by the Black soldiers, and it was frustrating for us to hear the shots while we could see nothing and do nothing. The limited ammunition for our bow gun was exhausted, and the gun in the stern was useless due to our position. We tried moving the men from side to side to rock the vessel and dislodge it, but it was futile. The heat was intense that August afternoon; I remember constantly shifting positions on the scorched deck to avoid blistering my feet. Eventually, the officer in charge of the gun, a tough lumberman from Maine, managed to turn the back of the vessel enough to get a sight at the battery through the cabin windows, "but it would be necessary," he added calmly when reporting this to me, "to shoot away the corner of the cabin." I knew that this area was newly painted and gilded, and it was the pride of the poor captain's heart; however, it was clear that even the thought of his decor could not make the poor guy feel any worse than he already did. So I told Captain Dolly to fire away, and that’s how we joined in the little fight, even at a cost.

It was of no use. Down drifted out little consort round the point, her engine disabled and her engineer killed, as we afterwards found, though then we could only look and wonder. Still pluckily firing, she floated by upon the tide, which had now just turned; and when, with a last desperate effort, we got off, our engine had one of its impracticable fits, and we could only follow her. The day was waning, and all its range of possibility had lain within the limits of that one tide.

It was pointless. Our little ship drifted around the point, her engine broken and her engineer dead, as we later discovered, though all we could do then was watch and wonder. Still bravely firing, she floated away on the tide, which had just turned; and when we finally managed to get moving again, our engine started having one of its malfunctions, and we could only follow her. The day was ending, and all our options were contained within the limits of that one tide.

All our previous expeditions had been so successful it now seemed hard to turn back; the river-banks and rice-fields, so beautiful before, seemed only a vexation now. But the swift current bore us on, and after our Parthian shots had died away, a new discharge of artillery opened upon us, from our first antagonist of the morning, which still kept the other side of the stream. It had taken up a strong position on another bluff, almost out of range of the John Adams, but within easy range of us. The sharpest contest of the day was before us. Happily the engine and engineer were now behaving well, and we were steering in a channel already traversed, and of which the dangerous points were known. But we had a long, straight reach of river before us, heading directly toward the battery, which, having once got our range, had only to keep it, while we could do nothing in return. The Rebels certainly served then: guns well. For the first time I discovered that there were certain compensating advantages in a slightly built craft, as compared with one more substantial; the missiles never lodged in the vessel, but crashed through some thin partition as if it were paper, to explode beyond us, or fall harmless in the water. Splintering, the chief source of wounds and death in wooden ships, was thus entirely avoided; the danger was that our machinery might be disabled, or that shots might strike below the water-line and sink us.

All our previous missions had gone so well that it was hard to consider retreating; the riverbanks and rice fields, which once looked beautiful, now just felt annoying. But the strong current pushed us forward, and after our initial shots had faded, a new barrage of artillery came our way from our first opponent of the morning, who was still on the opposite bank. They had taken a strong position on another bluff, almost out of range of the John Adams, but within easy reach of us. The toughest fight of the day was ahead. Fortunately, the engine and engineer were working well, and we were navigating through a previously traveled channel, with dangerous spots already known. However, we faced a long, straight stretch of river directly towards the battery, which, having already figured out our range, could just maintain it while we couldn’t do anything in reply. The Rebels certainly were effective with their guns. For the first time, I realized there were some compensating advantages to a lightly built vessel compared to a sturdier one; the projectiles never got stuck in the boat but burst through some thin wall as if it was paper, exploding past us or landing harmlessly in the water. Shattering, the main cause of injuries and deaths in wooden ships, was thus completely avoided; the risk was that our machinery might get damaged or that shots could hit below the waterline and sink us.

This, however, did not happen. Fifteen projectiles, as we afterwards computed, passed through the vessel or cut the rigging. Yet few casualties occurred, and those instantly fatal. As my orderly stood leaning on a comrade's shoulder, the head of the latter was shot off. At last I myself felt a sudden blow in the side, as if from some prize-fighter, doubling me up for a moment, while I sank upon a seat. It proved afterwards to have been produced by the grazing of a ball, which, without tearing a garment, had yet made a large part of my side black and blue, leaving a sensation of paralysis which made it difficult to stand. Supporting myself on Captain Rogers, I tried to comprehend what had happened, and I remember being impressed by an odd feeling that I had now got my share, and should henceforth be a great deal safer than any of the rest. I am told that this often follows one's first experience of a wound.

This, however, didn’t happen. Fifteen projectiles, as we later calculated, passed through the ship or hit the rigging. Yet there were few casualties, and those were instantly fatal. While my orderly was leaning on a comrade’s shoulder, the latter’s head was shot off. Eventually, I felt a sudden blow in my side, like I had been hit by a prizefighter, doubling me over for a moment as I sank into a seat. It turned out to be a graze from a bullet, which, without tearing my clothes, left a large part of my side black and blue and created a numbness that made it hard to stand. Leaning on Captain Rogers, I tried to process what had happened, and I remember feeling oddly reassured that I had taken my hit and would now be much safer than anyone else. I’ve been told this often follows someone’s first experience of being wounded.

But this immediate contest, sharp as it was, proved brief; a turn in the river enabled us to use our stern gun, and we soon glided into the comparative shelter of Wiltown Bluff. There, however, we were to encounter the danger of shipwreck, superadded to that of fight. When the passage through the piles was first cleared, it had been marked by stakes, lest the rising tide should cover the remaining piles, and make it difficult to run the passage. But when we again reached it, the stakes had somehow been knocked away, the piles were just covered by the swift current, and the little tug-boat was aground upon them. She came off easily, however, with our aid, and, when we in turn essayed the passage, we grounded also, but more firmly. We getting off at last, and making the passage, the tug again became lodged, when nearly past danger, and all our efforts proved powerless to pull her through. I therefore dropped down below, and sent the John Adams to her aid, while I superintended the final recall of the pickets, and the embarkation of the remaining refugees.

But this immediate conflict, as intense as it was, turned out to be short-lived; a bend in the river allowed us to use our rear gun, and we soon glided into the relative safety of Wiltown Bluff. There, however, we faced the risk of shipwreck, added to the threat of combat. When the route through the piles was first cleared, it had been marked by stakes to prevent the rising tide from submerging the remaining piles and complicating the navigation. But when we returned to it, the stakes were somehow knocked down, the piles were barely visible under the swift current, and the small tugboat ran aground on them. Fortunately, she got off easily with our help, and when we tried to pass through, we got stuck as well, but more firmly. After finally getting off and making the passage, the tug got stuck again, just as she was about to clear the danger, and all our efforts to pull her through were useless. I then moved downstream and sent the John Adams to help her while I oversaw the final recall of the pickets and the boarding of the remaining refugees.

While thus engaged, I felt little solicitude about the boats above. It was certain that the John Adams could safely go close to the piles on the lower side, that she was very strong, and that the other was very light. Still, it was natural to cast some anxious glances up the river, and it was with surprise that I presently saw a canoe descending, which contained Major Strong. Coming on board, he told me with some excitement that the tug could not possibly be got off, and he wished for orders.

While I was focused on my task, I didn’t worry much about the boats upstream. It was obvious that the John Adams could safely approach the piles on the lower side, that she was quite sturdy, and that the other boat was very light. Still, it was only natural to steal a few anxious looks up the river, and to my surprise, I soon saw a canoe coming down with Major Strong in it. When he came aboard, he excitedly told me that the tug couldn’t possibly be freed and he needed instructions.

It was no time to consider whether it was not his place to have given orders, instead of going half a mile to seek them. I was by this time so far exhausted that everything seemed to pass by me as by one in a dream; but I got into a boat, pushed up stream, met presently the John Adams returning, and was informed by the officer in charge of the Connecticut battery that he had abandoned the tug, and—worse news yet—that his guns had been thrown overboard. It seemed to me then, and has always seemed, that this sacrifice was utterly needless, because, although the captain of the John Adams had refused to risk his vessel by going near enough to receive the guns, he should have been compelled to do so. Though the thing was done without my knowledge, and beyond my reach, yet, as commander of the expedition, I was technically responsible. It was hard to blame a lieutenant when his senior had shrunk from a decision, and left him alone; nor was it easy to blame Major Strong, whom I knew to be a man of personal courage though without much decision of character. He was subsequently tried by court-martial and acquitted, after which he resigned, and was lost at sea on his way home.

It wasn't the right time to think about whether it was inappropriate for him to give orders instead of going half a mile to get them. By that point, I was so exhausted that everything felt like it was happening in a dream; but I got into a boat, paddled upstream, soon encountered the John Adams coming back, and learned from the officer in charge of the Connecticut battery that he had abandoned the tug, and—worse news—that the guns had been thrown overboard. At that moment, and it has always felt this way, that sacrifice was completely unnecessary because, even though the captain of the John Adams had refused to risk his vessel by getting close enough to retrieve the guns, he should have been forced to do so. Although the decision was made without my knowledge and was beyond my control, as the commander of the expedition, I was technically responsible. It was difficult to blame a lieutenant when his superior had backed away from a decision and left him to handle it alone; nor was it easy to fault Major Strong, whom I knew to be personally brave but not very decisive. He was later tried by court-martial and acquitted, after which he resigned and was lost at sea on his way home.

The tug, being thus abandoned, must of course be burned to prevent her falling into the enemy's hands. Major Strong went with prompt fearlessness to do this, at my order; after which he remained on the Enoch Dean, and I went on board the John Adams, being compelled to succumb at last, and transfer all remaining responsibility to Captain Trowbridge. Exhausted as I was, I could still observe, in a vague way, the scene around me. Every available corner of the boat seemed like some vast auction-room of second-hand goods. Great piles of bedding and bundles lay on every side, with black heads emerging and black forms reclining in every stage of squalidness. Some seemed ill, or wounded, or asleep, others were chattering eagerly among themselves, singing, praying, or soliloquizing on joys to come. "Bress de Lord," I heard one woman say, "I spec' I got salt victual now,—notin' but fresh victual dese six months, but Ise get salt victual now,"—thus reversing, under pressure of the salt-embargo, the usual anticipations of voyagers.

The tug, having been abandoned, obviously needed to be burned to keep it from falling into enemy hands. Major Strong bravely took action to do this at my request; after that, he stayed on the Enoch Dean while I moved over to the John Adams, finally having to give up and hand over all remaining responsibility to Captain Trowbridge. Even though I was exhausted, I could still vaguely take in the scene around me. Every available corner of the boat looked like a huge auction house full of second-hand items. Large piles of bedding and bundles filled the space, with black heads peeking out and black forms sprawled out in various states of disarray. Some people looked ill, injured, or asleep; others were chatting excitedly, singing, praying, or talking to themselves about the joys ahead. "Thank the Lord," I heard one woman say, "I guess I finally got salt food now—nothing but fresh food for these six months, but now I'm getting salt food,"—thus flipping the usual expectations of travelers due to the salt embargo.

Trowbridge told me, long after, that, on seeking a fan for my benefit, he could find but one on board. That was in the hands of a fat old "aunty," who had just embarked, and sat on an enormous bundle of her goods, in everybody's way, fanning herself vehemently, and ejaculating, as her gasping breath would permit, "Oh! Do, Jesus! Oh! Do, Jesus!" when the captain abruptly disarmed her of the fan, and left her continuing her pious exercises.

Trowbridge told me later that when he tried to find a fan for me, he could only locate one on the ship. It was in the hands of a heavyset old lady who had just boarded and was sitting on a huge pile of her belongings, blocking everyone's path, faning herself furiously and gasping, "Oh! Do, Jesus! Oh! Do, Jesus!" when the captain suddenly took the fan from her, leaving her to continue her prayers.

Thus we glided down the river in the waning light. Once more we encountered a battery, making five in all; I could hear the guns of the assailants, and could not distinguish the explosion of their shells from the answering throb of our own guns. The kind Quartermaster kept bringing me news of what occurred, like Rebecca in Front-de-Boeuf s castle, but discreetly withholding any actual casualties. Then all faded into safety and sleep; and we reached Beaufort in the morning, after thirty-six hours of absence. A kind friend, who acted in South Carolina a nobler part amid tragedies than in any of her early stage triumphs, met us with an ambulance at the wharf, and the prisoners, the wounded, and the dead were duly attended.

So we drifted down the river as the light faded. Once again, we came across a battery, making it five in total; I could hear the enemy's guns, and I couldn't tell the sound of their shells from the echo of our own artillery. The thoughtful Quartermaster kept bringing me updates on what was happening, like Rebecca in Front-de-Boeuf’s castle, but carefully leaving out any details about casualties. Then everything faded into safety and sleep; we arrived in Beaufort in the morning after thirty-six hours away. A kind friend, who played a more heroic role in South Carolina amidst tragedies than in any of her earlier stage successes, greeted us with an ambulance at the dock, and the prisoners, the wounded, and the dead were all properly attended to.

The reader will not care for any personal record of convalescence; though, among the general military laudations of whiskey, it is worth while to say that one life was saved, in the opinion of my surgeons, by an habitual abstinence from it, leaving no food for peritoneal inflammation to feed upon. The able-bodied men who had joined us were, sent to aid General Gillmore in the trenches, while their families were established in huts and tents on St. Helena Island. A year after, greatly to the delight of the regiment, in taking possession of a battery which they had helped to capture on James Island, they found in their hands the selfsame guns which they had seen thrown overboard from the Governor Milton. They then felt that their account with the enemy was squared, and could proceed to further operations.

The reader probably won’t care about any personal stories of recovery; however, amid the general praise of whiskey in the military, it’s worth mentioning that, according to my doctors, my regular avoidance of it saved my life by preventing any food for peritoneal inflammation. The able-bodied men who joined us were sent to support General Gillmore in the trenches while their families set up camp in huts and tents on St. Helena Island. A year later, much to the joy of the regiment, when they took control of a battery they had helped capture on James Island, they found the same cannons they had seen thrown overboard from the Governor Milton. They then felt that their score with the enemy was settled and could move on to further operations.

Before the war, how great a thing seemed the rescue of even one man from slavery; and since the war has emancipated all, how little seems the liberation of two hundred! But no one then knew how the contest might end; and when I think of that morning sunlight, those emerald fields, those thronging numbers, the old women with their prayers, and the little boys with them: living burdens, I know that the day was worth all it cost, and more.

Before the war, saving even one person from slavery seemed like an incredible achievement; now that the war has freed everyone, liberating two hundred feels almost insignificant! Back then, no one knew how the conflict would turn out; and when I remember that morning sunlight, those green fields, those crowded people, the older women with their prayers, and the little boys with them: living reminders, I realize that the day was worth every sacrifice and more.





Chapter 8. The Baby of the Regiment

We were in our winter camp on Port Royal Island. It was a lovely November morning, soft and spring-like; the mocking-birds were singing, and the cotton-fields still white with fleecy pods. Morning drill was over, the men were cleaning their guns and singing very happily; the officers were in their tents, reading still more happily their letters just arrived from home. Suddenly I heard a knock at my tent-door, and the latch clicked. It was the only latch in camp, and I was very proud of it, and the officers always clicked it as loudly as possible, in order to gratify my feelings. The door opened, and the Quartermaster thrust in the most beaming face I ever saw.

We were at our winter camp on Port Royal Island. It was a beautiful November morning, mild and spring-like; the mockingbirds were singing, and the cotton fields were still white with fluffy pods. The morning drill was finished, the men were cleaning their guns and singing cheerfully; the officers were in their tents, happily reading their letters that had just arrived from home. Suddenly, I heard a knock at my tent door, and the latch clicked. It was the only latch in camp, and I was really proud of it, so the officers always clicked it as loudly as they could to make me happy. The door opened, and the Quartermaster stuck in the brightest face I’d ever seen.

"Colonel," said he, "there are great news for the regiment. My wife and baby are coming by the next steamer!"

"Colonel," he said, "there's great news for the regiment. My wife and baby are coming on the next steamer!"

"Baby!" said I, in amazement. "Q. M., you are beside yourself." (We always called the Quartermaster Q. M. for shortness.) "There was a pass sent to your wife, but nothing was ever said about a baby. Baby indeed!"

"Wow!" I said, amazed. "Q. M., you're out of control." (We always called the Quartermaster Q. M. for short.) "There was a pass sent to your wife, but no one mentioned a baby. A baby, really!"

"But the baby was included in the pass," replied the triumphant father-of-a-family. "You don't suppose my wife would come down here without her baby! Besides, the pass itself permits her to bring necessary baggage, and is not a baby six months old necessary baggage?"

"But the baby was part of the pass," replied the proud dad. "You don't think my wife would come down here without her baby! Plus, the pass allows her to bring essential items, and isn't a six-month-old baby considered essential?"

"But, my dear fellow," said I, rather anxiously, "how can you make the little thing comfortable in a tent, amidst these rigors of a South Carolina winter, when it is uncomfortably hot for drill at noon, and ice forms by your bedside at night?"

"But, my dear friend," I said, a bit worried, "how can you make the little one comfortable in a tent during these harsh South Carolina winters, when it's uncomfortably hot for drills at noon and ice forms by your bedside at night?"

"Trust me for that," said the delighted papa, and went off whistling. I could hear him telling the same news to three others, at least, before he got to his own tent.

"Trust me on that," said the happy dad, and went off whistling. I could hear him sharing the same news with at least three other people before he reached his own tent.

That day the preparations began, and soon his abode was a wonder of comfort. There were posts and rafters, and a raised floor, and a great chimney, and a door with hinges,—every luxury except a latch, and that he could not have, for mine was the last that could be purchased. One of the regimental carpenters was employed to make a cradle, and another to make a bedstead high enough for the cradle to go under. Then there must be a bit of red carpet beside the bedstead, and thus the progress of splendor went on. The wife of one of the colored sergeants was engaged to act as nursery-maid. She was a very respectable young woman; the only objection to her being that she smoked a pipe. But we thought that perhaps Baby might not dislike tobacco; and if she did, she would have excellent opportunities to break the pipe in pieces.

That day, the preparations started, and soon his home became a cozy wonder. There were posts and rafters, a raised floor, a big chimney, and a door with hinges—every luxury except a latch, which I couldn’t get because mine was the last one available. One of the carpenters from the regiment was hired to make a cradle, and another to craft a bed frame tall enough for the cradle to fit underneath. Then we needed a bit of red carpet next to the bed frame, and that’s how the luxury continued to grow. The wife of one of the black sergeants was hired to be the nanny. She was a very respectable young woman; the only downside was that she smoked a pipe. But we figured that maybe the baby wouldn’t mind the tobacco; and if she did, she would have plenty of chances to break the pipe into pieces.

In due time the steamer arrived, and Baby and her mother were among the passengers. The little recruit was soon settled in her new cradle, and slept in it as if she had never known any other. The sergeant's wife soon had her on exhibition through the neighborhood, and from that time forward she was quite a queen among us. She had sweet blue eyes and pretty brown hair, with round, dimpled cheeks, and that perfect dignity which is so beautiful in a baby. She hardly ever cried, and was not at all timid. She would go to anybody, and yet did not encourage any romping from any but the most intimate friends. She always wore a warm long-sleeved scarlet cloak with a hood, and in this costume was carried or "toted," as the soldiers said, all about the camp. At "guard-mounting" in the morning, when the men who are to go on guard duty for the day are drawn up to be inspected, Baby was always there, to help inspect them. She did not say much, but she eyed them very closely, and seemed fully to appreciate their bright buttons. Then the Officer-of-the-Day, who appears at guard-mounting with his sword and sash, and comes afterwards to the Colonel's tent for orders, would come and speak to Baby on his way, and receive her orders first. When the time came for drill she was usually present to watch the troops; and when the drum beat for dinner she liked to see the long row of men in each company march up to the cookhouse, in single file, each with tin cup and plate.

In due time, the steamer arrived, and Baby and her mom were among the passengers. The little recruit quickly settled into her new crib and slept in it as if she had never known any other. The sergeant's wife soon had her on display around the neighborhood, and from that moment on, she was quite the queen among us. She had sweet blue eyes and pretty brown hair, with round, dimpled cheeks and that perfect dignity that looks so beautiful in a baby. She hardly ever cried and wasn’t at all shy. She would go to anyone, but only let the closest friends play with her. She always wore a warm, long-sleeved red cloak with a hood, and in this outfit, she was carried or "toted," as the soldiers said, all around the camp. At "guard-mounting" in the morning, when the men who were going on guard duty for the day lined up to be inspected, Baby was always there to help check them out. She didn’t say much, but she watched them closely and seemed to really appreciate their shiny buttons. Then the Officer-of-the-Day, who appeared at guard-mounting with his sword and sash and later went to the Colonel's tent for orders, would come and speak to Baby on his way, taking her orders first. When it was time for drill, she usually watched the troops, and when the drum beat for dinner, she liked to see the long line of men from each company march up to the cookhouse in single file, each holding a tin cup and plate.

During the day, in pleasant weather, she might be seen in her nurse's arms, about the company streets, the centre of an admiring circle, her scarlet costume looking very pretty amidst the shining black cheeks and neat blue uniforms of the soldiers. At "dress-parade," just before sunset, she was always an attendant. As I stood before the regiment, I could see the little spot of red out of the corner of my eye, at one end of the long line of men; and I looked with so much interest for her small person, that, instead of saying at the proper time, "Attention, Battalion! Shoulder arms!"—it is a wonder that I did not say, "Shoulder babies!"

During the day, when the weather was nice, she could be seen in her nurse's arms, strolling through the company streets, the center of an admiring crowd. Her bright red outfit looked pretty against the shiny black skin and neat blue uniforms of the soldiers. At "dress parade," just before sunset, she was always there. As I stood in front of the regiment, I could spot that little flash of red out of the corner of my eye, at one end of the long line of men. I was so focused on finding her that instead of saying the appropriate command, "Attention, Battalion! Shoulder arms!"—it's a wonder I didn't say, "Shoulder babies!"

Our little lady was very impartial, and distributed her kind looks to everybody. She had not the slightest prejudice against color, and did not care in the least whether her particular friends were black or white. Her especial favorites, I think, were the drummer-boys, who were not my favorites by any means, for they were a roguish set of scamps, and gave more trouble than all the grown men in the regiment. I think Annie liked them because they were small, and made a noise, and had red caps like her hood, and red facings on their jackets, and also because they occasionally stood on their heads for her amusement. After dress-parade the whole drum-corps would march to the great flag-staff, and wait till just sunset-time, when they would beat "the retreat," and then the flag would be hauled down,—a great festival for Annie. Sometimes the Sergeant-Major would wrap her in the great folds of the flag, after it was taken down, and she would peep out very prettily from amidst the stars and stripes, like a new-born Goddess of Liberty.

Our little lady was very fair and shared her sweet smiles with everyone. She had no bias against anyone’s skin color and didn’t care at all whether her friends were black or white. I think her favorite friends were the drummer boys, who definitely weren’t my favorites because they were a mischievous bunch and caused more trouble than all the adults in the regiment combined. I think Annie liked them because they were small, loud, wore red caps like her hood, had red trim on their jackets, and would occasionally do handstands to entertain her. After dress parade, the entire drum corps would march to the big flagpole and wait until sunset when they’d play “the retreat,” and then lower the flag—such a celebration for Annie. Sometimes the Sergeant-Major would wrap her in the large folds of the flag after it was taken down, and she would peek out cutely from among the stars and stripes, like a newborn Goddess of Liberty.

About once a month, some inspecting officer was sent to the camp by the general in command, to see to the condition of everything in the regiment, from bayonets to buttons. It was usually a long and tiresome process, and, when everything else was done, I used to tell the officer that I had one thing more for him to inspect, which was peculiar to our regiment. Then I would send for Baby to be exhibited, and I never saw an inspecting officer, old or young, who did not look pleased at the sudden appearance of the little, fresh, smiling creature,—a flower in the midst of war. And Annie in her turn would look at them, with the true baby dignity La her face,—that deep, earnest look which babies often have, and which people think so wonderful when Raphael paints it, although they might often see just the same expression in the faces of their own darlings at home.

About once a month, the general in command sent an inspecting officer to the camp to check on everything in the regiment, from bayonets to buttons. It was usually a long and tiresome process, and when everything else was done, I would tell the officer that I had one more thing for him to inspect, which was unique to our regiment. Then I would call for Baby to be shown off, and I never saw an inspecting officer, old or young, who didn't look happy at the sudden appearance of the little, cheerful, smiling child—a flower in the midst of war. And Annie, in turn, would look at them with the true baby dignity on her face—that deep, serious look that babies often have, which people find so amazing when Raphael paints it, even though they often see the same expression on their own little ones at home.

Meanwhile Annie seemed to like the camp style of housekeeping very much. Her father's tent was double, and he used the front apartment for his office, and the inner room for parlor and bedroom; while the nurse had a separate tent and wash-room behind all. I remember that, the first time I went there in the evening, it was to borrow some writing-paper; and while Baby's mother was hunting for it in the front tent, I heard a great cooing and murmuring in the inner room. I asked if Annie was still awake, and her mother told me to go in and see. Pushing aside the canvas door, I entered. No sign of anybody was to be seen; but a variety of soft little happy noises seemed to come from some unseen corner. Mrs. C. came quietly in, pulled away the counterpane of her own bed, and drew out the rough cradle where lay the little damsel, perfectly happy, and wider awake than anything but a baby possibly can be. She looked as if the seclusion of a dozen family bedsteads would not be enough to discourage her spirits, and I saw that camp life was likely to suit her very well.

Meanwhile, Annie really seemed to enjoy the camp style of housekeeping. Her father’s tent was spacious, with the front area serving as his office and the back room acting as both a parlor and a bedroom; the nurse had her own separate tent and washroom positioned behind. I remember the first time I visited in the evening, I was there to borrow some writing paper. While Baby's mother searched for it in the front tent, I heard a lot of soft cooing and murmuring coming from the inner room. I asked if Annie was still awake, and her mother told me to go in and check. As I pushed aside the canvas door and entered, I didn’t see anyone, but I could hear a variety of joyful little sounds coming from somewhere hidden. Mrs. C. quietly walked in, pulled back the cover of her bed, and revealed a rough cradle where the little girl lay, perfectly content and more awake than any baby I’ve ever seen. She looked like the privacy of a dozen family beds wouldn’t be enough to dampen her spirits, and I realized that camp life was likely to suit her very well.

A tent can be kept very warm, for it is merely a house with a thinner wall than usual; and I do not think that Baby felt the cold much more than if she had been at home that winter. The great trouble is, that a tent-chimney, not being built very high, is apt to smoke when the wind is in a certain direction; and when that happens it is hardly possible to stay inside. So we used to build the chimneys of some tents on the east side, and those of others on the west, and thus some of the tents were always comfortable. I have seen Baby's mother running in a hard rain, with little Red-Riding-Hood in her arms, to take refuge with the Adjutant's wife, when every other abode was full of smoke; and I must admit that there were one or two windy days that season when nobody could really keep warm, and Annie had to remain ignominiously in her cradle, with as many clothes on as possible, for almost the whole time.

A tent can stay really warm since it’s just a smaller house with thinner walls. I don’t think Baby felt the cold much more than she would have at home that winter. The main issue is that a tent chimney, not being very tall, tends to smoke when the wind blows in a certain direction, making it almost impossible to stay inside. So, we used to build the chimneys of some tents on the east side and others on the west, ensuring that some tents were always cozy. I’ve seen Baby's mother sprinting in a heavy rain with little Red-Riding-Hood in her arms to take shelter with the Adjutant's wife when every other place was filled with smoke. I have to admit, though, that there were one or two windy days that season when no one could really stay warm, and Annie had to stay embarrassingly in her cradle, bundled up as much as possible, for nearly the entire time.

The Quartermaster's tent was very attractive to us in the evening. I remember that once, on passing near it after nightfall, I heard our Major's fine voice singing Methodist hymns within, and Mrs. C.'s sweet tones chiming in. So I peeped through the outer door. The fire was burning very pleasantly in the inner tent, and the scrap of new red carpet made the floor look quite magnificent. The Major sat on a box, our surgeon on a stool; "Q. M." and his wife, and the Adjutant's wife, and one of the captains, were all sitting on the bed, singing as well as they knew how; and the baby was under the bed. Baby had retired for the night, was overshadowed, suppressed, sat upon; the singing went on, and she had wandered away into her own land of dreams, nearer to heaven, perhaps, than any pitch their voices could attain. I went in, and joined the party. Presently the music stopped, and another officer was sent for, to sing some particular song. At this pause the invisible innocent waked a little, and began to cluck and coo.

The Quartermaster's tent was really appealing to us in the evening. I remember that once, as I walked by it after dark, I heard our Major's beautiful voice singing Methodist hymns inside, with Mrs. C. joining in sweetly. So, I peeked through the outer door. A cozy fire was burning in the inner tent, and the piece of new red carpet made the floor look quite impressive. The Major sat on a box, our surgeon on a stool; "Q. M." and his wife, the Adjutant's wife, and one of the captains were all sitting on the bed, singing their hearts out; and the baby was under the bed. The baby had gone to sleep for the night, overshadowed and tucked away; the singing continued, and she had drifted off into her own world of dreams, perhaps closer to heaven than any note they could reach. I walked in and joined the group. Soon, the music stopped, and they called for another officer to sing a specific song. During this break, the hidden little one woke up a bit and started to cluck and coo.

"It's the kitten," exclaimed somebody.

"It's the kitten," someone exclaimed.

"It's my baby!" exclaimed Mrs. C. triumphantly, in that tone of unfailing personal pride which belongs to young mothers.

"It's my baby!" Mrs. C. exclaimed triumphantly, with that unmistakable pride that comes from young mothers.

The people all got up from the bed for a moment, while Annie was pulled from beneath, wide awake and placid as usual; and she sat in one lap or another during the rest of the concert, sometimes winking at the candle, but usually listening to the songs, with a calm and critical expression, as if she could make as much noise as any of them, whenever she saw fit to try. Not a sound did she make, however, except one little soft sneeze, which led to an immediate flood-tide of red shawl, covering every part of her but the forehead. But I soon hinted that the concert had better be ended, because I knew from observation that the small damsel had Carefully watched a regimental inspection and a brigade drill on that day, and that an interval of repose was certainly necessary.

The people all got off the bed for a moment, while Annie was pulled out from underneath, wide awake and calm as usual; she sat in one lap or another for the rest of the concert, sometimes winking at the candle, but mostly listening to the songs with a calm and thoughtful look, as if she could make just as much noise as anyone else whenever she felt like it. She didn’t make a sound, though, except for a little soft sneeze, which led to a quick flood of a red shawl covering her completely except for her forehead. But I soon suggested that the concert should wrap up, since I had noticed that the little girl had carefully watched a regimental inspection and a brigade drill that day, and she definitely needed a break.

Annie did not long remain the only baby in camp. One day, on going out to the stables to look at a horse, I heard a sound of baby-talk, addressed by some man to a child near by, and, looking round the corner of a tent, I saw that one of the hostlers had something black and round, lying on the sloping side of a tent, with which he was playing very eagerly. It proved to be his baby, a plump, shiny thing, younger than Annie; and I never saw a merrier picture than the happy father frolicking with his child, while the mother stood quietly by. This was Baby Number Two, and she stayed in camp several weeks, the two innocents meeting each other every day, in the placid indifference that belonged to their years; both were happy little healthy things, and it never seemed to cross their minds that there was any difference in their complexions. As I said before, Annie was not troubled by any prejudice in regard to color, nor do I suppose that the other little maiden was.

Annie didn’t stay the only baby in camp for long. One day, when I went out to the stables to check on a horse, I heard someone talking to a baby nearby. Curious, I peeked around the corner of a tent and saw one of the hostlers playing excitedly with something black and round on the tent’s sloping edge. It turned out to be his baby, a plump, shiny little one younger than Annie. I’ve never seen a happier scene than the joyful father playing with his child while the mother stood by calmly. This was Baby Number Two, and she stayed in camp for several weeks, with the two little ones meeting every day, completely indifferent to their differences. They were both happy, healthy little kids, and it never seemed to occur to them that there was any difference in their skin tones. As I mentioned before, Annie wasn’t bothered by any prejudices about color, and I doubt the other little girl was either.

Annie enjoyed the tent-life very much; but when we were Sent out on picket soon after, she enjoyed it still more. Our head-quarters were at a deserted plantation house, with one large parlor, a dining-room, and a few bedrooms. Baby's father and mother had a room up stairs, with a stove whose pipe went straight out at the window. This was quite comfortable, though half the windows were broken, and there was no glass and no glazier to mend them. The windows of the large parlor were in much the same condition, though we had an immense fireplace, where we had a bright fire whenever it was cold, and always in the evening. The walls of this room were very dirty, and it took our ladies several days to cover all the unsightly places with wreaths and hangings of evergreen. In the performance Baby took an active part. Her duties consisted in sitting in a great nest of evergreen, pulling and fingering the fragrant leaves, and occasionally giving a little cry of glee when she had accomplished some piece of decided mischief.

Annie really enjoyed living in the tent, but when we were sent out on patrol soon after, she liked it even more. Our headquarters were at an abandoned plantation house, which had a large living room, a dining room, and a few bedrooms. Baby's parents had a room upstairs, with a stove that had its pipe sticking straight out the window. It was pretty comfortable, even though half the windows were broken and there was no glass or glazier to fix them. The windows in the big living room were in similar shape, but we had a huge fireplace where we kept a bright fire whenever it was cold, and always in the evenings. The walls of this room were very dirty, and it took our ladies several days to cover all the ugly spots with wreaths and decorations made of evergreen. Baby played an active role in this project. Her job was to sit in a big nest of evergreen, pulling and playing with the fragrant leaves, and occasionally letting out a little cry of delight when she managed to pull off some mischievous act.

There was less entertainment to be found in the camp itself at this time; but the household at head-quarters was larger than Baby had been accustomed to. We had a great deal of company, moreover, and she had quite a gay life of it. She usually made her appearance in the large parlor soon after breakfast; and to dance her for a few moments in our arms was one of the first daily duties of each one. Then the morning reports began to arrive from the different outposts,—a mounted officer or courier coming in from each place, dismounting at the door, and clattering in with jingling arms and spurs, each a new excitement for Annie. She usually got some attention from any officer who came, receiving with her wonted dignity any daring caress. When the messengers had ceased to be interesting, there were always the horses to look at, held or tethered under the trees beside the sunny piazza. After the various couriers had been received, other messengers would be despatched to the town, seven miles away, and Baby had all the excitement of their mounting and departure. Her father was often one of the riders, and would sometimes seize Annie for a good-by kiss, place her on the saddle before him, gallop her round the house once or twice, and then give her back to her nurse's arms again. She was perfectly fearless, and such boisterous attentions never frightened her, nor did they ever interfere with her sweet, infantine self-possession.

There wasn't much entertainment to be found in the camp itself at that time; however, the household at headquarters was bigger than what Baby was used to. We had a lot of company, and she was living quite a lively life. She usually showed up in the big parlor soon after breakfast, and one of our first daily tasks was to dance her for a little while in our arms. Then the morning reports started to come in from the different outposts—a mounted officer or courier arriving from each location, dismounting at the door, and entering with the sound of jingling arms and spurs, which was always a new thrill for Annie. She often received attention from any officer who came by, accepting any bold affection with her usual grace. Once the messengers stopped being interesting, there were always the horses to look at, held or tied under the trees next to the sunny piazza. After the various couriers had been greeted, other messengers would be sent out to the town seven miles away, and Baby would get all excited watching them mount and leave. Her father was often one of the riders and would sometimes grab Annie for a farewell kiss, place her on the saddle in front of him, gallop her around the house a couple of times, and then hand her back to her nurse. She was completely unafraid, and such lively attention never scared her, nor did it ever disrupt her sweet, childlike composure.

After the riding-parties had gone, there was the piazza still for entertainment, with a sentinel pacing up and down before it; but Annie did not enjoy the sentinel, though his breastplate and buttons shone like gold, so much as the hammock which always hung swinging between the pillars. It was a pretty hammock, with great open meshes; and she delighted to lie in it, and have the netting closed above her, so that she could only be seen through the apertures. I can see her now, the fresh little rosy thing, in her blue and scarlet wrappings, with one round and dimpled arm thrust forth through the netting, and the other grasping an armful of blushing roses and fragrant magnolias. She looked like those pretty French bas-reliefs of Cupids imprisoned in baskets, and peeping through. That hammock was a very useful appendage; it was a couch for us, a cradle for Baby, a nest for the kittens; and we had, moreover, a little hen, which tried to roost there every night.

After the riding parties left, the piazza was still available for entertainment, with a guard walking back and forth in front of it; but Annie didn’t enjoy the guard, even though his breastplate and buttons shone like gold, nearly as much as the hammock that always swung between the pillars. It was a lovely hammock, with large open weaves, and she loved to lie in it, having the netting closed above her, so that she could only be seen through the openings. I can picture her now, the fresh little rosy girl, wrapped in blue and scarlet, with one round, dimpled arm sticking out through the netting and the other holding a bunch of blushing roses and fragrant magnolias. She looked like those charming French bas-reliefs of Cupids trapped in baskets, peeking through. That hammock was very useful; it served as a couch for us, a cradle for Baby, a nest for the kittens; and we also had a little hen that tried to roost there every night.

When the mornings were colder, and the stove up stairs smoked the wrong way, Baby was brought down in a very incomplete state of toilet, and finished her dressing by the great fire. We found her bare shoulders very becoming, and she was very much interested in her own little pink toes. After a very slow dressing, she had a still slower breakfast out of a tin cup of warm milk, of which she generally spilt a good deal, as she had much to do in watching everybody who came into the room, and seeing that there was no mischief done. Then she would be placed on the floor, on our only piece of carpet, and the kittens would be brought in for her to play with.

When the mornings were colder and the upstairs stove smoked in the wrong direction, Baby was brought downstairs in a pretty unfinished state and finished getting dressed by the big fire. We thought her bare shoulders looked adorable, and she was really interested in her little pink toes. After a very slow getting ready, she had an even slower breakfast from a tin cup of warm milk, which she usually spilled a lot because she was busy watching everyone who entered the room and making sure no trouble was happening. Then she would be placed on the floor, on our only piece of carpet, and the kittens would be brought in for her to play with.

We had, at different times, a variety of pets, of whom Annie did not take much notice. Sometimes we had young partridges, caught by the drummer-boys in trap-cages. The children called them "Bob and Chloe," because the first notes of the male and female sound like those names. One day I brought home an opossum, with her blind bare little young clinging to the droll pouch where their mothers keep them. Sometimes we had pretty green lizards, their color darkening or deepening, like that of chameleons, in light or shade. But the only pets that took Baby's fancy were the kittens. They perfectly delighted her, from the first moment she saw them; they were the only things younger than herself that she had ever beheld, and the only things softer than themselves that her small hands had grasped. It was astonishing to see how much the kittens would endure from her. They could scarcely be touched by any one else without mewing; but when Annie seized one by the head and the other by the tail, and rubbed them violently together, they did not make a sound. I suppose that a baby's grasp is really soft, even if it seems ferocious, and so it gives less pain than one would think. At any rate, the little animals had the best of it very soon; for they entirely outstripped Annie in learning to walk, and they could soon scramble away beyond her reach, while she sat in a sort of dumb despair, unable to comprehend why anything so much smaller than herself should be so much nimbler. Meanwhile, the kittens would sit up and look at her with the most provoking indifference, just out of arm's length, until some of us would take pity on the young lady, and toss her furry playthings back to her again. "Little baby," she learned to call them; and these were the very first words she spoke.

We had a bunch of different pets at various times, but Annie hardly paid any attention to them. Sometimes we had young partridges that the drummer boys caught in traps. The kids named them "Bob and Chloe" because the sounds the male and female make resemble those names. One day, I brought home an opossum with her little blind babies clinging to her funny pouch where she kept them. Occasionally, we had cute green lizards whose color changed, like chameleons, depending on the light or shade. But the only pets that really caught Baby's interest were the kittens. She was completely enchanted by them from the moment she saw them; they were the only things younger than her that she had ever seen and the only things softer than herself that her little hands had held. It was surprising to see how much the kittens would tolerate from her. They could barely be touched by anyone else without crying out, but when Annie grabbed one by the head and the other by the tail and rubbed them together roughly, they didn’t make a sound. I guess a baby’s grip is actually soft, even if it looks aggressive, so it causes less pain than you’d expect. Anyway, the little animals quickly had the upper hand because they learned to walk faster than Annie, and soon they could scramble away just out of her reach, while she sat there in dumb confusion, not understanding why something so much smaller than her could be so much quicker. Meanwhile, the kittens would sit up and stare at her with the most infuriating indifference, just beyond her reach, until some of us felt sorry for her and tossed her furry playthings back. She learned to call them "little baby," and those were the very first words she ever spoke.

Baby had evidently a natural turn for war, further cultivated by an intimate knowledge of drills and parades. The nearer she came to actual conflict the better she seemed to like it, peaceful as her own little ways might be. Twice, at least, while she was with us on picket, we had alarms from the Rebel troops, who would bring down cannon to the opposite side of the Ferry, about two miles beyond us, and throw shot and shell over upon our side. Then the officer at the Ferry would think that there was to be an attack made, and couriers would be sent, riding to and fro, and the men would all be called to arms in a hurry, and the ladies at headquarters would all put on their best bonnets and come down stairs, and the ambulance would be made ready to carry them to a place of safety before the expected fight. On such occasions Baby was in all her glory. She shouted with delight at being suddenly uncribbed and thrust into her little scarlet cloak, and brought down stairs, at an utterly unusual and improper hour, to a piazza with lights and people and horses and general excitement. She crowed and gurgled and made gestures with her little fists, and screamed out what seemed to be her advice on the military situation, as freely as if she had been a newspaper editor. Except that it was rather difficult to understand her precise direction, I do not know but the whole Rebel force might have been captured through her plans. And at any rate, I should much rather obey her orders than those of some generals whom I have known; for she at least meant no harm, and would lead one into no mischief.

Baby clearly had a natural talent for war, which was further developed by a close understanding of drills and parades. The closer she got to real conflict, the more she seemed to enjoy it, despite her peaceful little ways. At least twice while she was with us on picket duty, we were alerted by the Rebel troops, who would set up cannons on the other side of the Ferry, about two miles away, and fire shots and shells over to our side. Then the officer at the Ferry would assume an attack was imminent, and couriers would rush back and forth, calling all the men to arms in a hurry. The ladies at headquarters would put on their finest bonnets and come downstairs, and the ambulance would be prepared to take them to safety before the anticipated fight. On such occasions, Baby was in her element. She squealed with joy at being suddenly freed from her crib and shoved into her little scarlet cloak, then brought downstairs at a completely unusual and inappropriate time to a piazza filled with lights, people, horses, and general excitement. She cooed and babbled, waving her little fists, and shouted what seemed to be her opinions on the military situation as boldly as if she were a newspaper editor. Although her exact advice was somewhat difficult to understand, I believe the entire Rebel force could have been captured based on her strategies. Ultimately, I’d much rather follow her orders than those of some generals I’ve known; at least she meant no harm and wouldn’t lead anyone into trouble.

However, at last the danger, such as it was, would be all over, and the ladies would be induced to go peacefully to bed again; and Annie would retreat with them to her ignoble cradle, very much disappointed, and looking vainly back at the more martial scene below. The next morning she would seem to have forgotten all about it, and would spill her bread and milk by the fire as if nothing had happened.

However, in the end, the danger, whatever it was, would be completely over, and the ladies would be persuaded to go peacefully to bed again; and Annie would go back with them to her not-so-glamorous crib, feeling quite let down and glancing longingly at the more exciting scene below. The next morning, she would act like she had forgotten all about it, spilling her bread and milk by the fire as if nothing had happened.

I suppose we hardly knew, at the time, how large a part of the sunshine of our daily lives was contributed by dear little Annie. Yet, when I now look back on that pleasant Southern home, she seems as essential a part of it as the mocking-birds or the magnolias, and I cannot convince myself that in returning to it I should not find her there. But Annie went back, with the spring, to her Northern birthplace, and then passed away from this earth before her little feet had fairly learned to tread its paths; and when I meet her next it must be in some world where there is triumph without armies, and where innocence is trained in scenes of peace. I know, however, that her little life, short as it seemed, was a blessing to us all, giving a perpetual image of serenity and sweetness, recalling the lovely atmosphere of far-off homes, and holding us by unsuspected ties to whatsoever things were pure.

I guess we hardly realized, at the time, how much joy dear little Annie brought into our daily lives. Now, looking back on that lovely Southern home, she feels as much a part of it as the mockingbirds or the magnolias, and I can't shake the thought that if I went back, I would still find her there. But Annie returned to her Northern hometown with the spring, and then she left this world before she had really learned to walk its paths; when I meet her again, it will have to be in a place where there is victory without war, and where innocence is nurtured in peaceful surroundings. I know, though, that her short life, though it seemed brief, was a blessing to all of us, leaving us with a lasting image of calmness and sweetness, reminding us of the beautiful atmosphere of distant homes and connecting us to everything that is pure.





Chapter 9. Negro Spirituals

The war brought to some of us, besides its direct experiences, many a strange fulfilment of dreams of other days. For instance, the present writer had been a faithful student of the Scottish ballads, and had always envied Sir Walter the delight of tracing them out amid their own heather, and of writing them down piecemeal from the lips of aged crones. It was a strange enjoyment, therefore, to be suddenly brought into the midst of a kindred world of unwritten songs, as simple and indigenous as the Border Minstrelsy, more uniformly plaintive, almost always more quaint, and often as essentially poetic.

The war brought some of us, in addition to its direct experiences, many unexpected fulfillments of dreams from the past. For example, I had always been a devoted student of Scottish ballads and had envied Sir Walter for the joy of discovering them among their own heather and writing them down bit by bit from the mouths of old women. So, it was a strange pleasure to suddenly find myself in the midst of a similar world of unwritten songs, as simple and native as the Border Minstrelsy, more consistently mournful, often more charming, and just as deeply poetic.

This interest was rather increased by the fact that I had for many years heard of this class of songs under the name of "Negro Spirituals," and had even heard some of them sung by friends from South Carolina. I could now gather on their own soil these strange plants, which I had before seen as in museums alone. True, the individual songs rarely coincided; there was a line here, a chorus there,—just enough to fix the class, but this was unmistakable. It was not strange that they differed, for the range seemed almost endless, and South Carolina, Georgia, and Florida seemed to have nothing but the generic character in common, until all were mingled in the united stock of camp-melodies.

This interest was heightened by the fact that for many years I had heard about this type of music called "Negro Spirituals" and had even listened to some of them sung by friends from South Carolina. Now, I could collect these unique songs right from their home ground, which I had previously only seen in museums. It's true that the individual songs rarely matched perfectly; there was a line here, a chorus there—just enough to identify the category, but that was clear. It wasn't surprising that they varied, as the range seemed almost limitless, and South Carolina, Georgia, and Florida appeared to share only a generic resemblance until they all blended into a common collection of camp melodies.

Often in the starlit evening, I have returned from some lonely ride by the swift river, or on the plover-haunted barrens, and, entering the camp, have silently approached some glimmering fire, round which the dusky figures moved in the rhythmical barbaric dance the negroes call a "shout," chanting, often harshly, but always in the most perfect time, some monotonous refrain. Writing down in the darkness, as I best could,—perhaps with my hand in the safe covert of my pocket,—the words of the song, I have afterwards carried it to my tent, like some captured bird or insect, and then, after examination, put it by. Or, summoning one of the men at some period of leisure,—Corporal Robert Sutton, for instance, whose iron memory held all the details of a song as if it were a ford or a forest,—I have completed the new specimen by supplying the absent parts. The music I could only retain by ear, and though the more common strains were repeated often enough to fix their impression, there were others that occurred only once or twice.

Often in the starlit evening, I have returned from some lonely ride by the swift river, or on the plover-haunted barrens, and, entering the camp, have quietly approached some glowing fire, around which the shadowy figures moved in the rhythmic, primitive dance the Black people refer to as a "shout," chanting, often harshly, but always perfectly in sync with some repetitive refrain. Writing down in the darkness as best as I could—maybe with my hand hidden safely in my pocket—the words of the song, I later carried it to my tent like some captured bird or insect, and then, after examining it, set it aside. Or, calling one of the men during a moment of leisure—Corporal Robert Sutton, for example, whose sharp memory held every detail of a song as if it were a crossing or a forest—I completed the new piece by filling in the missing parts. The music I could only remember by ear, and while the more common tunes were repeated often enough to stick in my mind, there were others that only played once or twice.

The words will be here given, as nearly as possible, in the original dialect; and if the spelling seems sometimes inconsistent, or the misspelling insufficient, it is because I could get no nearer. I wished to avoid what seems to me the only error of Lowell's "Biglow Papers" in respect to dialect, the occasional use of an extreme misspelling, which merely confuses the eye, without taking us any closer to the peculiarity of sound.

The words will be presented here as closely as possible to the original dialect; and if the spelling sometimes appears inconsistent or the misspellings seem inadequate, it’s because I couldn’t get any closer. I wanted to avoid what I consider the main flaw of Lowell's "Biglow Papers" regarding dialect, which is the occasional use of extreme misspelling that just confuses the reader without bringing us any closer to the unique sound.

The favorite song in camp was the following, sung with no accompaniment but the measured clapping of hands and the clatter of many feet. It was sung perhaps twice as often as any other. This was partly due to the fact that it properly consisted of a chorus alone, with which the verses of other songs might be combined at random.

The favorite song at camp was sung with no music, just the steady clapping of hands and the sound of many feet. It was sung maybe twice as often as any other song. This was partly because it was really just a chorus, which could easily be mixed with the verses of other songs.

I. HOLD YOUR LIGHT.

I. Hold Your Light.

  "Hold your light, Brudder Robert,
    Hold your light,
  Hold your light on Canaan's shore.
  "What make ole Satan for follow me so?
  Satan ain't got notin' for do wid me.
    Hold your light,
    Hold your light,
  Hold your light on Canaan's shore."
  "Hold your light, Brother Robert,  
    Hold your light,  
  Hold your light on Canaan's shore.  
  "Why does old Satan keep trying to follow me?  
  Satan's got nothing to do with me.  
    Hold your light,  
    Hold your light,  
  Hold your light on Canaan's shore."

This would be sung for half an hour at a time, perhaps each person present being named in turn. It seemed the simplest primitive type of "spiritual." The next in popularity was almost as elementary, and, like this, named successively each one of the circle. It was, however, much more resounding and convivial in its music.

This would be sung for half an hour at a time, maybe with each person present being named in turn. It felt like the most basic, primitive form of a "spiritual." The next one in popularity was almost as simple and, like this one, named each member of the group one after the other. However, it was much more vibrant and lively in its music.

II. BOUND TO GO.

II. Must Go.

  "Jordan River, I'm bound to go,
    Bound to go, bound to go,—
  Jordan River, I'm bound to go,
    And bid 'em fare ye well.

  "My Brudder Robert, I'm bound to go,
    Bound to go," &c.

  "My Sister Lucy, I'm bound to go,
    Bound to go," &c.
  "Jordan River, I'm set to go,  
    Set to go, set to go,—  
  Jordan River, I'm set to go,  
    And say goodbye to them.

  "My Brother Robert, I'm set to go,  
    Set to go," &c.

  "My Sister Lucy, I'm set to go,  
    Set to go," &c.

Sometimes it was "tink 'em" (think them) "fare ye well." The ye was so detached that I thought at first it was "very" or "vary well."

Sometimes it was "tink 'em" (think them) "fare you well." The you was so detached that I thought at first it was "very" or "vary well."

Another picturesque song, which seemed immensely popular, was at first very bewildering to me. I could not make out the first words of the chorus, and called it the "Roman-dar," being reminded of some Romaic song which I had formerly heard. That association quite fell in with the Orientalism of the new tent-life.

Another beautiful song, which seemed super popular, was really confusing to me at first. I couldn’t understand the first words of the chorus and called it the "Roman-dar," since it reminded me of a Greek song I had heard before. That connection really fit in with the exotic vibe of the new tent life.

III. ROOM IN THERE.

III. SPACE IN THERE.

  "O, my mudder is gone! my mudder is gone!
  My mudder is gone into heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay behind!
  Dere's room in dar, room in dar,
  Room in dar, in de heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay behind!
  Can't stay behind, my dear,
    I can't stay behind!

  "O, my fader is gone!" &c.

  "O, de angels are gone!" &c.

  "O, I'se been on de road! I'se been on de road!
  I'se been on de road into heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay behind!
  O, room in dar, room in dar,
  Room in dar, in de heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay behind!
  "Oh, my mother is gone! My mother is gone!
  My mother has gone to heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay here!
  There's room up there, room up there,
  Room up there, in heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay here!
  Can't stay here, my dear,
    I can't stay here!

  "Oh, my father is gone!" etc.

  "Oh, the angels are gone!" etc.

  "Oh, I’ve been on the road! I’ve been on the road!
  I’ve been on the road to heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay here!
  Oh, there's room up there, room up there,
  Room up there, in heaven, my Lord!
    I can't stay here!

By this time every man within hearing, from oldest to youngest, would be wriggling and shuffling, as if through some magic piper's bewitchment; for even those who at first affected contemptuous indifference would be drawn into the vortex erelong.

By this time, every man listening, from the oldest to the youngest, would be fidgeting and shifting around, as if under the spell of some magical piper; even those who initially pretended to be disinterested would soon find themselves caught up in it.

Next to these in popularity ranked a class of songs belonging emphatically to the Church Militant, and available for camp purposes with very little strain upon their symbolism. This, for instance, had a true companion-in-arms heartiness about it, not impaired by the feminine invocation at the end.

Next in popularity was a type of song that clearly belonged to the Church Militant and could be easily used for camp purposes without much effort on their symbolism. This, for example, had a genuine camaraderie to it, not diminished by the feminine invocation at the end.

IV. HAIL MARY.

IV. Hail Mary.

  "One more valiant soldier here,
    One more valiant soldier here,
  One more valiant soldier here,
    To help me bear de cross.
  O hail, Mary, hail!
    Hail, Mary, hail!
  Hail, Mary, hail!
    To help me bear de cross."
  "One more brave soldier here,
    One more brave soldier here,
  One more brave soldier here,
    To help me carry the cross.
  O hail, Mary, hail!
    Hail, Mary, hail!
  Hail, Mary, hail!
    To help me carry the cross."

I fancied that the original reading might have been "soul," instead of "soldier,"—with some other syllable inserted to fill out the metre,—and that the "Hail, Mary," might denote a Roman Catholic origin, as I had several men from St. Augustine who held in a dim way to that faith. It was a very ringing song, though not so grandly jubilant as the next, which was really impressive as the singers pealed it out, when marching or rowing or embarking.

I thought that the original word might have been "soul" instead of "soldier," with an extra syllable added to fit the rhythm, and that the "Hail, Mary" could indicate a Roman Catholic background, since I had several guys from St. Augustine who vaguely identified with that faith. It was a very powerful song, though not as joyfully exuberant as the next one, which was truly moving as the singers belted it out while marching, rowing, or boarding.

V. MY ARMY CROSS OVER.

V. MY ARMY CROSSES OVER.

  "My army cross over,
  My army cross over,
  O, Pharaoh's army drowndedl
  My army cross over.

  "We'll cross de mighty river,
    My army cross over;
  We'll cross de river Jordan,
    My army cross over;
  We'll cross de danger water,
    My army cross over;
  We'll cross de mighty Myo,
    My army cross over. (Thrice.)
    O, Pharaoh's army drowndedl
    My army cross over."
"My army crosses over,  
My army crosses over,  
Oh, Pharaoh's army drowned!  
My army crosses over.  

We'll cross the mighty river,  
My army crosses over;  
We'll cross the Jordan River,  
My army crosses over;  
We'll cross the dangerous waters,  
My army crosses over;  
We'll cross the mighty Nile,  
My army crosses over. (Thrice.)  
Oh, Pharaoh's army drowned!  
My army crosses over."

I could get no explanation of the "mighty Myo," except that one of the old men thought it meant the river of death. Perhaps it is an African word. In the Cameroon dialect, "Mawa" signifies "to die."

I couldn't get any clarification on the "mighty Myo," except that one of the old men believed it meant the river of death. Maybe it's an African word. In the Cameroon dialect, "Mawa" means "to die."

The next also has a military ring about it, and the first line is well matched by the music. The rest is conglomerate, and one or two lines show a more Northern origin. "Done" is a Virginia shibboleth, quite distinct from the "been" which replaces it in South Carolina. Yet one of their best choruses, without any fixed words, was, "De bell done ringing," for which, in proper South Carolina dialect, would have been substituted, "De bell been a-ring." This refrain may have gone South with our army.

The next part also has a military vibe, and the first line fits perfectly with the music. The rest is a mix of different styles, and a line or two suggest a more Northern influence. "Done" is a Virginia expression, clearly different from the "been" that takes its place in South Carolina. However, one of their best choruses, without any specific words, was "De bell done ringing," which in the correct South Carolina dialect would have been "De bell been a-ring." This refrain may have traveled South with our army.

VI. RIDE IN, KIND SAVIOUR.

VI. Come in, kind Savior.

  "Ride in, kind Saviour!
    No man can hinder me.
  O, Jesus is a mighty man!
    No man, &c.
  We're marching through Virginny fields.
    No man, &c.
  O, Satan is a busy man,
    No man, &c.
  And he has his sword and shield,
    No man, &c.
  O, old Secesh done come and gone!
    No man can hinder me."
  "Come on in, kind Savior!  
    No one can stop me.  
  Oh, Jesus is a powerful man!  
    No one, etc.  
  We're walking through Virginia fields.  
    No one, etc.  
  Oh, Satan is quite active,  
    No one, etc.  
  And he has his sword and shield,  
    No one, etc.  
  Oh, the old Secesh has come and gone!  
    No one can stop me."  

Sometimes they substituted "binder we," which was more spicy to the ear, and more in keeping with the usual head-over-heels arrangement of their pronouns.

Sometimes they replaced "binder we," which sounded more exciting to the ear and matched the typical head-over-heels arrangement of their pronouns better.

Almost all their songs were thoroughly religious in their tone, however quaint then: expression, and were in a minor key, both as to words and music. The attitude is always the same, and, as a commentary on the life of the race, is infinitely pathetic. Nothing but patience for this life,—nothing but triumph in the next. Sometimes the present predominates, sometimes the future; but the combination is always implied. In the following, for instance, we hear simply the patience.

Almost all their songs had a deeply religious tone, no matter how old-fashioned they seemed. They were in a minor key regarding both lyrics and melody. The sentiment was always consistent, and as a reflection on the lives of the people, it was incredibly touching. There was nothing but patience for this life—nothing but hope for the next. Sometimes the here and now took the spotlight, while at other times, the future did; but the blend of both was always understood. In the following, for example, we hear only the patience.

VII. THIS WORLD ALMOST DONE.

VII. THIS WORLD IS ALMOST OVER.

  "Brudder, keep your lamp trimmin' and a-burnin',
  Keep your lamp trimmin' and a-burnin',
  Keep your lamp trimmin' and a-burnin',
    For dis world most done.
  So keep your lamp, &c.
    Dis world most done."
  "Brother, keep your lamp trimmed and burning,  
  Keep your lamp trimmed and burning,  
  Keep your lamp trimmed and burning,  
    Because this world is almost over.  
  So keep your lamp, etc.  
    This world is almost over."  

But in the next, the final reward of patience is proclaimed as plaintively.

But in the next, the ultimate reward of patience is announced just as sadly.

VIII. I WANT TO GO HOME.

VIII. I WANT TO GO HOME.

  "Dere's no rain to wet you,
    O, yes, I want to go home.
  Dere's no sun to burn you,
    O, yes, I want to go home;
  O, push along, believers,
    O, yes, &c.
  Dere's no hard trials,
    O, yes, &c.
  Dere's no whips a-crackin',
    O, yes, &c.
  My brudder on de wayside,
    O, yes, &c.
  O, push along, my brudder,
    O, yes, &c.
  Where dere's no stormy weather,
    O, yes, &c.
  Dere's no tribulation,
    O, yes, &c.
  "There's no rain to soak you,
    Oh, yes, I want to go home.
  There's no sun to burn you,
    Oh, yes, I want to go home;
  Oh, keep moving, believers,
    Oh, yes, etc.
  There's no tough trials,
    Oh, yes, etc.
  There's no whips cracking,
    Oh, yes, etc.
  My brother by the roadside,
    Oh, yes, etc.
  Oh, keep moving, my brother,
    Oh, yes, etc.
  Where there's no stormy weather,
    Oh, yes, etc.
  There's no tribulation,
    Oh, yes, etc.

This next was a boat-song, and timed well with the tug of the oar.

This next one was a rowing song, perfectly timed with the pull of the oar.

IX. THE COMING DAY

IX. THE FUTURE DAY

  "I want to go to Canaan,
  I want to go to Canaan,
  I want to go to Canaan,
    To meet 'em at de comin' day.
  O, remember, let me go to Canaan, (Thrice.)
    To meet "em, &c.
  O brudder, let me go to Canaan, (Thrice.)
    To meet 'em, &c.
  My brudder, you—oh!—remember, (Thrice.)
    To meet 'em at de comin' day."
"I want to go to Canaan,  
I want to go to Canaan,  
I want to go to Canaan,  
to meet them on the coming day.  
Oh, remember, let me go to Canaan, (Thrice.)  
to meet them, etc.  
Oh brother, let me go to Canaan, (Thrice.)  
to meet them, etc.  
My brother, you—oh!—remember, (Thrice.)  
to meet them on the coming day."

The following begins with a startling affirmation, yet the last line quite outdoes the first. This, too, was a capital boat-song.

The following starts with a surprising statement, but the last line completely surpasses the first. This was also an excellent boat song.

X. ONE MORE RIVER.

X. ONE MORE RIVER.

  "O, Jordan bank was a great old bank,
    Dere ain't but one more river to cross.
  We have some valiant soldier here,
    Dere ain't, &c.
  O, Jordan stream will never run dry,
    Dere ain't, &c.
  Dere's a hill on my leff, and he catch on my right,
    Dere ain't but one more river to cross."
  "Oh, the Jordan bank was a grand old bank,  
    There's only one more river to cross.  
  We have some brave soldiers here,  
    There isn't, etc.  
  Oh, the Jordan stream will never run dry,  
    There isn't, etc.  
  There's a hill on my left, and he's catching on my right,  
    There's only one more river to cross."

I could get no explanation of this last riddle, except, "Dat mean, if you go on de leff, go to 'struction, and if you go on de right, go to God, for sure."

I couldn't get any explanation for this last riddle, except, "That means, if you go to the left, you’ll end up in destruction, and if you go to the right, you’ll definitely go to God."

In others, more of spiritual conflict is implied, as in this next

In other instances, there's a suggestion of a deeper spiritual struggle, like in the following

XI. O THE DYING LAMB!

XI. O THE DYING LAMB!

  "I wants to go where Moses trod,
    O de dying Lamb!
  For Moses gone to de promised land,
    O de dying Lamb!
  To drink from springs dat never run dry,
    O, &c.
  Cry O my Lord!
    O, &c.
  Before I'll stay in hell one day,
    O, &c.
  I'm in hopes to pray my sins away,
    O, &c.
  Cry O my Lord!
    0,&c.
  Brudder Moses promised for be dar too,
    O, &c.
  To drink from streams dat never run dry,
    O de dying Lamb!"
"I want to go where Moses walked,  
    O the dying Lamb!  
  For Moses has gone to the promised land,  
    O the dying Lamb!  
  To drink from springs that never run dry,  
    O, &c.  
  Cry O my Lord!  
    O, &c.  
  Before I stay in hell for one day,  
    O, &c.  
  I hope to pray my sins away,  
    O, &c.  
  Cry O my Lord!  
    O, &c.  
  Brother Moses promised to be there too,  
    O, &c.  
  To drink from streams that never run dry,  
    O the dying Lamb!"

In the next, the conflict is at its height, and the lurid imagery of the Apocalypse is brought to bear. This book, with the books of Moses, constituted their Bible; all that lay between, even the narratives of the life of Jesus, they hardly cared to read or to hear.

In the next section, the conflict reaches its peak, and the vivid imagery of the Apocalypse is introduced. This book, along with the books of Moses, made up their Bible; everything in between, including the stories about Jesus's life, they barely wanted to read or listen to.

XII. DOWN IN THE VALLEY.

12. Down in the Valley.

  "We'll run and never tire,
  We'll run and never tire,
  We'll run and never tire,
    Jesus set poor sinners free.
  Way down in de valley,
    Who will rise and go with me?
  You've heern talk of Jesus,
    Who set poor sinners free.

  "De lightnin' and de flashin'
  De lightnin' and de flashin',
  De lightnin' and de flashin',
    Jesus set poor shiners free.
  I can't stand the fire. (Thrice.)
    Jesus set poor sinners free,
  De green trees a-flamin'. (Thrice.)
    Jesus set poor shiners free,
      Way down in de valley,
        Who will rise and go with me?
      You've heern talk of Jesus
        Who set poor shiners free."
  "We’ll run and never get tired,  
  We’ll run and never get tired,  
  We’ll run and never get tired,  
    Jesus set lost souls free.  
  Way down in the valley,  
    Who will rise and go with me?  
  You’ve heard the talk about Jesus,  
    Who set lost souls free.  

  "The lightning and the flashing,  
  The lightning and the flashing,  
  The lightning and the flashing,  
    Jesus set lost souls free.  
  I can’t handle the fire. (Thrice.)  
    Jesus set lost souls free,  
  The green trees are blazing. (Thrice.)  
    Jesus set lost souls free,  
      Way down in the valley,  
        Who will rise and go with me?  
      You’ve heard the talk about Jesus  
        Who set lost souls free."  

"De valley" and "de lonesome valley" were familiar words in their religious experience. To descend into that region implied the same process with the "anxious-seat" of the camp-meeting. When a young girl was supposed to enter it, she bound a handkerchief by a peculiar knot over her head, and made it a point of honor not to change a single garment till the day of her baptism, so that she was sure of being in physical readiness for the cleansing rite, whatever her spiritual mood might be. More than once, in noticing a damsel thus mystically kerchiefed, I have asked some dusky attendant its meaning, and have received the unfailing answer,—framed with their usual indifference to the genders of pronouns—"He in de lonesome valley, sa."

"De valley" and "de lonesome valley" were common terms in their religious experience. Going into that area meant the same thing as the "anxious seat" at the camp meeting. When a young girl was about to enter it, she would tie a handkerchief in a special knot over her head and made it a point to not change a single piece of clothing until her baptism day, ensuring she was physically prepared for the cleansing ritual, regardless of her spiritual state. More than once, while noticing a girl with that mystical kerchief, I've asked a local attendant what it meant, and I always got the same answer—expressed with their usual indifference to pronoun genders—"He in de lonesome valley, sa."

The next gives the same dramatic conflict, while its detached and impersonal refrain gives it strikingly the character of the Scotch and Scandinavian ballads.

The next one presents the same dramatic conflict, while its detached and impersonal refrain distinctly gives it the character of Scottish and Scandinavian ballads.

XIII. CRY HOLY.

XIII. PRAISE HOLY.

  "Cry holy, holy!
    Look at de people dat is born of God.
  And I run down de valley, and I run down to pray,
    Says, look at de people dat is born of God.
  When I get dar, Cappen Satan was dar,
    Says, look at, &c.
  Says, young man, young man, dere's no use for pray,
    Says, look at, &c.
  For Jesus is dead, and God gone away,
    Says, look at, &c.
  And I made him out a liar, and I went my way,
    Says, look at, &c.
      Sing holy, holy!

  "O, Mary was a woman, and he had a one Son,
    Says, look at, &c.
  And de Jews and de Romans had him hung,
    Says, look at, &c. Cry holy, holy!

  "And I tell you, sinner, you had better had pray,
    Says, look at, &c.
  For hell is a dark and dismal place,
    Says, look at, &c.

  And I tell you, sinner, and I wouldn't go dar!
    Says, look at, &c.
    Cry holy, holy!"
  "Shout holy, holy!  
    Look at the people who are born of God.  
  And I ran down the valley, and I went down to pray,  
    Saying, look at the people who are born of God.  
  When I got there, Captain Satan was there,  
    Saying, look at, &c.  
  He said, young man, young man, there’s no point in praying,  
    Saying, look at, &c.  
  For Jesus is dead, and God is gone,  
    Saying, look at, &c.  
  And I called him a liar, and I went on my way,  
    Saying, look at, &c.  
      Sing holy, holy!  

  "Oh, Mary was a woman, and she had one Son,  
    Saying, look at, &c.  
  And the Jews and the Romans had him hung,  
    Saying, look at, &c. Cry holy, holy!  

  "And I tell you, sinner, you’d better pray,  
    Saying, look at, &c.  
  For hell is a dark and miserable place,  
    Saying, look at, &c.  

  And I tell you, sinner, and I wouldn't go there!  
    Saying, look at, &c.  
    Cry holy, holy!"  

Here is an infinitely quaint description of the length of the heavenly road:—

Here is a wonderfully charming description of the length of the heavenly road:—

XIV. O'ER THE CROSSING.

XIV. Over the Crossing.

  "Vender's my old mudder,
    Been a-waggin' at de hill so long.
  It's about time she'll cross over;
    Get home bimeby.
  Keep prayin', I do believe
    We're a long time waggin' o'er de crossin'.
  Keep prayin', I do believe
    We'll get home to heaven bimeby.

  "Hear dat mournful thunder
    Roll from door to door,
  Calling home God's children;
    Get home bimeby.
  Little chil'en, I do believe
    We're a long time, &c.
  Little chil'en, I do believe
    We'll get home, &c.

  "See dat forked lightnin'
    Flash from tree to tree,
  Callin' home God's chil'en;
    Get home bimeby.
  True believer, I do believe
    We're a long time, &c.
  O brudders, I do believe,
    We'll get home to heaven bimeby."
  "Vender's my old mother,  
    Been hanging around the hill for so long.  
  It's about time she crosses over;  
    We'll get home eventually.  
  Keep praying, I really believe  
    We're spending a long time crossing over.  
  Keep praying, I really believe  
    We'll get home to heaven eventually.  
  
  "Hear that mournful thunder  
    Rolling from door to door,  
  Calling home God's children;  
    We'll get home eventually.  
  Little children, I really believe  
    We're spending a long time, etc.  
  Little children, I really believe  
    We'll get home, etc.  
  
  "See that forked lightning  
    Flashing from tree to tree,  
  Calling home God's children;  
    We'll get home eventually.  
  True believer, I really believe  
    We're spending a long time, etc.  
  Oh brothers, I really believe,  
    We'll get home to heaven eventually."

One of the most singular pictures of future joys, and with fine flavor of hospitality about it, was this:—

One of the most unique visions of future happiness, infused with a warm sense of hospitality, was this:—

XV. WALK 'EM EASY.

XV. Take it easy.

  "O, walk 'em easy round de heaven,
  Walk 'em easy round de heaven,
  Walk 'em easy round de heaven,
    Dat all de people may join de band.
  Walk 'em easy round de heaven. (Thrice.)
    O, shout glory till 'em join dat band!"
  "Oh, walk them easily around heaven,  
  Walk them easily around heaven,  
  Walk them easily around heaven,  
    So that everyone can join the band.  
  Walk them easily around heaven. (Thrice.)  
    Oh, shout glory until they join that band!"

The chorus was usually the greater part of the song, and often came in paradoxically, thus:—

The chorus was typically the biggest part of the song and often appeared in a surprising way, like this:—

XVI. O YES, LORD.

XVI. Oh yes, Lord.

  "O, must I be like de foolish mans?
    O yes, Lord!
  Will build de house on de sandy hill.
    O yes, Lord!
  I'll build my house on Zion hill,
    O yes, Lord!
  No wind nor rain can blow me down,
    O yes, Lord!"
  "Oh, must I be like the foolish men?  
    Oh yes, Lord!  
  I will build the house on the sandy hill.  
    Oh yes, Lord!  
  I'll build my house on Zion hill,  
    Oh yes, Lord!  
  No wind or rain can blow me down,  
    Oh yes, Lord!"  

The next is very graceful and lyrical, and with more variety of rhythm than usual:—

The next part is very graceful and lyrical, with a greater variety of rhythm than usual:—

XVII. BOW LOW, MARY.

Bow low, Mary.

  "Bow low, Mary, bow low, Martha,
    For Jesus come and lock de door,
    And carry de keys away.
  Sail, sail, over yonder,
  And view de promised land.
    For Jesus come, &c.
  Weep, O Mary, bow low, Martha,
    For Jesus come, &c.
  Sail, sail, my true believer;
  Sail, sail, over yonder;
  Mary, bow low, Martha, bow low,
    For Jesus come and lock de door
    And carry de keys away."
  "Bow low, Mary, bow low, Martha,  
    For Jesus has come and locked the door,  
    And taken the keys away.  
  Sail, sail, over there,  
  And see the promised land.  
    For Jesus has come, etc.  
  Weep, O Mary, bow low, Martha,  
    For Jesus has come, etc.  
  Sail, sail, my true believer;  
  Sail, sail, over there;  
  Mary, bow low, Martha, bow low,  
    For Jesus has come and locked the door  
    And taken the keys away."  

But of all the "spirituals" that which surprised me the most, I think,—perhaps because it was that in which external nature furnished the images most directly,—was this. With all my experience of their ideal ways of speech, I was startled when first I came on such a flower of poetry in that dark soil.

But out of all the "spirituals," the one that surprised me the most, I think—maybe because it used images from nature so directly—was this one. Despite my experience with their ideal ways of speaking, I was taken aback when I first encountered such a poetic flower in that dark soil.

XVIII. I KNOW MOON-RISE.

18. I know moonrise.

  "I know moon-rise, I know star-rise,
    Lay dis body down.
  I walk in de moonlight, I walk in de starlight,
    To lay dis body down.
  I'll walk in de graveyard, I'll walk through de graveyard,
    To lay dis body down.
  I'll lie in de grave and stretch out my arms;
    Lay dis body down.
  I go to de judgment in de evenin' of de day,
    When I lay dis body down;
  And my soul and your soul will meet in de day
    When I lay dis body down."
"I know when the moon rises, I know when the stars rise,  
    To put this body down.  
  I walk in the moonlight, I walk in the starlight,  
    To put this body down.  
  I'll walk in the graveyard, I'll walk through the graveyard,  
    To put this body down.  
  I'll lie in the grave and stretch out my arms;  
    To put this body down.  
  I go to judgment in the evening of the day,  
    When I put this body down;  
  And my soul and your soul will meet in the daylight  
    When I put this body down."  

"I'll lie in de grave and stretch out my arms." Never, it seems to me, since man first lived and suffered, was his infinite longing for peace uttered more plaintively than in that line.

"I'll lie in the grave and stretch out my arms." Never, it seems to me, since humans first lived and suffered, was their infinite longing for peace expressed more heartfully than in that line.

The next is one of the wildest and most striking of the whole series: there is a mystical effect and a passionate striving throughout the whole. The Scriptural struggle between Jacob and the angel, which is only dimly expressed in the words, seems all uttered in the music. I think it impressed my imagination more powerfully than any other of these songs.

The next one is one of the wildest and most impressive of the whole series: there’s a mystical quality and an intense passion throughout. The biblical struggle between Jacob and the angel, which is only vaguely conveyed in words, seems to be fully expressed in the music. I think it left a stronger impression on my imagination than any of the other songs.

XIX. WRESTLING JACOB.

Wrestling Jacob.

  "O wrestlin' Jacob, Jacob, day's a-breakin';
    I will not let thee go!
  O wrestlin' Jacob, Jacob, day's a-breakin';
    He will not let me go!
  O, I hold my brudder wid a tremblin' hand
    I would not let him go!
  I hold my sister wid a tremblin' hand;
    I would not let her go!

  "O, Jacob do hang from a tremblin' limb,
    He would not let him go!
  O, Jacob do hang from a tremblin' limb;
    De Lord will bless my soul.
  O wrestlin' Jacob, Jacob," &c.
  "Oh wrestling Jacob, Jacob, day is breaking;  
    I won’t let you go!  
  Oh wrestling Jacob, Jacob, day is breaking;  
    He won’t let me go!  
  Oh, I hold my brother with a trembling hand  
    I would not let him go!  
  I hold my sister with a trembling hand;  
    I would not let her go!  
  
  "Oh, Jacob does hang from a trembling limb,  
    He wouldn’t let him go!  
  Oh, Jacob does hang from a trembling limb;  
    The Lord will bless my soul.  
  Oh wrestling Jacob, Jacob," &c.

Of "occasional hymns," properly so called, I noticed but one, a funeral hymn for an infant, which is sung plaintively over and over, without variety of words.

Of "occasional hymns," properly speaking, I noticed only one, a funeral hymn for an infant, which is sung sorrowfully over and over, without any variation in the words.

XX. THE BABY GONE HOME.

XX. THE BABY HAS GONE HOME.

  "De little baby gone home,
  De little baby gone home,
  De little baby gone along,
    For to climb up Jacob's ladder.
  And I wish I'd been dar,
  I wish I'd been dar,
  I wish I'd been dar, my Lord,
    For to climb up Jacob's ladder."
"Little baby has gone home,  
Little baby has gone home,  
Little baby has gone along,  
To climb up Jacob's ladder.  
And I wish I had been there,  
I wish I had been there,  
I wish I had been there, my Lord,  
To climb up Jacob's ladder."

Still simpler is this, which is yet quite sweet and touching.

Still simpler is this, which is still quite sweet and touching.

XXI. JESUS WITH US.

21. JESUS WITH US.

  "He have been wid us, Jesus
    He still wid us, Jesus,
  He will be wid us, Jesus,
    Be wid us to the end."
  "He has been with us, Jesus  
    He is still with us, Jesus,  
  He will be with us, Jesus,  
    Be with us to the end."

The next seemed to be a favorite about Christmas time, when meditations on "de rollin' year" were frequent among them.

The next seemed to be a favorite around Christmas time, when reflections on the "past year" were common among them.

XXII. LORD, REMEMBER ME.

XXII. Lord, remember me.

  "O do, Lord, remember me!
    O do, Lord, remember me!
  O, do remember me, until de year roll round!
    Do, Lord, remember me!

  "If you want to die like Jesus died,
    Lay in de grave,
  You would fold your arms and close your eyes
    And die wid a free good will.

  "For Death is a simple ting,
    And he go from door to door,
  And he knock down some, and he cripple op some,
    And he leave some here to pray.

  "O do, Lord remember me!
    O do, Lord, remember me!
  My old fader's gone till de year roll round;
    Do, Lord, remember me!"
  "Oh Lord, please remember me!  
    Oh Lord, please remember me!  
  Oh, remember me until the year comes around!  
    Please, Lord, remember me!  

  "If you want to die like Jesus died,  
    Just lie in the grave,  
  You would fold your arms and close your eyes  
    And die with a willing heart.  

  "For death is a simple thing,  
    And he goes from door to door,  
  Knocking some down, crippling others,  
    And leaving some here to pray.  

  "Oh Lord, please remember me!  
    Oh Lord, please remember me!  
  My old father is gone until the year comes around;  
    Please, Lord, remember me!"

The next was sung in such an operatic and rollicking way that it was quite hard to fancy it a religious performance, which, however, it was. I heard it but once.

The next one was sung in such a dramatic and fun way that it was really hard to imagine it as a religious performance, but that’s exactly what it was. I only heard it once.

XXIH. EARLY IN THE MORNING.

XXIH. EARLY MORNING.

  "I meet little Rosa early in de mornin',
    O Jerusalem! early in de mornin';
  And I ax her, How you do, my darter?
    O Jerusalem! early in de mornin'.

  "I meet my mudder early in de mornin',
    O Jerusalem! &c.
  And I ax her, How you do, my mudder?
    O Jerusalem! &c.

  "I meet Brudder Robert early in de mornin',
    O Jerusalem! &c.
  And I ax him, How you do, my sonny?
    O Jerusalem! &c.

  "I meet Tittawisa early in de mornin',
    O Jerusalem! &c.
  And I ax her, How you do, my darter?
    O Jerusalem!" &c.
"I meet little Rosa early in the morning,  
    O Jerusalem! early in the morning;  
  And I ask her, How are you, my daughter?  
    O Jerusalem! early in the morning.  

  "I meet my mother early in the morning,  
    O Jerusalem! &c.  
  And I ask her, How are you, my mother?  
    O Jerusalem! &c.  

  "I meet Brother Robert early in the morning,  
    O Jerusalem! &c.  
  And I ask him, How are you, my son?  
    O Jerusalem! &c.  

  "I meet Tittawisa early in the morning,  
    O Jerusalem! &c.  
  And I ask her, How are you, my daughter?  
    O Jerusalem!" &c.  

"Tittawisa" means "Sister Louisa." In songs of this class the name of every person present successively appears.

"Tittawisa" means "Sister Louisa." In songs of this type, the name of each person present is mentioned one after another.

Their best marching song, and one which was invaluable to lift their feet along, as they expressed it, was the following. There was a kind of spring and lilt to it, quite indescribable by words.

Their best marching song, which was essential for keeping their feet moving, as they put it, was the following. It had a kind of spring and energy to it that’s hard to describe in words.

XXIV. GO IN THE WILDERNESS.

24. GO INTO THE WILDERNESS.

  "Jesus call you. Go in de wilderness,
    Go in de wilderness, go in de wilderness,
  Jesus call you. Go in de wilderness
    To wait upon de Lord.
  Go wait upon de Lord,
  Go wait upon de Lord,
  Go wait upon de Lord, my God,
    He take away de sins of de world.

  "Jesus a-waitin'. Go in de wilderness,
    Go, &c.
  All dem chil'en go in de wilderness
    To wait upon de Lord."
"Jesus is calling you. Go into the wilderness,  
    Go into the wilderness, go into the wilderness,  
  Jesus is calling you. Go into the wilderness  
    To wait upon the Lord.  
  Go wait upon the Lord,  
  Go wait upon the Lord,  
  Go wait upon the Lord, my God,  
    He takes away the sins of the world.  

  "Jesus is waiting. Go into the wilderness,  
    Go, &c.  
  All the children go into the wilderness  
    To wait upon the Lord."

The next was one of those which I had heard in boyish days, brought North from Charleston. But the chorus alone was identical; the words were mainly different, and those here given are quaint enough.

The next one was one I had heard in my younger days, brought up from Charleston. But the chorus was the same; the words were mostly different, and the ones given here are pretty unique.

XXV. BLOW YOUR TRUMPET, GABRIEL.

25. Sound the trumpet, Gabriel.

  "O, blow your trumpet, Gabriel,
    Blow your trumpet louder;
  And I want dat trumpet to blow me home
    To my new Jerusalem.

  "De prettiest ting dat ever I done
  Was to serve de Lord when I was young.
    So blow your trumpet, Gabriel, &c.

  "O, Satan is a liar, and he conjure too,
  And if you don't mind, he'll conjure you.
    So blow your trumpet, Gabriel, &c.

  "O, I was lost in de wilderness.
  King Jesus hand me de candle down.
    So blow your trumpet, Gabriel," &c.
  "Oh, blow your trumpet, Gabriel,  
    Blow your trumpet louder;  
  And I want that trumpet to take me home  
    To my new Jerusalem.  
  
  "The best thing I ever did  
  Was serve the Lord when I was young.  
    So blow your trumpet, Gabriel, etc.  
  
  "Oh, Satan is a liar, and he conjures too,  
  And if you’re not careful, he’ll trick you.  
    So blow your trumpet, Gabriel, etc.  
  
  "Oh, I was lost in the wilderness.  
  King Jesus handed me the candle.  
    So blow your trumpet, Gabriel," etc.  

The following contains one of those odd transformations of proper names with which their Scriptural citations were often enriched. It rivals their text, "Paul may plant, and may polish wid water," which I have elsewhere quoted, and in which the sainted Apollos would hardly have recognized himself.

The following contains one of those strange changes of proper names that often accompanied their Biblical references. It’s comparable to their text, "Paul may plant, and may water," which I've mentioned before, and in which the revered Apollos would scarcely have recognized himself.

XXVI. IN THE MORNING.

XXVI. IN THE MORNING.

  "In de mornin',
  In de mornin',
  Chil'en? Yes, my Lord!
    Don't you hear de trumpet sound?
  If I had a-died when I was young,
  I never would had de race for run.
    Don't you hear de trumpet sound?

  "O Sam and Peter was fishin' in de sea,
  And dey drop de net and follow my Lord.
    Don't you hear de trumpet sound?

  "Dere's a silver spade for to dig my grave
  And a golden chain for to let me down.
  Don't you hear de trumpet sound?
  In de mornin', In de mornin',
  Chil'en? Yes, my Lord!
    Don't you hear de trumpet sound?"
"In the morning,  
In the morning,  
Children? Yes, my Lord!  
  Don’t you hear the trumpet sound?  
If I had died when I was young,  
I never would have had the race to run.  
  Don’t you hear the trumpet sound?  

"O Sam and Peter were fishing in the sea,  
And they dropped the net and followed my Lord.  
  Don’t you hear the trumpet sound?  

"There’s a silver spade to dig my grave  
And a golden chain to let me down.  
Don’t you hear the trumpet sound?  
In the morning, In the morning,  
Children? Yes, my Lord!  
  Don’t you hear the trumpet sound?"

These golden and silver fancies remind one of the King of Spain's daughter in "Mother Goose," and the golden apple, and the silver pear, which are doubtless themselves but the vestiges of some simple early composition like this. The next has a humbler and more domestic style of fancy.

These golden and silver dreams remind you of the King of Spain's daughter in "Mother Goose," and the golden apple and the silver pear, which are probably just remnants of some simple early story like this. The next one has a more humble and homey style of imagination.

XXVII. FARE YE WELL.

XXVII. FAREWELL.

  "My true believers, fare ye well,
  Fare ye well, fare ye well,
  Fare ye well, by de grace of God,
    For I'm going home.

  Massa Jesus give me a little broom
  For to sweep my heart clean,
  And I will try, by de grace of God,
    To win my way home."
"My true believers, take care,
Take care, take care,
Take care, by the grace of God,
For I'm going home.

Master Jesus, give me a little broom
To sweep my heart clean,
And I will try, by the grace of God,
To find my way home."

Among the songs not available for marching, but requiring the concentrated enthusiasm of the camp, was "The Ship of Zion," of which they had three wholly distinct versions, all quite exuberant and tumultuous.

Among the songs not suitable for marching, but needing the focused energy of the camp, was "The Ship of Zion," which had three completely different versions, all very lively and intense.

XXVIII. THE SHIP OF ZION.

28. THE SHIP OF ZION.

  "Come along, come along,
    And let us go home,
  O, glory, hallelujah?
  Dis de ole ship o' Zion,
    Halleloo! Halleloo!
  Dis de ole ship o' Zion,
    Hallelujah!

  "She has landed many a tousand,
  She can land as many more.
    O, glory, hallelujah! &c.

  "Do you tink she will be able
  For to take us all home?
    O, glory, hallelujah! &c.

  "You can tell 'em I'm a comin',
    Halleloo! Halleloo!
  You can tell 'em I'm a comin',
    Hallelujah!
  Come along, come along," &c.
"Come on, come on,  
And let’s go home,  
Oh, glory, hallelujah?  
This is the old ship of Zion,  
Hallelujah! Hallelujah!  
This is the old ship of Zion,  
Hallelujah!  

"She's brought many thousands,  
She can bring many more.  
Oh, glory, hallelujah! &c.  

"Do you think she’ll be able  
To take us all home?  
Oh, glory, hallelujah! &c.  

"You can tell them I'm coming,  
Hallelujah! Hallelujah!  
You can tell them I'm coming,  
Hallelujah!  
Come on, come on," &c."

XXIX. THE SHIP OF ZION. (Second version.)

XXIX. THE SHIP OF ZION. (Second version.)

  "Dis de good ole ship o' Zion,
  Dis de good ole ship o' Zion,
  Dis de good ole ship o' Zion,
    And she's makin' for de Promise Land.
  She hab angels for de sailors, (Thrice.)
    And she's, &c.
  And how you know dey's angels? (Thrice.)
    And she's, &c.
  Good Lord, Shall I be one? (Thrice.)
    And she's, &c.

  "Dat ship is out a-sailin', sailin', sailin',
    And she's, &c.
  She's a-sailin' mighty steady, steady, steady,
    And she's, &c.
  She'll neither reel nor totter, totter, totter,
    And she's, &c.
  She's a-sailin' away cold Jordan, Jordan, Jordan,
    And she's, &c.
  King Jesus is de captain, captain, captain,
    And she's makin' for de Promise Land."
  "This is the good old ship of Zion,  
  This is the good old ship of Zion,  
  This is the good old ship of Zion,  
    And she's making for the Promised Land.  
  She has angels for the sailors, (Thrice.)  
    And she's, &c.  
  And how do you know they’re angels? (Thrice.)  
    And she's, &c.  
  Good Lord, will I be one? (Thrice.)  
    And she's, &c.  

  "That ship is out sailing, sailing, sailing,  
    And she's, &c.  
  She's sailing mighty steady, steady, steady,  
    And she's, &c.  
  She'll neither sway nor stagger, stagger, stagger,  
    And she's, &c.  
  She's sailing away from cold Jordan, Jordan, Jordan,  
    And she's, &c.  
  King Jesus is the captain, captain, captain,  
    And she's making for the Promised Land."

XXX. THE SHIP OF ZION. (Third version.)

XXX. THE SHIP OF ZION. (Third version.)

  "De Gospel ship is sailin',
    Hosann—sann.
  O, Jesus is de captain,
    Hosann—sann.
  De angels are de sailors,
    Hosann—sann.
  O, is your bundle ready?
    Hosann—sann.
  O, have you got your ticket?
    Hosann—sann."
  "The Gospel ship is sailing,
    Hosanna—sanna.
  Oh, Jesus is the captain,
    Hosanna—sanna.
  The angels are the sailors,
    Hosanna—sanna.
  Oh, is your bundle ready?
    Hosanna—sanna.
  Oh, do you have your ticket?
    Hosanna—sanna."

This abbreviated chorus is given with unspeakable unction.

This shortened chorus is delivered with incredible emotion.

The three just given are modifications of an old camp-meeting melody; and the same may be true of the three following, although I cannot find them in the Methodist hymn-books. Each, however, has its characteristic modifications, which make it well worth giving. In the second verse of this next, for instance, "Saviour" evidently has become "soldier."

The three mentioned are variations of an old camp-meeting song; the same might apply to the next three, even though I can't find them in the Methodist hymnals. Each one has its unique changes that make it worth sharing. In the second verse of the next one, for example, "Saviour" has clearly turned into "soldier."

XXXI. SWEET MUSIC

31. Sweet Music

  "Sweet music in heaven,
    Just beginning for to roll.
  Don't you love God?
    Glory, hallelujah!

  "Yes, late I heard my soldier say,
    Come, heavy soul, I am de way.
  Don't you love God?
    Glory, hallelujah!

  "I'll go and tell to sinners round
    What a kind Saviour I have found.
  Don't you love God?
    Glory, hallelujah!

  "My grief my burden long has been,
    Because I was not cease from sin.
  Don't you love God?
    Glory, hallelujahl"
  "Sweet music in heaven,  
    Just starting to play.  
  Don't you love God?  
    Glory, hallelujah!  
  
  "Yes, I recently heard my soldier say,  
    Come, heavy soul, I am the way.  
  Don't you love God?  
    Glory, hallelujah!  
  
  "I'll go and tell sinners around  
    What a loving Savior I have found.  
  Don't you love God?  
    Glory, hallelujah!  
  
  "My grief has been my long-standing burden,  
    Because I couldn't stop my sin.  
  Don't you love God?  
    Glory, hallelujah!"  

XXXII. GOOD NEWS.

32. Good News.

  "O, good news! O, good news!
  De angels brought de tidings down,
    Just comin' from de trone.

  "As grief from out my soul shall fly,
    Just comin' from de trone;
  I'll shout salvation when I die,
    Good news, O, good news!
    Just comin' from de trone.

  "Lord, I want to go to heaven when I die,
    Good news, O, good news! &c.

  "De white folks call us a noisy crew,
    Good news, O, good news!
  But dis I know, we are happy too,
    Just comin' from de trone."
  "Oh, good news! Oh, good news!
  The angels brought the message down,
    Just coming from the throne.

  "As grief from my soul will fly,
    Just coming from the throne;
  I'll shout salvation when I die,
    Good news, oh, good news!
    Just coming from the throne.

  "Lord, I want to go to heaven when I die,
    Good news, oh, good news! &c.

  "The white folks say we're a noisy group,
    Good news, oh, good news!
  But this I know, we are happy too,
    Just coming from the throne."

XXXIII. THE HEAVENLY ROAD.

33. THE HEAVENLY PATH.

  "You may talk of my name as much as you please,
    And carry my name abroad,
  But I really do believe I'm a child of God
    As I walk in de heavenly road.
  O, won't you go wid me? (Thrice.)
    For to keep our garments clean.

  "O Satan is a mighty busy ole man,
    And roll rocks in my way;
  But Jesus is my bosom friend,
    And roll 'em out of de way.
  O, won't you go wid me? (Thrice.)
    For to keep our garments clean.

  "Come, my brudder, if you never did pray,
    I hope you may pray to-night;
  For I really believe I'm a child of God
    As I walk in de heavenly road.
  O, won't you," &c.
"You can talk about my name as much as you want,  
And take my name everywhere,  
But I truly believe I'm a child of God  
As I walk on the heavenly path.  
Oh, won’t you walk with me? (Three times.)  
To keep our clothes clean.  

"Oh, Satan is a very busy old man,  
And throws obstacles in my way;  
But Jesus is my close friend,  
And clears them out of the way.  
Oh, won’t you walk with me? (Three times.)  
To keep our clothes clean.  

"Come, my brother, if you’ve never prayed,  
I hope you pray tonight;  
For I truly believe I'm a child of God  
As I walk on the heavenly path.  
Oh, won’t you," &c."

Some of the songs had played an historic part during the war. For singing the next, for instance, the negroes had been put in jail in Georgetown, S. C., at the outbreak of the Rebellion. "We'll soon be free" was too dangerous an assertion; and though the chant was an old one, it was no doubt sung with redoubled emphasis during the new events. "De Lord will call us home," was evidently thought to be a symbolical verse; for, as a little drummer-boy explained to me, showing all his white teeth as he sat in the moonlight by the door of my tent, "Dey tink de Lord mean for say de Yankees."

Some of the songs played a significant role during the war. For example, when singing the next one, the African Americans were jailed in Georgetown, S.C., at the start of the Rebellion. "We'll soon be free" was considered too risky to say; and although the chant was a traditional one, it was definitely sung with even more passion during those new events. "De Lord will call us home" was clearly seen as a symbolic line; because, as a little drummer-boy shared with me, grinning widely in the moonlight by my tent door, "They think de Lord means de Yankees."

XXXIV. WE'LL SOON BE FREE.

XXXIV. WE'LL BE FREE SOON.

  "We'll soon be free,
  We'll soon be free,
  We'll soon be free,
    When de Lord will call us home.
  My brudder, how long,
  My brudder, how long,
  My brudder, how long,
    'Fore we done sufferin' here?
  It won't be long (Thrice.)
    'Fore de Lord will call us home.
  We'll walk de miry road (Thrice.)
    Where pleasure never dies.
  We'll walk de golden street (Thrice.)
    Where pleasure never dies.
  My brudder, how long (Thrice.)
    'Fore we done sufferin' here?
  We'll soon be free (Thrice.)
    When Jesus sets me free.
  We'll fight for liberty (Thrice.)
    When de Lord will call us home."
  "We'll be free soon,  
  We'll be free soon,  
  We'll be free soon,  
    When the Lord calls us home.  
  My brother, how much longer,  
  My brother, how much longer,  
  My brother, how much longer,  
    Before we stop suffering here?  
  It won't be long (Thrice.)  
    Before the Lord calls us home.  
  We'll walk the muddy road (Thrice.)  
    Where joy never dies.  
  We'll walk the golden street (Thrice.)  
    Where joy never dies.  
  My brother, how much longer (Thrice.)  
    Before we stop suffering here?  
  We'll be free soon (Thrice.)  
    When Jesus sets me free.  
  We'll fight for freedom (Thrice.)  
    When the Lord calls us home."  

The suspicion in this case was unfounded, but they had another song to which the Rebellion had actually given rise. This was composed by nobody knew whom,—though it was the most recent, doubtless, of all these "spirituals,"—and had been sung in secret to avoid detection. It is certainly plaintive enough. The peck of corn and pint of salt were slavery's rations.

The suspicion in this case was baseless, but there was another song that the Rebellion had actually inspired. It was created by someone unknown—though it was probably the newest of all these "spirituals"—and had been sung in secret to avoid being found out. It’s definitely sad enough. The peck of corn and pint of salt were the rations of slavery.

XXXV. MANY THOUSAND GO.

XXXV. THOUSANDS GO.

  "No more peck o' corn for me,
    No more, no more,—
  No more peck o' corn for me,
    Many tousand go.

  "No more driver's lash for me, (Twice.)
    No more, &c.

  "No more pint o' salt for me, (Twice.)
    No more, &c.

  "No more hundred lash for me, (Twice.)
    No more, &c.

  "No more mistress' call for me,
    No more, no more,—
  No more mistress' call for me,
    Many tousand go."
  "No more corn for me,  
    No more, no more,—  
  No more corn for me,  
    Many thousands go.  
  
  "No more driver's whip for me, (Twice.)  
    No more, &c.  
  
  "No more salt for me, (Twice).  
    No more, &c.  
  
  "No more hundred lashes for me, (Twice).  
    No more, &c.  
  
  "No more calling from the mistress for me,  
    No more, no more,—  
  No more calling from the mistress for me,  
    Many thousands go."

Even of this last composition, however, we have only the approximate date and know nothing of the mode of composition. Allan Ramsay says of the Scotch songs, that, no matter who made them, they were soon attributed to the minister of the parish whence they sprang. And I always wondered, about these, whether they had always a conscious and definite origin in some leading mind, or whether they grew by gradual accretion, in an almost unconscious way. On this point I could get no information, though I asked many questions, until at last, one day when I was being rowed across from Beaufort to Ladies' Island, I found myself, with delight, on the actual trail of a song. One of the oarsmen, a brisk young fellow, not a soldier, on being asked for his theory of the matter, dropped out a coy confession. "Some good sperituals," he said, "are start jess out o' curiosity. I been a-raise a sing, myself, once."

Even with this last piece of work, we only have an approximate date and no idea about how it was created. Allan Ramsay mentions that with Scottish songs, regardless of who actually wrote them, people quickly credited them to the local minister from where they originated. I always wondered if these songs had a clear and intentional origin in a prominent figure's mind, or if they evolved more organically, almost without anyone noticing. I couldn't find any answers, despite my many questions, until one day while I was being rowed from Beaufort to Ladies' Island, I was thrilled to be on the actual trail of a song. One of the oarsmen, a lively young guy who wasn’t a soldier, shared his thoughts when I asked him about it and made a shy admission. "Some good spirituals," he said, "just start out of curiosity. I made up a song myself, once."

My dream was fulfilled, and I had traced out, not the poem alone, but the poet. I implored him to proceed.

My dream came true, and I had not only outlined the poem but also found the poet. I urged him to continue.

"Once we boys," he said, "went for tote some rice and de nigger-driver he keep a-callin' on us; and I say, 'O, de ole nigger-driver!' Den anudder said, 'Fust ting my mammy tole me was, notin' so bad as nigger-driver.' Den I made a sing, just puttin' a word, and den anudder word."

"Once we boys," he said, "went to get some rice, and the overseer kept calling us; and I said, 'Oh, the old overseer!' Then another one said, 'The first thing my mom told me was, there's nothing worse than an overseer.' Then I started to sing, just adding a word, and then another word."

Then he began singing, and the men, after listening a moment, joined in the chorus, as if it were an old acquaintance, though they evidently had never heard it before. I saw how easily a new "sing" took root among them.

Then he started singing, and the men, after listening for a moment, joined in the chorus, as if it was an old friend, even though they clearly had never heard it before. I noticed how quickly a new "sing" took hold among them.

XXXVI. THE DRIVER.

36. The Driver.

  "O, de ole nigger-driver!
    O, gwine away!
  Fust ting my mammy tell me,
    O, gwine away!
  Tell me 'bout de nigger-driver,
    O, gwine away!
  Nigger-driver second devil,
    O, gwine away!
  Best ting for do he driver,
    O, gwine away!
  Knock he down and spoil he labor,
    O, gwine away!"
"O, the old slave driver!  
    O, I'm going away!  
  First thing my mom told me,  
    O, I'm going away!  
  Told me about the slave driver,  
    O, I'm going away!  
  Slave driver is the second devil,  
    O, I'm going away!  
  Best thing to do to the driver,  
    O, I'm going away!  
  Knock him down and ruin his work,  
    O, I'm going away!"

It will be observed that, although this song is quite secular in its character, yet its author called it a "spiritual." I heard but two songs among them, at any time, to which they would not, perhaps, have given this generic name. One of these consisted simply in the endless repetition—after the manner of certain college songs—of the mysterious line,—

It’s noticeable that, even though this song is pretty secular, its author labeled it as “spiritual.” I only heard two songs among them that they probably wouldn’t have called by this general term. One of these was just the endless repetition—like some college songs—of the mysterious line,—

  "Rain fall and wet Becky Lawton."
"Rain fell and soaked Becky Lawton."

But who Becky Lawton was, and why she should or should not be wet, and whether the dryness was a reward or a penalty, none could say. I got the impression that, in either case, the event was posthumous, and that there was some tradition of grass not growing over the grave of a sinner; but even this was vague, and all else vaguer.

But who Becky Lawton was, and whether she should or shouldn't be wet, and if being dry was a reward or a punishment, no one could say. I got the feeling that, in either case, the situation was after her death, and that there was some belief about grass not growing over the grave of a wrongdoer; but even that was unclear, and everything else even more so.

The other song I heard but once, on a morning when a squad of men came in from picket duty, and chanted it in the most rousing way. It had been a stormy and comfortless night, and the picket station was very exposed. It still rained in the morning when I strolled to the edge of the camp, looking out for the men, and wondering how they had stood it. Presently they came striding along the road, at a great pace, with their shining rubber blankets worn as cloaks around them, the rain streaming from these and from their equally shining faces, which were almost all upon the broad grin, as they pealed out this remarkable ditty:—

The other song I only heard once, on a morning when a group of guys came back from picket duty, singing it in the most energetic way. It had been a rough and uncomfortable night, and the picket station was very exposed. It was still raining in the morning when I walked to the edge of the camp, looking out for the men and wondering how they had managed. Soon enough, they came striding down the road at a fast pace, with their shiny rubber blankets draped over them like cloaks, rain pouring off them and their equally shiny faces, which were mostly grinning widely, as they belted out this memorable tune:—

HANGMAN JOHNNY.

HANGMAN JOHNNY.

  "O, dey call me Hangman Johnny!
    O, ho! O, ho!
  But I never hang nobody,
    O, hang, boys, hang!
  O dey, call me Hangman Johnny!
    O, ho! O, ho!
  But we'll all hang togedder,
    O, hang, boys, hang!"
  "Oh, they call me Hangman Johnny!  
    Oh, yeah! Oh, yeah!  
  But I’ve never hanged anyone,  
    Oh, hang, boys, hang!  
  Oh, they call me Hangman Johnny!  
    Oh, yeah! Oh, yeah!  
  But we’ll all hang together,  
    Oh, hang, boys, hang!"

My presence apparently checked the performance of another verse, beginning, "De buckra 'list for money," apparently in reference to the controversy about the pay-question, then just beginning, and to the more mercenary aims they attributed to the white soldiers. But "Hangman Johnny" remained always a myth as inscrutable as "Becky Lawton."

My presence seemingly interrupted the flow of another verse, which started with, "The white man lists for money," apparently referring to the ongoing debate about pay, which was just starting, and to the more greedy motives they assigned to the white soldiers. But "Hangman Johnny" always stayed a mystery, just as mysterious as "Becky Lawton."

As they learned all their songs by ear, they often strayed into wholly new versions, which sometimes became popular, and entirely banished the others. This was amusingly the case, for instance, with one phrase in the popular camp-song of "Marching Along," which was entirely new to them until our quartermaster taught it to them, at my request. The words, "Gird on the armor," were to them a stumbling-block, and no wonder, until some ingenious ear substituted, "Guide on de army," which was at once accepted, and became universal.

As they learned all their songs by ear, they often created entirely new versions, which sometimes became popular and completely replaced the originals. This was humorously demonstrated with one phrase in the popular camp song "Marching Along," which was completely new to them until our quartermaster taught it to them at my request. The words "Gird on the armor" were a challenge for them, and it's no surprise, until someone cleverly replaced it with "Guide on de army," which was immediately embraced and became widely accepted.

  "We'll guide on de army, and be marching along"
"We'll lead the army and be marching together."

is now the established version on the Sea Islands.

is now the accepted version on the Sea Islands.

These quaint religious songs were to the men more than a source of relaxation; they were a stimulus to courage and a tie to heaven. I never overheard in camp a profane or vulgar song. With the trifling exceptions given, all had a religious motive, while the most secular melody could not have been more exciting. A few youths from Savannah, who were comparatively men of the world, had learned some of the "Ethiopian Minstrel" ditties, imported from the North. These took no hold upon the mass; and, on the other hand, they sang reluctantly, even on Sunday, the long and short metres of the hymn-books, always gladly yielding to the more potent excitement of their own "spirituals." By these they could sing themselves, as had their fathers before them, out of the contemplation of their own low estate, into the sublime scenery of the Apocalypse. I remember that this minor-keyed pathos used to seem to me almost too sad to dwell upon, while slavery seemed destined to last for generations; but now that their patience has had its perfect work, history cannot afford to lose this portion of its record. There is no parallel instance of an oppressed race thus sustained by the religious sentiment alone. These songs are but the vocal expression of the simplicity of their faith and the sublimity of their long resignation.

These heartfelt religious songs meant more to the men than just a way to unwind; they were a boost to their courage and a connection to the divine. I never heard a profane or vulgar song in camp. With a few minor exceptions, all the songs had a religious theme, and even the more secular tunes couldn't match the excitement they felt. A handful of young men from Savannah, who were more worldly, had picked up some of the "Ethiopian Minstrel" songs from the North. These songs didn't resonate with the majority, and they sang the traditional hymns reluctantly, even on Sundays, always preferring the powerful energy of their own "spirituals." Through these, they could sing themselves, just like their fathers before them, from the struggles of their lives into the uplifting visions of the Apocalypse. I remember that the deep emotion in these songs often felt too sorrowful to think about, especially with slavery seeming like it would last for generations; but now that their perseverance has come to fruition, history cannot overlook this chapter. There’s no other example of an oppressed group being upheld solely by their religious faith. These songs are a true reflection of their simple faith and the profound strength of their long suffering.





Chapter 10 Life at Camp Shaw

The Edisto expedition cost me the health and strength of several years. I could say, long after, in the words of one of the men, "I'se been a sickly person, eber since de expeditious." Justice to a strong constitution and good habits compels me, however, to say that, up to the time of my injury, I was almost the only officer in the regiment who had not once been off duty from illness. But at last I had to yield, and went North for a month.

The Edisto expedition took away my health and strength for several years. I could say, long after, in the words of one of the men, "I've been sickly ever since the expedition." However, to be fair to my strong constitution and good habits, I must say that, up until my injury, I was almost the only officer in the regiment who hadn’t missed a single day of duty due to illness. But eventually, I had to give in and went North for a month.

We heard much said, during the war, of wounded officers who stayed unreasonably long at home. I think there were more instances of those who went back too soon. Such at least was my case. On returning to the regiment I found a great accumulation of unfinished business; every member of the field and staff was prostrated by illness or absent on detailed service; two companies had been sent to Hilton Head on fatigue duty, and kept there unexpectedly long: and there was a visible demoralization among the rest, especially from the fact that their pay had just been cut down, in violation of the express pledges of the government. A few weeks of steady sway made all right again; and during those weeks I felt a perfect exhilaration of health, followed by a month or two of complete prostration, when the work was done. This passing, I returned to duty, buoyed up by the fallacious hope that the winter months would set me right again.

We heard a lot during the war about wounded officers who stayed home for too long. I believe there were more cases of those who returned too quickly. That was definitely my situation. When I got back to the regiment, I found a huge backlog of unfinished tasks; everyone on the field and staff was either sick or away on duty. Two companies had been sent to Hilton Head for fatigue duty and had been there longer than expected. Additionally, there was a noticeable demoralization among the remaining soldiers, especially since their pay had just been cut, which went against the government’s promises. A few weeks of steady leadership fixed everything; during that time, I felt completely healthy, followed by a month or two of total exhaustion once the work was finished. After that period, I returned to duty, lifted by the false hope that the winter months would make everything better again.

We had a new camp on Port Royal Island, very pleasantly situated, just out of Beaufort. It stretched nearly to the edge of a shelving bluff, fringed with pines and overlooking the river; below the bluff was a hard, narrow beach, where one might gallop a mile and bathe at the farther end. We could look up and down the curving stream, and watch the few vessels that came and went. Our first encampment had been lower down that same river, and we felt at home.

We had a new camp on Port Royal Island, which was very nicely located just outside Beaufort. It stretched nearly to the edge of a sloping cliff lined with pines, overlooking the river; below the cliff was a hard, narrow beach where one could gallop for a mile and swim at the far end. We could see up and down the winding river and watch the few boats that came and went. Our first camp had been further down that same river, so we felt right at home.

The new camp was named Camp Shaw, in honor of the noble young officer who had lately fallen at Fort Wagner, under circumstances which had endeared him to all the men. As it happened, they had never seen him, nor was my regiment ever placed within immediate reach of the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts. This I always regretted, feeling very desirous to compare the military qualities of the Northern and Southern blacks. As it was, the Southern regiments with which the Massachusetts troops were brigaded were hardly a fair specimen of their kind, having been raised chiefly by drafting, and, for this and other causes, being afflicted with perpetual discontent and desertion.

The new camp was called Camp Shaw, in honor of the brave young officer who had recently died at Fort Wagner, under circumstances that made him beloved by all the men. As it turned out, they had never met him, nor was my regiment ever close to the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts. I always regretted this, as I really wanted to compare the military skills of the Northern and Southern Black soldiers. At the time, the Southern regiments that the Massachusetts troops were grouped with were not a fair representation of their kind, as they were mainly formed through drafting and, for this and other reasons, struggled with ongoing discontent and desertion.

We had, of course, looked forward with great interest to the arrival of these new colored regiments, and I had ridden in from the picket-station to see the Fifty-Fourth. Apart from the peculiarity of its material, it was fresh from my own State, and I had relatives and acquaintances among its officers. Governor Andrew, who had formed it, was an old friend, and had begged me, on departure from Massachusetts, to keep him informed as to our experiment I had good reason to believe that my reports had helped to prepare the way for this new battalion, and I had sent him, at his request, some hints as to its formation.*

We had definitely been eagerly anticipating the arrival of these new colored regiments, and I had ridden in from the picket station to see the Fifty-Fourth. Besides being unique in its composition, it was from my own State, and I had family and friends among its officers. Governor Andrew, who established it, was an old friend and had asked me, before leaving Massachusetts, to keep him updated on our experiment. I was confident that my reports had contributed to the groundwork for this new battalion, and I had sent him some suggestions for its formation at his request.*

*COMMONWEALTH OF MASSACHUSETTS, Executive Department,

COMMONWEALTH OF MASSACHUSETTS, Executive Branch,

Boston, February 5, 1863.

Boston, February 5, 1863.

To COL. T. W. HIGGINSON, Commanding 1st Regt. S. C. Vols.,

To COL. T. W. HIGGINSON, Commanding 1st Regt. S. C. Vols.,

Port Royal Id., S. C.

Port Royal, SC

COLONEL,—I am under obligations to you for your very interesting letter of January 19th, which I considered to be too important in its testimony to the efficiency of colored troops to be allowed to remain hidden on my files. I therefore placed some portions of it in the hands of Hon. Stephen M. Weld, of Jamaica Plain, for publication, and you will find enclosed the newspaper slip from the "Journal" of February 3d, in which it appeared. During a recent visit at Washington I have obtained permission from the Department of War to enlist colored troops as part of the Massachusetts quota, and I am about to begin to organize a colored infantry regiment, to be numbered the "54th Massachusetts Volunteers."

COLONEL, — I want to thank you for your very interesting letter from January 19th. I found it too important, regarding the effectiveness of colored troops, to keep it hidden in my files. So, I shared some parts of it with Hon. Stephen M. Weld from Jamaica Plain for publication, and you'll find the newspaper clipping from the "Journal" dated February 3rd included. During a recent trip to Washington, I got permission from the Department of War to enlist colored troops as part of Massachusetts' quota, and I'm about to start organizing a colored infantry regiment, which will be called the "54th Massachusetts Volunteers."

I shall be greatly obliged by any suggestions which your experience may afford concerning it, and I am determined that it shall serve as a model, in the high character of its officers and the thorough discipline of its men, for all subsequent corps of the like material.

I would really appreciate any suggestions your experience can provide about it, and I'm committed to making it a model for all future corps of similar nature, in terms of the quality of its officers and the complete discipline of its members.

Please present to General Saxton the assurances of my respectful regard.

Please convey to General Saxton my sincere respect.

I have the honor to be, respectfully and obediently yours,

I am respectfully and obediently yours,

JOHN A. ANDREW, Governor of Massachusetts.

JOHN A. ANDREW, Governor of Massachusetts.

In the streets of Beaufort I had met Colonel Shaw, riding with his lieutenant-colonel and successor, Edward Hallowell, and had gone back with them to share their first meal in camp. I should have known Shaw anywhere by his resemblance to his kindred, nor did it take long to perceive that he shared their habitual truthfulness and courage. Moreover, he and Hallowell had already got beyond the commonplaces of inexperience, in regard to colored troops, and, for a wonder, asked only sensible questions. For instance, he admitted the mere matter of courage to be settled, as regarded the colored troops, and his whole solicitude bore on this point, Would they do as well in line-of-battle as they had already done in more irregular service, and on picket and guard duty? Of this I had, of course, no doubt, nor, I think, had he; though I remember his saying something about the possibility of putting them between two fires in case of need, and so cutting off their retreat. I should never have thought of such a project, but I could not have expected bun to trust them as I did, until he had been actually under fire with them. That, doubtless, removed all his anxieties, if he really had any.

In the streets of Beaufort, I met Colonel Shaw, riding with his lieutenant colonel and successor, Edward Hallowell, and I joined them for their first meal in camp. I would have recognized Shaw anywhere by his resemblance to his family, and it didn't take long to see that he shared their usual honesty and bravery. Plus, he and Hallowell had moved past the typical inexperience regarding colored troops and, surprisingly, only asked sensible questions. For example, he accepted that the issue of courage regarding colored troops was settled, and his primary concern was whether they would perform as well in battle as they had in more irregular roles, like on picket and guard duty. I had no doubts about this, and I don't think he did either, although I remember him mentioning the possibility of placing them between two fires if necessary, effectively cutting off their retreat. I would never have thought of such a strategy, but I couldn’t have expected him to trust them as I did until he had faced fire with them. That, surely, eased all his worries, if he actually had any.

This interview had occurred on the 4th of June. Shaw and his regiment had very soon been ordered to Georgia, then to Morris Island; Fort Wagner had been assaulted, and he had been killed. Most of the men knew about the circumstances of his death, and many of them had subscribed towards a monument for him,—a project which originated with General Saxton, and which was finally embodied in the "Shaw School-house" at Charleston. So it gave us all pleasure to name this camp for him, as its predecessor had been named for General Saxton.

This interview took place on June 4th. Shaw and his regiment were quickly sent to Georgia, then to Morris Island; Fort Wagner was attacked, and he was killed. Most of the men were aware of how he died, and many contributed to a monument for him—a project started by General Saxton, which was eventually realized in the "Shaw School-house" in Charleston. So it brought us all joy to name this camp after him, just as the previous camp was named after General Saxton.

The new camp was soon brought into good order. The men had great ingenuity in building screens and shelters of light poles, filled in with the gray moss from the live-oaks. The officers had vestibules built in this way, before all their tents; the cooking-places were walled round in the same fashion; and some of the wide company-streets had sheltered sidewalks down the whole line of tents. The sergeant on duty at the entrance of the camp had a similar bower, and the architecture culminated in a "Praise-House" for school and prayer-meetings, some thirty feet in diameter. As for chimneys and flooring, they were provided with that magic and invisible facility which marks the second year of a regiment's life.

The new camp was soon set up nicely. The men were really clever in building screens and shelters using lightweight poles, packed with gray moss from the live oaks. The officers had vestibules made like this in front of their tents; the cooking areas were also enclosed in the same way, and some of the wide company streets had sheltered walkways along the entire line of tents. The sergeant on duty at the camp entrance had a similar structure, and everything came together with a "Praise-House" for school and prayer meetings, about thirty feet across. As for chimneys and flooring, they had that magical and seamless touch that comes with the second year of a regiment’s existence.

That officer is happy who, besides a constitutional love of adventure, has also a love for the details of camp life, and likes to bring them to perfection. Nothing but a hen with her chickens about her can symbolize the content I felt on getting my scattered companies together, after some temporary separation on picket or fatigue duty. Then we went to work upon the nest. The only way to keep a camp in order is to set about everything as if you expected to stay there forever; if you stay, you get the comfort of it; if ordered away in twenty-four hours, you forget all wasted labor in the excitement of departure. Thus viewed, a camp is a sort of model farm or bit of landscape gardening; there is always some small improvement to be made, a trench, a well, more shade against the sun, an increased vigilance in sweeping. Then it is pleasant to take care of the men, to see them happy, to hear them purr.

That officer is fortunate who, in addition to a natural love for adventure, also enjoys the details of camp life and strives to perfect them. Nothing symbolizes the satisfaction I felt when I gathered my scattered companies back together, after a brief separation on picket or fatigue duty, quite like a hen with her chicks. Then we got to work on our camp setup. The best way to keep a camp organized is to approach everything as if you plan to stay there forever; if you do stay, you enjoy the comfort of it; if you get ordered away in twenty-four hours, you forget all the effort you put in because of the excitement of leaving. When viewed this way, a camp is like a model farm or a piece of landscape gardening; there is always some small improvement to be made, whether it’s a trench, a well, adding more shade from the sun, or being more vigilant in cleaning up. It’s also rewarding to take care of the men, to see them happy, and to hear them content.

Then the duties of inspection and drill, suspended during active service, resume their importance with a month or two of quiet. It really costs unceasing labor to keep a regiment in perfect condition and ready for service. The work is made up of minute and endless details, like a bird's pruning her feathers or a cat's licking her kittens into their proper toilet. Here are eight hundred men, every one of whom, every Sunday morning at farthest, must be perfectly soigne in all personal proprieties; he must exhibit himself provided with every article of clothing, buttons, shoe-strings, hooks and eyes, company letter, regimental number, rifle, bayonet, bayonet-scabbard, cap-pouch, cartridge-box, cartridge-box belt, cartridge-box belt-plate, gun-sling, canteen, haversack, knapsack, packed according to rule, forty cartridges, forty percussion caps; and every one of these articles polished to the highest brightness or blackness as the case may be, and moreover hung or slung or tied or carried in precisely the correct manner.

Then the duties of inspection and drill, which were paused during active service, become important again after a month or so of calm. It really takes constant effort to keep a regiment in top shape and ready for action. The work involves countless tiny details, like a bird preening its feathers or a cat grooming her kittens. Here are eight hundred men, each one of whom, by Sunday morning at the latest, must be perfectly soigne in all personal standards; he must show up equipped with every item of clothing, buttons, shoelaces, hooks and eyes, company letter, regimental number, rifle, bayonet, bayonet scabbard, cap pouch, cartridge box, cartridge box belt, cartridge box belt plate, gun sling, canteen, haversack, knapsack, packed according to regulations, forty cartridges, and forty percussion caps; and each of these items must be polished to the highest shine or blackness as appropriate, and also hung or slung or tied or carried in absolutely the correct way.

What a vast and formidable housekeeping is here, my patriotic sisters! Consider, too, that every corner of the camp is to be kept absolutely clean and ready for exhibition at the shortest notice; hospital, stables, guard-house, cook-houses, company tents, must all be brought to perfection, and every square inch of this "farm of four acres" must look as smooth as an English lawn, twice a day. All this, beside the discipline and the drill and the regimental and company books, which must keep rigid account of all these details; consider all this, and then wonder no more that officers and men rejoice in being ordered on active service, where a few strokes of the pen will dispose of all this multiplicity of trappings as "expended in action" or "lost in service."

What a huge and challenging task we have, my patriotic sisters! Also, think about how every corner of the camp needs to be kept completely clean and ready for display at a moment's notice; the hospital, stables, guard-house, cook-houses, and company tents all need to be perfect, and every square inch of this "farm of four acres" must look as neat as an English lawn, twice a day. On top of this, there’s the discipline, the drill, and the regimental and company books that must keep strict records of everything; consider all this, and then it's no surprise that officers and men are happy to be ordered on active duty, where a few signatures can simplify all these various requirements as "used in action" or "lost in service."

For one, the longer I remained in service, the better I appreciated the good sense of most of the regular army niceties. True, these things must all vanish when the time of action comes, but it is these things that have prepared you for action. Of course, if you dwell on them only, military life becomes millinery life alone. Kinglake says that the Russian Grand-Duke Constantine, contemplating his beautiful toy-regiments, said that he dreaded war, for he knew that it would spoil the troops. The simple fact is, that a soldier is like the weapon he carries; service implies soiling, but you must have it clean in advance, that when soiled it may be of some use.

The longer I stayed in the military, the more I appreciated the practicality of most military traditions. It's true that these things all fade away when action begins, but they prepare you for that action. However, if you focus solely on them, military life can start to feel superficial. Kinglake mentions that the Russian Grand-Duke Constantine, while admiring his beautiful toy regiments, expressed his fear of war because he knew it would ruin the troops. The reality is, a soldier is like the weapon he carries; service leads to wear and tear, but you have to keep it clean beforehand so that when it gets dirty, it can still be useful.

The men had that year a Christmas present which they enjoyed to the utmost,—furnishing the detail, every other day, for provost-guard duty in Beaufort. It was the only military service which they had ever shared within the town, and it moreover gave a sense of self-respect to be keeping the peace of their own streets. I enjoyed seeing them put on duty those mornings; there was such a twinkle of delight in their eyes, though their features were immovable. As the "reliefs" went round, posting the guard, under charge of a corporal, one could watch the black sentinels successively dropped and the whites picked up,—gradually changing the complexion, like Lord Somebody's black stockings which became white stockings,—till at last there was only a squad of white soldiers obeying the "Support Arms! Forward, March!" of a black corporal.

The guys that year had a Christmas gift they really enjoyed—taking turns every other day for provost-guard duty in Beaufort. It was the only military duty they’d ever done in town, and it gave them a sense of pride to be maintaining order in their own streets. I loved watching them get ready for duty those mornings; there was such a spark of joy in their eyes, even though their faces were stoic. As the "reliefs" went around, posting the guard under a corporal’s supervision, you could see the black sentinels swapped out for white ones—gradually changing the lineup, like Lord Somebody's black stockings turning into white ones—until finally, only a group of white soldiers stood there following the command "Support Arms! Forward, March!" given by a black corporal.

Then, when once posted, they glorified their office, you may be sure. Discipline had grown rather free-and-easy in the town about that time, and it is said that the guard-house never was so full within human memory as after their first tour of duty. I remember hearing that one young reprobate, son of a leading Northern philanthropist in those parts, was much aggrieved at being taken to the lock-up merely because he was found drunk in the streets. "Why," said he, "the white corporals always showed me the way home." And I can testify that, after an evening party, some weeks later, I beard with pleasure the officers asking eagerly for the countersign. "Who has the countersign?" said they. "The darkeys are on guard to-night, and we must look out for our lives." Even after a Christmas party at General Saxton's, the guard at the door very properly refused to let the ambulance be brought round from the stable for the ladies because the driver had not the countersign.

Then, once they were assigned, they definitely took pride in their role. Discipline had become pretty relaxed in the town during that time, and it’s said that the guardhouse was never so packed in living memory as after their first shift. I remember hearing about one young troublemaker, the son of a prominent Northern philanthropist in those parts, who was quite upset about being taken to the lock-up just for being drunk in the streets. "What’s the big deal?" he said, "The white corporals always helped me find my way home." And I can confirm that, after a party a few weeks later, I heard the officers eagerly asking for the password. "Who knows the password?" they said. "The black soldiers are on guard tonight, and we need to watch our backs." Even after a Christmas party at General Saxton's, the guard at the door rightly refused to let the ambulance be brought around from the stable for the ladies because the driver didn’t have the password.

One of the sergeants of the guard, on one of these occasions, made to one who questioned his authority an answer that could hardly have been improved. The questioner had just been arrested for some offence.

One of the guard's sergeants, during one of these moments, responded to someone who challenged his authority with a reply that couldn't have been better. The person asking the question had just been arrested for an offense.

"Know what dat mean?" said the indignant sergeant, pointing to the chevrons on his own sleeve. "Dat mean Guv'ment." Volumes could not have said more, and the victim collapsed. The thing soon settled itself, and nobody remembered to notice whether the face beside the musket of a sentinel were white or black. It meant Government, all the same.

"Do you know what that means?" said the angry sergeant, pointing to the chevrons on his sleeve. "That means Government." More couldn't have been said, and the victim fell apart. The situation quickly resolved itself, and nobody bothered to notice whether the face next to the musket of a sentinel was white or black. It meant Government, regardless.

The men were also indulged with several raids on the mainland, under the direction of Captain J. E. Bryant, of the Eighth Maine, the most experienced scout in that region, who was endeavoring to raise by enlistment a regiment of colored troops. On one occasion Captains Whitney and Heasley, with their companies, penetrated nearly to Pocataligo, capturing some pickets and bringing away all the slaves of a plantation,—the latter operation being entirely under the charge of Sergeant Harry Williams (Co. K), without the presence of any white man. The whole command was attacked on the return by a rebel force, which turned out to be what was called in those regions a "dog-company," consisting of mounted riflemen with half a dozen trained bloodhounds. The men met these dogs with their bayonets, killed four or five of their old tormentors with great relish, and brought away the carcass of one. I had the creature skinned, and sent the skin to New York to be stuffed and mounted, meaning to exhibit it at the Sanitary Commission Fair hi Boston; but it spoiled on the passage. These quadruped allies were not originally intended as "dogs of war," but simply to detect fugitive slaves, and the men were delighted at this confirmation of their tales of dog-companies, which some of the officers had always disbelieved.

The men were also involved in several raids on the mainland, led by Captain J. E. Bryant of the Eighth Maine, the most experienced scout in the area, who was trying to recruit a regiment of Black troops. On one occasion, Captains Whitney and Heasley, along with their companies, nearly reached Pocataligo, capturing some pickets and taking all the slaves from a plantation. This latter operation was entirely under the direction of Sergeant Harry Williams (Co. K), without any white man present. The entire unit was attacked on the way back by a rebel force, which turned out to be what locals referred to as a "dog company," made up of mounted riflemen with a few trained bloodhounds. The men confronted these dogs with their bayonets, killed four or five of their longtime pests with great satisfaction, and took the body of one with them. I had the animal skinned and sent the skin to New York to be stuffed and mounted, intending to display it at the Sanitary Commission Fair in Boston, but it spoiled during transport. These canine allies were not originally meant to be "dogs of war," but rather to track down runaway slaves, and the men were thrilled by this confirmation of their stories about dog companies, which some of the officers had always doubted.

Captain Bryant, during his scouting adventures, had learned to outwit these bloodhounds, and used his skill in eluding escape, during another expedition of the same kind. He was sent with Captain Metcalf's company far up the Combahee River to cut the telegraphic wires and intercept despatches. Our adventurous chaplain and a telegraphic operator went with the party. They ascended the river, cut the wires, and read the despatches for an hour or two. Unfortunately, the attached wire was too conspicuously hung, and was seen by a passenger on the railway train in passing. The train was stopped and a swift stampede followed; a squad of cavalry was sent in pursuit, and our chaplain, with Lieutenant Osborn, of Bryant's projected regiment, were captured; also one private,—the first of our men who had ever been taken prisoners. In spite of an agreement at Washington to the contrary, our chaplain was held as prisoner of war, the only spiritual adviser in uniform, so far as I know, who had that honor. I do not know but his reverence would have agreed with Scott's pirate-lieutenant, that it was better to live as plain Jack Bunce than die as Frederick Altamont; but I am very sure that he would rather have been kept prisoner to the close of the war, as a combatant, than have been released on parole as a non-resistant.

Captain Bryant, during his scouting missions, had figured out how to outsmart these bloodhounds and used his skills to escape again on a similar expedition. He was sent with Captain Metcalf's group far up the Combahee River to cut the telegraph wires and intercept messages. Our adventurous chaplain and a telegraph operator joined the team. They traveled up the river, cut the wires, and read the messages for an hour or two. Unfortunately, the wire was too obviously hung and was spotted by a passenger on a passing train. The train was stopped, and a quick stampede ensued; a squad of cavalry was sent after them, and our chaplain, along with Lieutenant Osborn from Bryant's planned regiment, was captured, along with one private— the first of our men to ever be taken prisoner. Despite an agreement in Washington to the contrary, our chaplain was held as a prisoner of war, the only uniformed spiritual adviser, as far as I know, to have that distinction. I’m not sure, but his reverence might have agreed with Scott's pirate-lieutenant that it was better to live as plain Jack Bunce than die as Frederick Altamont; however, I’m certain he would have preferred to stay imprisoned for the rest of the war as a combatant rather than be released on parole as a non-combatant.

After his return, I remember, he gave the most animated accounts of the whole adventure, of which he had enjoyed every instant, from the first entrance on the enemy's soil to the final capture. I suppose we should all like to tap the telegraphic wires anywhere and read our neighbor's messages, if we could only throw round this process the dignity of a Sacred Cause. This was what our good chaplain had done, with the same conscientious zest with which he had conducted his Sunday foraging in Florida. But he told me that nothing so impressed him on the whole trip as the sudden transformation in the black soldier who was taken prisoner with him. The chaplain at once adopted the policy, natural to him, of talking boldly and even defiantly to his captors, and commanding instead of beseeching. He pursued the same policy always and gained by it, he thought. But the negro adopted the diametrically opposite policy, also congenial to his crushed race,—all the force seemed to go out of him, and he surrendered himself like a tortoise to be kicked and trodden upon at their will. This manly, well-trained soldier at once became a slave again, asked no questions, and, if any were asked, made meek and conciliatory answers. He did not know, nor did any of us know, whether he would be treated as a prisoner of war, or shot, or sent to a rice-plantation. He simply acted according to the traditions of his race, as did the chaplain on his side. In the end the soldier's cunning was vindicated by the result; he escaped, and rejoined us in six months, while the chaplain was imprisoned for a year.

After he got back, I remember he gave the most exciting accounts of the whole adventure, which he enjoyed every moment of, from the first step onto enemy territory to the final capture. I guess we would all like to tap into the telegraph wires and read our neighbor's messages, especially if we could wrap that process in the dignity of a Sacred Cause. This was exactly what our good chaplain had done, with the same dedicated enthusiasm he had shown during his Sunday foraging in Florida. But he told me nothing impressed him more during the trip than the sudden change in the black soldier who was captured with him. The chaplain quickly adopted his natural approach of speaking boldly and defiantly to his captors, commanding instead of begging. He stuck to this approach and believed it helped him. In contrast, the black soldier took the opposite approach, which suited his oppressed background—he completely lost his strength and surrendered himself like a turtle, allowing them to kick and trample him at will. This brave, well-trained soldier instantly became a slave again, asked no questions, and if any were asked, he gave gentle and submissive responses. He didn’t know, and neither did any of us, whether he would be treated as a prisoner of war, shot, or sent to a rice plantation. He simply acted according to his race's traditions, just like the chaplain did on his end. In the end, the soldier's cleverness paid off; he escaped and rejoined us in six months, while the chaplain was imprisoned for a year.

The men came back very much exhausted from this expedition, and those who were in the chaplain's squad narrowly escaped with their lives. One brave fellow had actually not a morsel to eat for four days, and then could keep nothing on his stomach for two days more, so that his life was despaired of; and yet he brought all his equipments safe into camp. Some of these men had led such wandering lives, in woods and swamps, that to hunt them was like hunting an otter; shyness and concealment had grown to be their second nature.

The men returned extremely worn out from this expedition, and those in the chaplain's group barely made it back alive. One courageous guy went four days without any food and then couldn't keep anything down for another two days, so his survival was in doubt; yet, he managed to bring all his gear back to camp safely. Some of these men had lived such nomadic lives in the woods and swamps that tracking them down was like hunting for an otter; being shy and hiding had become second nature to them.

After these little episodes came two months of peace. We were clean, comfortable, quiet, and consequently discontented. It was therefore with eagerness that we listened to a rumor of a new Florida expedition, in which we might possibly take a hand.

After these little events, we had two months of peace. We were clean, comfortable, quiet, and as a result, dissatisfied. So, we eagerly listened to rumors about a new Florida expedition that we might be able to join.





Chapter 11. Florida Again?

Let me revert once more to my diary, for a specimen of the sharp changes and sudden disappointments that may come to troops in service. But for a case or two of varioloid in the regiment, we should have taken part in the battle of Olustee, and should have had (as was reported) the right of the line. At any rate we should have shared the hard knocks and the glory, which were distributed pretty freely to the colored troops then and there. The diary will give, better than can any continuous narrative, our ups and down of expectation in those days.

Let me go back to my diary once again, as it shows the sharp changes and sudden letdowns that can happen to troops in service. If it weren't for a case or two of varioloid in the regiment, we would have participated in the battle of Olustee and would have had the right of the line (as was reported). In any case, we would have experienced the tough challenges and the glory that was handed out pretty generously to the colored troops at that time. The diary captures our rollercoaster of hopes and disappointments better than any ongoing story could.

"CAMP SHAW, BEAUFORT, S. C.,

"CAMP SHAW, BEAUFORT, SC,"

"February 7, 1864.

February 7, 1864.

"Great are the uncertainties of military orders! Since our recall from Jacksonville we have had no such surprises as came to us on Wednesday night. It was our third day of a new tour of duty at the picket station. We had just got nicely settled,—men well tented, with good floors, and in high spirits, officers at out-stations all happy, Mrs. —— coming to stay with her husband, we at head-quarters just in order, house cleaned, moss-garlands up, camellias and jessamines in the tin wash-basins, baby in bliss;—our usual run of visitors had just set in, two Beaufort captains and a surgeon had just risen from a late dinner after a flag of truce, General Saxton and his wife had driven away but an hour or two before, we were all sitting about busy, with a great fire blazing, Mrs. D. had just remarked triumphantly, 'Last time I had but a mouthful here, and now I shall be here three weeks'—when—

"Military orders are filled with uncertainty! Since we were called back from Jacksonville, we haven't had any surprises like the one we experienced on Wednesday night. It was our third day into a new shift at the picket station. We had just settled in nicely—men well accommodated in tents with good floors, everyone in high spirits, officers at their posts all happy, Mrs. —— visiting her husband, and we at headquarters all organized, the house cleaned up, moss garlands hung, camellias and jessamines in the tin washbasins, and the baby in bliss. Our usual flow of visitors had just started; two captains from Beaufort and a surgeon had just finished a late dinner after a flag of truce, and General Saxton and his wife had left only an hour or two before. We were all gathered around, keeping busy with a big fire blazing. Mrs. D. had just remarked with pride, 'Last time I had only a bite to eat here, and now I’ll be here for three weeks'—when—"

"In dropped, like a bombshell, a despatch announcing that we were to be relieved by the Eighth Maine, the next morning, as General Gillmore had sent an order that we should be ready for departure from Beaufort at any moment.

"In came, like a bombshell, a message announcing that we were to be relieved by the Eighth Maine the next morning, as General Gillmore had sent an order that we should be ready to leave Beaufort at any time."

"Conjectures, orders, packing, sending couriers to out-stations, were the employments of the evening; the men received the news with cheers, and we all came in next morning."

"Planning, organizing, packing, and sending couriers to remote stations filled our evening; the men greeted the news with cheers, and we all returned the next morning."

"February 11, 1864.

February 11, 1864.

"For three days we have watched the river, and every little steamboat that comes up for coal brings out spy-glasses and conjectures, and 'Dar's de Fourf New Hampshire,'—for when that comes, it is said, we go. Meanwhile we hear stirring news from Florida, and the men are very impatient to be off. It is remarkable how much more thoroughly they look at things as soldiers than last year, and how much less as home-bound men,—the South-Carolinians, I mean, for of course the Floridians would naturally wish to go to Florida.

"For three days we’ve been watching the river, and every little steamboat that comes by for coal gets us pulling out our binoculars and making guesses, and 'There’s the Fourth New Hampshire,'—because when that arrives, it’s said we’re leaving. In the meantime, we’re hearing exciting news from Florida, and the guys are really eager to get going. It’s striking how much more thoroughly they observe things as soldiers compared to last year, and how much less they do so as men headed home,—I’m talking about the South Carolinians, since of course the Floridians naturally want to head to Florida."

"But in every way I see the gradual change in them, sometimes with a sigh, as parents watch their children growing up and miss the droll speeches and the confiding ignorance of childhood. Sometimes it comes over me with a pang that they are growing more like white men,—less naive and less grotesque. Still, I think there is enough of it to last, and that their joyous buoyancy, at least, will hold out while life does.

"But in every way, I notice the slow change in them, sometimes with a sigh, as parents watch their kids grow up and miss the funny moments and the trusting innocence of childhood. Occasionally, I feel a twinge realizing they’re becoming more like white folks—less naive and less quirky. Still, I believe there’s enough of that spirit to last, and at least their joyful energy will stick around while life goes on."

"As for our destination, our greatest fear is of finding ourselves posted at Hilton Head and going no farther. As a dashing Irish officer remarked the other day, 'If we are ordered away anywhere, I hope it will be either to go to Florida or else stay here!'"

"As for where we're headed, our biggest worry is ending up stuck at Hilton Head and not moving on. As a charming Irish officer said the other day, 'If we get sent anywhere, I hope it’s either to Florida or we just stay here!'"

"Sublime uncertainties again!

"Sublime uncertainties, once more!"

"After being ordered in from picket, under marching orders; after the subsequent ten days of uncertainty; after watching every steamboat that came up the river, to see if the Fourth New Hampshire was on board,—at last the regiment came.

"After being called back from picket duty with marching orders; after ten days of uncertainty; after watching every steamboat that came up the river to see if the Fourth New Hampshire was on board—finally, the regiment arrived."

"Then followed another break; there was no transportation to take us. At last a boat was notified.

"Then there was another delay; we had no way to get transportation. Finally, a boat was announced."

"Then General Saxton, as anxious to keep us as was the regiment to go, played his last card in small-pox, telegraphing to department head-quarters that we had it dangerously in the regiment. (N. B. All varioloid, light at that, and besides, we always have it.)

"Then General Saxton, as eager to hold onto us as the regiment was to leave, played his final card with smallpox, sending a message to department headquarters that we were dangerously affected by it. (N. B. All varioloid, mild at that, and besides, we always have it.)"

"Then the order came to leave behind the sick and those who had been peculiarly exposed, and embark the rest next day.

"Then the order came to leave behind the sick and those who had been particularly exposed, and to board the rest the next day."

"Great was the jubilee! The men were up, I verily believe, by three in the morning, and by eight the whole camp was demolished or put in wagons, and we were on our way. The soldiers of the Fourth New Hampshire swarmed in; every board was swept away by them; there had been a time when colored boards (if I may delicately so express myself) were repudiated by white soldiers, but that epoch had long since passed. I gave my new tent-frame, even the latch, to Colonel Bell; ditto Lieutenant-Colonel to Lieutenant-Colonel.

"Wow, what a celebration! I really think the men were up by three in the morning, and by eight the whole camp was either packed up or loaded into wagons, and we were on our way. The soldiers from the Fourth New Hampshire poured in; they took every board with them. There was a time when white soldiers rejected colored boards, but that was a long time ago. I gave my new tent frame, even the latch, to Colonel Bell; the same to the Lieutenant-Colonel for the Lieutenant-Colonel."

"Down we marched, the men singing 'John Brown' and 'Marching Along' and 'Gwine in de Wilderness'; women in tears and smiles lined the way. We halted opposite the dear General's; we cheered, he speeched, I speeched, we all embraced symbolically, and cheered some more. Then we went to work at the wharf; vast wagon-loads of tents, rations, ordnance, and what-not disappeared in the capacious maw of the Delaware. In the midst of it all came riding down General Saxton with a despatch from Hilton Head:—

"Down we marched, the men singing 'John Brown,' 'Marching Along,' and 'Gwine in de Wilderness'; women with tears and smiles lined the way. We stopped in front of the dear General’s place; we cheered, he gave a speech, I gave a speech, we all symbolically embraced, and cheered some more. Then we got to work at the wharf; huge wagon-loads of tents, rations, ordnance, and more disappeared into the expansive mouth of the Delaware. In the middle of it all, General Saxton rode in with a message from Hilton Head:—"

"'If you think the amount of small-pox in the First South Carolina Volunteers sufficient, the order will be countermanded.'

"'If you believe the number of smallpox cases in the First South Carolina Volunteers is enough, the order will be canceled.'"

"'What shall I say?' quoth the guilty General, perceiving how preposterously too late the negotiation was reopened.

"'What should I say?' said the guilty General, realizing how ridiculously late the negotiation was reopened."

"'Say, sir?' quoth I. 'Say that we are on board already and the small-pox left behind. Say we had only thirteen cases, chiefly varioloid, and ten almost well.'

"'Say, sir?' I said. 'Say that we're already on board and that we've left the small-pox behind. Say we had just thirteen cases, mostly varioloid, and ten are almost well.'"

"Our blood was up with a tremendous morning's work done, and, rather than turn back, we felt ready to hold down Major-General Gillmore, commanding department, and all his staff upon the wharf, and vaccinate them by main force.

"Our adrenaline was high after a huge morning's work, and instead of turning back, we felt ready to confront Major-General Gillmore, who was in charge of the department, along with his entire staff on the wharf, and forcefully vaccinate them."

"So General Saxton rode away, and we worked away. Just as the last wagon-load but one was being transferred to the omnivorous depths of the Delaware,—which I should think would have been filled ten times over with what we had put into it,—down rode the General with a fiendish joy in his bright eyes and held out a paper,—one of the familiar rescripts from headquarters.

"So General Saxton rode off, and we kept working. Just as the second to last wagon-load was being dumped into the endless depths of the Delaware—which I would guess could have been filled ten times with what we had put into it—down rode the General with a sinister joy in his bright eyes and handed over a paper—one of the usual messages from headquarters."

"'The marching orders of the First South Carolina Volunteers are hereby countermanded.'

"'The marching orders for the First South Carolina Volunteers are canceled.'"

"'Major Trowbridge,' said I, 'will you give my compliments to Lieutenant Hooper, somewhere in the hold of that steamer, and direct him to set his men at work to bring out every individual article which they have carried hi.' And I sat down on a pile of boards.

"'Major Trowbridge,' I said, 'could you please pass along my compliments to Lieutenant Hooper, who's somewhere in the hold of that steamer, and instruct him to get his men to start unloading every single item they've brought on board?' Then I sat down on a stack of boards."

"'You will return to your old camping-ground, Colonel,' said the General, placidly. 'Now,' he added with serene satisfaction, 'we will have some brigade drills!'

"'You will go back to your old campsite, Colonel,' the General said calmly. 'Now,' he added with a sense of satisfaction, 'we're going to have some brigade drills!'"

"Brigade drills! Since Mr. Pickwick, with his heartless tomato-sauce and warming-pans, there had been nothing so aggravating as to try to solace us, who were as good as on board ship and under way,—nay, in imagination as far up the St. John's as Pilatka at least,—with brigade drills! It was very kind and flattering in him to wish to keep us. But unhappily we had made up our minds to go.

"Brigade drills! Since Mr. Pickwick, with his annoying tomato sauce and warming pans, there hadn't been anything as frustrating as trying to comfort us, who were practically on the ship and underway—indeed, in our minds, as far up the St. John's as Pilatka at least—with brigade drills! It was very nice and flattering of him to want to keep us. But unfortunately, we had already decided to leave."

"Never did officer ride at the head of a battalion of more wobegone, spiritless wretches than I led back from Beaufort that day. 'When I march down to de landin',' said one of the men afterwards, 'my knapsack full of feathers. Comin' back, he lead!' And the lead, instead of the feathers, rested on the heart of every one.

"Never did an officer lead a battalion of more miserable, lifeless people than the ones I brought back from Beaufort that day. 'When I marched down to the landing,' one of the men said later, 'my backpack was full of feathers. Coming back, he led!' And the weight, instead of the feathers, lay heavy on everyone's heart."

"As if the disappointment itself were not sufficient, we had to return to our pretty camp, accustomed to its drawing-room order, and find it a desert. Every board gone from the floors, the screens torn down from the poles, all the little conveniences scattered, and, to crown all, a cold breeze such as we had not known since New-Year's Day blowing across the camp and flooding everything with dust. I sincerely hope the regiment would never behave after a defeat as they behaved then. Every man seemed crushed, officers and soldiers alike; when they broke ranks, they went and lay down like sheep where their tents used to be, or wandered disconsolately about, looking for their stray belongings. The scene was so infinitely dolorous that it gradually put me in the highest spirits; the ludicrousness of the whole affair was so complete, there was nothing to do but laugh. The horrible dust blew till every officer had some black spot on his nose which paralyzed pathos. Of course the only way was to set them all at work as soon as possible; and work them we did,—I at the camp and the Major at the wharf,—loading and unloading wagons and just reversing all which the morning had done.

"As if the disappointment wasn't enough, we had to go back to our beautiful camp, used to its neat and tidy setup, and find it a mess. Every board was gone from the floors, the screens were ripped down from the poles, all the little conveniences were scattered, and to top it off, a cold breeze unlike anything we’d felt since New Year’s Day was blowing through the camp, covering everything in dust. I really hope the regiment never reacts to a defeat like this again. Every man seemed defeated, officers and soldiers alike; when they broke ranks, they just lay down like sheep where their tents used to be or wandered around aimlessly, searching for their lost belongings. The scene was so incredibly sad that it eventually lifted my spirits; the absurdity of the whole situation was so complete that all I could do was laugh. The awful dust blew so hard that every officer ended up with a dark spot on his nose, which made it impossible to feel sympathetic. Of course, the best option was to get them working as soon as possible; and we did just that—I worked at the camp and the Major worked at the wharf—loading and unloading wagons and basically undoing everything the morning had accomplished."

"The New Hampshire men were very considerate, and gave back most of what they had taken, though many of our men were really too delicate or proud to ask or even take what they had once given to soldiers or to the colored people. I had no such delicacy about my tent-frame, and by night things had resumed something of their old aspect, and cheerfulness was in part restored. Yet long after this I found one first sergeant absolutely in tears,—a Florida man, most of whose kindred were up the St. John's. It was very natural that the men from that region should feel thus bitterly, but it shows how much of the habit of soldiers they have all acquired, that the South Carolina men, who were leaving the neighborhood of their families for an indefinite time, were just as eager to go, and not one deserted, though they knew it for a week beforehand. No doubt my precarious health makes it now easier for me personally to remain here—easier on reflection at least—than for the others. At the same time Florida is fascinating, and offers not only adventure, but the command of a brigade. Certainly at the last moment there was not a sacrifice I would not have made rather than wrench myself and others away from the expedition. We are, of course, thrown back into the old uncertainty, and if the small-pox subsides (and it is really diminishing decidedly) we may yet come in at the wrong end of the Florida affair."

"The New Hampshire guys were really considerate and returned most of what they had taken, although many of our men felt too delicate or proud to ask for or even take back what they had once given to soldiers or to the Black community. I didn’t have that hesitation about my tent frame, and by nighttime things had started to look somewhat normal again, and our spirits were partially restored. But long after this, I found one first sergeant completely in tears—a guy from Florida whose family was mostly up the St. John's. It’s understandable that men from that area would feel so upset, but it’s also clear how much of a soldier's mentality they've all picked up, since the South Carolina men, who were leaving their families for an indefinite time, were just as eager to go, and not one of them deserted, even though they knew about it a week in advance. No doubt my shaky health makes it easier for me to stay here—easier, at least in hindsight—than for the others. At the same time, Florida is captivating and not only offers adventure, but the opportunity to command a brigade. Definitely, at the last minute, there wasn’t a sacrifice I wouldn’t have made to avoid pulling myself and others away from the mission. We’ve, of course, been thrown back into the old uncertainty, and if the smallpox outbreak dies down (and it really is clearly decreasing), we might still end up on the wrong side of the Florida situation."

"February 19.

February 19.

"Not a bit of it! This morning the General has ridden up radiant, has seen General Gillmore, who has decided not to order us to Florida at all, nor withdraw any of this garrison. Moreover, he says that all which is intended in Florida is done,—that there will be no advance to Tallahassee, and General Seymour will establish a camp of instruction in Jacksonville. Well, if that is all, it is a lucky escape."

"Not at all! This morning, the General rode in looking cheerful, met with General Gillmore, who has decided not to send us to Florida or pull any of this garrison. Additionally, he says everything planned for Florida is complete—there will be no move to Tallahassee, and General Seymour will set up a training camp in Jacksonville. Well, if that’s the case, we got lucky."

We little dreamed that on that very day the march toward Olustee was beginning. The battle took place next day, and I add one more extract to show how the news reached Beaufort.

We had no idea that on that very day, the march toward Olustee was starting. The battle happened the next day, and I’ll include one more excerpt to show how the news reached Beaufort.

"February 23, 1864.

February 23, 1864.

"There was the sound of revelry by night at a ball in Beaufort last night, in a new large building beautifully decorated. All the collected flags of the garrison hung round and over us, as if the stars and stripes were devised for an ornament alone. The array of uniforms was such that a civilian became a distinguished object, much more a lady. All would have gone according to the proverbial marriage-bell, I suppose, had there not been a slight palpable shadow over all of us from hearing vague stories of a lost battle in Florida, and from the thought that perhaps the very ambulances in which we rode to the ball were ours only until the wounded or the dead might tenant them.

"There was a night of celebration at a ball in Beaufort last night, held in a beautifully decorated, large new building. All the flags of the garrison were displayed around and above us, as if the stars and stripes were created purely for decoration. The mix of uniforms stood out so much that a civilian became quite noticeable, especially a woman. Everything seemed like it was heading towards the usual romantic outcomes, I guess, if it weren't for the slight, palpable shadow hanging over us from hearing vague stories about a recent battle lost in Florida, and the thought that maybe the very ambulances we used to get to the ball would only be ours until the wounded or deceased needed them."

"General Gillmore only came, I supposed, to put a good face upon the matter. He went away soon, and General Saxton went; then came a rumor that the Cosmopolitan had actually arrived with wounded, but still the dance went on. There was nothing unfeeling about it,—one gets used to things,—when suddenly, in the midst of the 'Lancers,' there came a perfect hush, the music ceasing, a few surgeons went hastily to and fro, as if conscience-stricken (I should think they might have been),—then there 'waved a mighty shadow in,' as in Uhland's 'Black Knight,' and as we all stood wondering we were 'ware of General Saxton, who strode hastily down the hall, his pale face very resolute, and looking almost sick with anxiety. He had just been on board the steamer; there were two hundred and fifty wounded men just arrived, and the ball must end. Not that there was anything for us to do; but the revel was mistimed, and must be ended; it was wicked to be dancing, with such a scene of suffering near by.

"General Gillmore only showed up, I guess, to put on a brave front. He left soon after, and General Saxton left too; then there was a rumor that the Cosmopolitan had actually arrived with wounded soldiers, but the dance continued. There was nothing heartless about it—you get used to things—when suddenly, in the middle of the 'Lancers,' there was a complete hush, the music stopped, and a few surgeons hurried back and forth, looking like they were guilty (which I imagine they might have been). Then there came a huge shadow, just like in Uhland's 'Black Knight,' and as we all stood there wondering, we noticed General Saxton striding quickly down the hall, his pale face determined and looking almost sick with worry. He had just come from the steamer; two hundred and fifty wounded men had just arrived, and the ball had to stop. Not that we had anything to do, but the celebration was badly timed and had to end; it felt wrong to be dancing with such suffering so close by."

"Of course the ball was instantly broken up, though with some murmurings and some longings of appetite, on the part of some, toward the wasted supper.

"Of course, the party broke up immediately, although there were some murmurs and lingering desires for the uneaten dinner from a few people."

"Later, I went on board the boat. Among the long lines of wounded, black and white intermingled, there was the wonderful quiet which usually prevails on such occasions. Not a sob nor a groan, except from those undergoing removal. It is not self-control, but chiefly the shock to the system produced by severe wounds, especially gunshot wounds, and which usually keeps the patient stiller at first than any later time.

"Later, I boarded the boat. Among the long lines of injured people, black and white mixed together, there was the usual calm that happens in situations like this. There wasn’t a sob or a groan, except from those being moved. It’s not just self-control, but mainly the shock to the system caused by serious injuries, especially gunshot wounds, which often keeps the patient quieter at first than at any later time."

"A company from my regiment waited on the wharf, in their accustomed dusky silence, and I longed to ask them what they thought of our Florida disappointment now? In view of what they saw, did they still wish we had been there? I confess that in presence of all that human suffering, I could not wish it. But I would not have suggested any such thought to them.

"A company from my regiment stood at the dock, in their usual quietness, and I wanted to ask them what they thought of our letdown in Florida now. Given what they saw, did they still wish we had been there? I admit that faced with all that human suffering, I couldn't wish for it. But I wouldn't have brought up that idea with them."

"I found our kind-hearted ladies, Mrs. Chamberlin and Mrs. Dewhurst, on board the steamer, but there was nothing for them to do, and we walked back to camp in the radiant moonlight; Mrs. Chamberlin more than ever strengthened in her blushing woman's philosophy, 'I don't care who wins the laurels, provided we don't!'"

"I found our kind-hearted ladies, Mrs. Chamberlin and Mrs. Dewhurst, on board the steamer, but there was nothing for them to do, and we walked back to camp in the radiant moonlight; Mrs. Chamberlin, more convinced than ever in her blushing woman's philosophy, said, 'I don't care who wins the accolades, as long as we don't!'"

"February 29.

February 29th.

"But for a few trivial cases of varioloid, we should certainly have been in that disastrous fight. We were confidently expected for several days at Jacksonville, and the commanding general told Colonel Hallowell that we, being the oldest colored regiment, would have the right of the line. This was certainly to miss danger and glory very closely."

"But for a few minor cases of varioloid, we definitely would have been in that disastrous battle. We were expected for several days in Jacksonville, and the commanding general told Colonel Hallowell that we, being the oldest colored regiment, would take the lead. This really meant we were very close to missing both danger and glory."





Chapter 12. The Negro as a Soldier

There was in our regiment a very young recruit, named Sam Roberts, of whom Trowbridge used to tell this story. Early in the war Trowbridge had been once sent to Amelia Island with a squad of men, under direction of Commodore Goldsborough, to remove the negroes from the island. As the officers stood on the beach, talking to some of the older freedmen, they saw this urchin peeping at them from front and rear in a scrutinizing way, for which his father at last called him to account, as thus:—

There was a very young recruit in our regiment named Sam Roberts, and Trowbridge used to tell this story about him. Early in the war, Trowbridge was sent to Amelia Island with a group of men, directed by Commodore Goldsborough, to relocate the black residents from the island. While the officers stood on the beach talking to some of the older freedmen, they noticed this kid peeking at them from both the front and back in a curious manner, which eventually led his father to address him like this:—

"Hi! Sammy, what you's doin', chile?"

"Hi! Sammy, what are you doing, kid?"

"Daddy," said the inquisitive youth, "don't you know mas'r tell us Yankee hab tail? I don't see no tail, daddy!"

"Daddy," said the curious kid, "don’t you know the master says Yankees have tails? I don’t see any tail, Daddy!"

There were many who went to Port Royal during the war, in civil or military positions, whose previous impressions of the colored race were about as intelligent as Sam's view of themselves. But, for once, I had always had so much to do with fugitive slaves, and had studied the whole subject with such interest, that I found not much to learn or unlearn as to this one point. Their courage I had before seen tested; their docile and lovable qualities I had known; and the only real surprise that experience brought me was in finding them so little demoralized. I had not allowed for the extreme remoteness and seclusion of their lives, especially among the Sea Islands. Many of them had literally spent their whole existence on some lonely island or remote plantation, where the master never came, and the overseer only once or twice a week. With these exceptions, such persons had never seen a white face, and of the excitements or sins of larger communities they had not a conception. My friend Colonel Hallo-well, of the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts, told me that he had among his men some of the worst reprobates of Northern cities. While I had some men who were unprincipled and troublesome, there was not one whom I could call a hardened villain. I was constantly expecting to find male Topsies, with no notions of good and plenty of evil. But I never found one. Among the most ignorant there was very often a childlike absence of vices, which was rather to be classed as inexperience than as innocence, but which had some of the advantages of both.

There were many people who went to Port Royal during the war, in civil or military roles, whose previous views of the Black community were about as informed as Sam's opinion of themselves. However, I had always been deeply involved with runaway slaves and had studied the entire topic with great interest, so I didn’t find much left to learn or unlearn on this particular point. I had previously seen their courage tested; I was aware of their gentle and lovable qualities; and the only real surprise that experience brought me was discovering how little demoralized they were. I hadn’t anticipated the extreme isolation and seclusion of their lives, especially among the Sea Islands. Many of them had literally spent their entire lives on some remote island or plantation where the master rarely visited, and the overseer only came by once or twice a week. With these exceptions, these individuals had never seen a white person, and they had no understanding of the dramas or vices of larger communities. My friend Colonel Halliwell, from the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts, told me that he had some of the most notorious troublemakers from Northern cities among his ranks. While I had some men who were unscrupulous and difficult, there wasn’t a single one I could label as a hardened criminal. I was constantly expecting to encounter malicious individuals who had no concept of good and only knew of evil. But I never came across one. Even among the most ignorant, there was often a childlike lack of vices, which seemed more like inexperience than innocence, but had some benefits of both.

Apart from this, they were very much like other men. General Saxton, examining with some impatience a long list of questions from some philanthropic Commission at the North, respecting the traits and habits of the freedmen, bade some staff-officer answer them all in two words,—"Intensely human." We all admitted that it was a striking and comprehensive description.

Apart from this, they were very much like other men. General Saxton, looking a bit impatiently at a long list of questions from some philanthropic Commission in the North about the traits and habits of the freedmen, told a staff officer to answer them all in two words—“Intensely human.” We all agreed it was a striking and complete description.

For instance, as to courage. So far as I have seen, the mass of men are naturally courageous up to a certain point. A man seldom runs away from danger which he ought to face, unless others run; each is apt to keep with the mass, and colored soldiers have more than usual of this gregariousness. In almost every regiment, black or white, there are a score or two of men who are naturally daring, who really hunger after dangerous adventures, and are happiest when allowed to seek them. Every commander gradually finds out who these men are, and habitually uses them; certainly I had such, and I remember with delight their bearing, their coolness, and their dash. Some of them were negroes, some mulattoes. One of them would have passed for white, with brown hair and blue eyes, while others were so black you could hardly see their features. These picked men varied in other respects too; some were neat and well-drilled soldiers, while others were slovenly, heedless fellows,—the despair of their officers at inspection, their pride on a raid. They were the natural scouts and rangers of the regiment; they had the two-o'clock-in-the-morning courage, which Napoleon thought so rare. The mass of the regiment rose to the same level under excitement, and were more excitable, I think, than whites, but neither more nor less courageous.

For example, when it comes to courage. From what I’ve observed, most men are naturally courageous up to a certain point. A man rarely backs down from danger he should confront, unless others do; everyone tends to follow the crowd, and men of color exhibit this tendency even more. In almost every regiment, whether black or white, there are a handful of individuals who are naturally bold, who genuinely crave dangerous adventures, and are happiest when they can pursue them. Every commander gradually identifies who these individuals are and uses them regularly; I certainly had some, and I fondly remember their demeanor, their composure, and their bravery. Some were black, some were mixed race. One of them could easily pass for white, with brown hair and blue eyes, while others were so dark you could barely make out their features. These standout individuals also varied in other ways; some were tidy and well-trained soldiers, while others were careless and indifferent—much to the frustration of their officers during inspections, but they took pride in raids. They were the natural scouts and rangers of the regiment; they had that 2 AM courage, which Napoleon deemed so rare. The majority of the regiment could rise to that same level under excitement, and I think they were even more excitable than white soldiers, but neither more nor less courageous.

Perhaps the best proof of a good average of courage among them was in the readiness they always showed for any special enterprise. I do not remember ever to have had the slightest difficulty in obtaining volunteers, but rather in keeping down the number. The previous pages include many illustrations of this, as well as of then: endurance of pain and discomfort. For instance, one of my lieutenants, a very daring Irishman, who had served for eight years as a sergeant of regular artillery in Texas, Utah, and South Carolina, said he had never been engaged in anything so risky as our raid up the St. Mary's. But in truth it seems to me a mere absurdity to deliberately argue the question of courage, as applied to men among whom I waked and slept, day and night, for so many months together. As well might he who has been wandering for years upon the desert, with a Bedouin escort, discuss the courage of the men whose tents have been his shelter and whose spears his guard. We, their officers, did not go there to teach lessons, but to receive them. There were more than a hundred men in the ranks who had voluntarily met more dangers in their escape from slavery than any of my young captains had incurred in all their lives.

Perhaps the best proof of a good average of courage among them was in their constant willingness to take on any special task. I don't remember ever having trouble getting volunteers; instead, I struggled to keep the numbers down. The previous pages contain many examples of this, as well as their endurance of pain and discomfort. For instance, one of my lieutenants, a bold Irishman who had served for eight years as a sergeant of regular artillery in Texas, Utah, and South Carolina, said he had never participated in anything as risky as our raid up the St. Mary's. But honestly, it seems ridiculous to even discuss the question of courage with men among whom I lived and slept, day and night, for so many months. It’s like someone who has spent years wandering the desert with a Bedouin escort trying to evaluate the bravery of the men whose tents have provided his shelter and whose spears have protected him. We, their officers, weren’t there to teach them lessons, but to learn from them. There were over a hundred men in the ranks who had voluntarily faced more dangers in their escape from slavery than any of my young captains had faced in their entire lives.

There was a family named Wilson, I remember, of which we had several representatives. Three or four brothers had planned an escape from the interior to our lines; they finally decided that the youngest should stay and take care of the old mother; the rest, with their sister and her children, came in a "dug-out" down one of the rivers. They were fired upon, again and again, by the pickets along the banks, until finally every man on board was wounded; and still they got safely through. When the bullets began to fly about them, the woman shed tears, and her little girl of nine said to her, "Don't cry, mother, Jesus will help you," and then the child began praying as the wounded men still urged the boat along. This the mother told me, but I had previously heard it from on officer who was on the gunboat that picked them up,—a big, rough man, whose voice fairly broke as he described their appearance. He said that the mother and child had been hid for nine months in the woods before attempting their escape, and the child would speak to no one,—indeed, she hardly would when she came to our camp. She was almost white, and this officer wished to adopt her, but the mother said, "I would do anything but that for oonah," this being a sort of Indian formation of the second-person-plural, such as they sometimes use. This same officer afterwards saw a reward offered for this family in a Savannah paper.

There was a family named Wilson that I remember, with several members we knew. Three or four brothers had planned to escape from the interior to our lines; in the end, they decided the youngest should stay behind to take care of their elderly mother. The rest, along with their sister and her kids, made their way downriver in a "dug-out." They were shot at repeatedly by the guards on the banks until every man on board was injured, but they still managed to get through safely. When the bullets started flying, the woman cried, and her nine-year-old daughter told her, "Don’t cry, mom, Jesus will help you," and then the child began praying while the injured men kept pushing the boat along. The mother shared this with me, but I had already heard it from an officer on the gunboat that rescued them—a big, tough guy whose voice cracked as he described what they looked like. He said the mother and child had hidden in the woods for nine months before trying to escape, and the child wouldn't speak to anyone—in fact, she barely did when she got to our camp. She was almost white, and this officer wanted to adopt her, but the mother said, "I would do anything but that for oonah," which is a kind of Indian term for the second-person-plural that they sometimes use. This same officer later saw a reward offered for this family in a Savannah newspaper.

I used to think that I should not care to read "Uncle Tom's Cabin" hi our camp; it would have seemed tame. Any group of men in a tent would have had more exciting tales to tell. I needed no fiction when I had Fanny Wright, for instance, daily passing to and fro before my tent, with her shy little girl clinging to her skirts. Fanny was a modest little mulatto woman, a soldier's wife, and a company laundress. She had escaped from the main-land in a boat, with that child and another. Her baby was shot dead in her arms, and she reached our lines with one child safe on earth and the other in heaven. I never found it needful to give any elementary instructions in courage to Fanny's husband, you may be sure.

I used to think that reading "Uncle Tom's Cabin" in our camp was unnecessary; it would have seemed boring. Any group of guys in a tent would have had more exciting stories to share. I didn't need fiction when I had Fanny Wright, for example, passing by my tent every day with her shy little girl hanging onto her skirts. Fanny was a modest mulatto woman, a soldier's wife, and a laundress for the company. She had escaped from the mainland in a boat with that child and another. Her baby was shot dead in her arms, and she arrived at our lines with one child safe on earth and the other in heaven. I never found it necessary to teach Fanny's husband any basic lessons in courage, that's for sure.

There was another family of brothers in the regiment named Miller. Their grandmother, a fine-looking old woman, nearly seventy, I should think, but erect as a pine-tree, used sometimes to come and visit them. She and her husband had once tried to escape from a plantation near Savannah. They had failed, and had been brought back; the husband had received five hundred lashes, and while the white men on the plantation were viewing the punishment, she was collecting her children and grandchildren, to the number of twenty-two, in a neighboring marsh, preparatory to another attempt that night. They found a flat-boat which had been rejected as unseaworthy, got on board,—still under the old woman's orders,—and drifted forty miles down the river to our lines. Trowbridge happened to be on board the gunboat which picked them up, and he said that when the "flat" touched the side of the vessel, the grandmother rose to her full height, with her youngest grandchild in her arms, and said only, "My God! are we free?" By one of those coincidences of which life is full, her husband escaped also, after his punishment, and was taken up by the same gunboat.

There was another family of brothers in the regiment called Miller. Their grandmother, an impressive woman who looked nearly seventy but stood tall like a pine tree, would sometimes come to visit them. Once, she and her husband tried to escape from a plantation near Savannah. They didn't succeed and were brought back; her husband received five hundred lashes, and while the white men on the plantation were watching the punishment, she was gathering her children and grandchildren, totaling twenty-two, in a nearby marsh to prepare for another attempt that night. They found a flat boat that had been deemed unseaworthy, boarded it—still under the old woman's direction—and drifted forty miles down the river to our lines. Trowbridge happened to be on the gunboat that picked them up, and he said that when the "flat" bumped against the side of the vessel, the grandmother stood tall, holding her youngest grandchild, and simply said, "My God! are we free?" In one of those coincidences that life often presents, her husband also escaped after his punishment and was picked up by the same gunboat.

I hardly need point out that my young lieutenants did not have to teach the principles of courage to this woman's grandchildren.

I hardly need to point out that my young lieutenants didn't have to teach the principles of courage to this woman's grandchildren.

I often asked myself why it was that, with this capacity of daring and endurance, they had not kept the land in a perpetual flame of insurrection; why, especially since the opening of the war, they had kept so still. The answer was to be found in the peculiar temperament of the races, in their religious faith, and in the habit of patience that centuries had fortified. The shrewder men all said substantially the same thing. What was the use of insurrection, where everything was against them? They had no knowledge, no money, no arms, no drill, no organization,—above all, no mutual confidence. It was the tradition among them that all insurrections were always betrayed by somebody. They had no mountain passes to defend like the Maroons of Jamaica,—no unpenetrable swamps, like the Maroons of Surinam. Where they had these, even on a small scale, they had used them,—as in certain swamps round Savannah and in the everglades of Florida, where they united with the Indians, and would stand fire—so I was told by General Saxton, who had fought them there—when the Indians would retreat.

I often wondered why, despite their courage and endurance, they hadn’t kept the land in a constant state of rebellion; especially since the war began, they had remained so quiet. The answer lay in the unique temperament of the races, their religious beliefs, and the patience built up over centuries. The smarter individuals all said pretty much the same thing. What was the point of rebellion when everything was stacked against them? They had no knowledge, no money, no weapons, no training, no organization—most importantly, no trust in each other. It was commonly believed among them that all rebellions were inevitably betrayed by someone. They didn’t have mountain passes to defend like the Maroons of Jamaica, or impenetrable swamps like the Maroons of Suriname. Where they did have such terrain, even on a small scale, they used it—as in certain swamps around Savannah and in the Florida everglades, where they allied with the Indians and would stand their ground, according to General Saxton, who fought them there, even when the Indians would retreat.

It always seemed to me that, had I been a slave, my life would have been one long scheme of insurrection. But I learned to respect the patient self-control of those who had waited till the course of events should open a better way. When it came they accepted it. Insurrection on their part would at once have divided the Northern sentiment; and a large part of our army would have joined with the Southern army to hunt them down. By their waiting till we needed them, their freedom was secured.

It always seemed to me that if I had been a slave, my life would have been one long plan for rebellion. But I learned to admire the patient self-control of those who waited for the right moment when circumstances would create a better opportunity. When it arrived, they accepted it. If they had revolted, it would have instantly split Northern opinions, and a significant portion of our army would have sided with the Southern army to track them down. By waiting until we needed them, they ensured their freedom.

Two things chiefly surprised me in their feeling toward their former masters,—the absence of affection and the absence of revenge. I expected to find a good deal of the patriarchal feeling. It always seemed to me a very ill-applied emotion, as connected with the facts and laws of American slavery,—still I expected to find it. I suppose that my men and their families and visitors may have had as much of it as the mass of freed slaves; but certainly they had not a particle. I never could cajole one of them, in his most discontented moment, into regretting "ole mas'r time" for a single instant. I never heard one speak of the masters except as natural enemies. Yet they were perfectly discriminating as to individuals; many of them claimed to have had kind owners, and some expressed great gratitude to them for particular favors received. It was not the individuals, but the ownership, of which they complained. That they saw to be a wrong which no special kindnesses could right. On this, as on all points connected with slavery, they understood the matter as clearly as Garrison or Phillips; the wisest philosophy could teach them nothing as to that, nor could any false philosophy befog them. After all, personal experience is the best logician.

Two things mainly surprised me about their feelings toward their former owners: the lack of affection and the lack of a desire for revenge. I expected to find some sense of a family-like connection. It always seemed to me a poorly placed emotion when considering the facts and laws of American slavery, yet I still expected to see it. I guess my men and their families and visitors might have felt as much as the average freed slaves, but they clearly did not feel it at all. I could never persuade any of them, even in their most unhappy moments, to long for "the old master days" for even a second. I never heard one of them refer to their masters except as natural enemies. Still, they were very discerning regarding individuals; many claimed to have had kind owners, and some expressed deep gratitude for specific favors they received. It wasn't the individuals they complained about, but the very concept of ownership, which they viewed as a wrong that no amount of kindness could fix. On this point, as with all matters related to slavery, they understood things as clearly as Garrison or Phillips; the best philosophy couldn't teach them anything on that issue, nor could any false philosophy confuse their views. After all, personal experience is the best teacher.

Certainly this indifference did not proceed from any want of personal affection, for they were the most affectionate people among whom I had ever lived. They attached themselves to every officer who deserved love, and to some who did not; and if they failed to show it to their masters, it proved the wrongfulness of the mastery. On the other hand, they rarely showed one gleam of revenge, and I shall never forget the self-control with which one of our best sergeants pointed out to me, at Jacksonville, the very place where one of his brothers had been hanged by the whites for leading a party of fugitive slaves. He spoke of it as a historic matter, without any bearing on the present issue.

Certainly, this indifference didn’t come from a lack of personal affection, because they were the most caring people I had ever lived among. They formed attachments to every officer who deserved love, and even to some who didn’t; and if they failed to show it to their superiors, it revealed the injustice of that authority. On the flip side, they hardly ever showed any sign of revenge, and I’ll never forget the self-control with which one of our best sergeants pointed out to me, in Jacksonville, the exact spot where one of his brothers had been hanged by white people for leading a group of escaped slaves. He discussed it as a historical fact, with no connection to the current situation.

But side by side with this faculty of patience, there was a certain tropical element in the men, a sort of fiery ecstasy when aroused, which seemed to link them by blood with the French Turcos, and made them really resemble their natural enemies, the Celts, far more than the Anglo-Saxon temperament. To balance this there were great individual resources when alone,—a sort of Indian wiliness and subtlety of resource. Their gregariousness and love of drill made them more easy to keep in hand than white American troops, who rather like to straggle or go in little squads, looking out for themselves, without being bothered with officers. The blacks prefer organization.

But alongside their ability to be patient, there was a certain hot-blooded quality in the men, a kind of passionate intensity when provoked, that seemed to connect them by blood with the French Turcos and made them resemble their natural enemies, the Celts, much more than the Anglo-Saxon temperament. To balance this, they had great personal resources when alone—a sort of cunning and cleverness. Their tendency to be social and their enjoyment of structure made them easier to manage than white American troops, who tend to spread out or form small groups, looking out for themselves without wanting to be bothered by officers. The Black soldiers prefer organization.

The point of inferiority that I always feared, though I never had occasion to prove it, was that they might show less fibre, less tough and dogged resistance, than whites, during a prolonged trial,—a long, disastrous march, for instance, or the hopeless defence of a besieged town. I should not be afraid of their mutinying or running away, but of their drooping and dying. It might not turn out so; but I mention it for the sake of fairness, and to avoid overstating the merits of these troops. As to the simple general fact of courage and reliability I think no officer in our camp ever thought of there being any difference between black and white. And certainly the opinions of these officers, who for years risked their lives every moment on the fidelity of their men, were worth more than those of all the world beside.

The fear of inferiority that I always had, even though I never had to prove it, was that they might show less resilience and toughness than white soldiers during a long test—like a grueling march or the desperate defense of a besieged city. I wasn't worried about them mutinying or running away, but about them losing heart and giving up. It might not turn out that way, but I mention it for the sake of honesty, to avoid exaggerating the strengths of these troops. Regarding the simple fact of courage and reliability, I believe no officer in our camp ever thought there was a difference between black and white soldiers. And certainly, the opinions of these officers, who put their lives on the line every day based on the loyalty of their men, were worth more than those of anyone else.

No doubt there were reasons why this particular war was an especially favorable test of the colored soldiers. They had more to fight for than the whites. Besides the flag and the Union, they had home and wife and child. They fought with ropes round their necks, and when orders were issued that the officers of colored troops should be put to death on capture, they took a grim satisfaction. It helped their esprit de corps immensely. With us, at least, there was to be no play-soldier. Though they had begun with a slight feeling of inferiority to the white troops, this compliment substituted a peculiar sense of self-respect. And even when the new colored regiments began to arrive from the North my men still pointed out this difference,—that in case of ultimate defeat, the Northern troops, black or white, would go home, while the First South Carolina must fight it out or be re-enslaved. This was one thing that made the St. John's River so attractive to them and even to me;—it was so much nearer the everglades. I used seriously to ponder, during the darker periods of the war, whether I might not end my days as an outlaw,—a leader of Maroons.

No doubt there were reasons why this particular war was a particularly good test for the Black soldiers. They had more to fight for than the white soldiers. Besides the flag and the Union, they had their homes, wives, and children. They fought with ropes around their necks, and when orders were given that the officers of Black troops should be executed if captured, it gave them a grim satisfaction. It boosted their esprit de corps immensely. With us, there would definitely be no playing soldier. Although they initially felt slightly inferior to the white troops, this acknowledgment replaced it with a unique sense of self-respect. Even when the new Black regiments began to arrive from the North, my men still pointed out this difference—that in case of ultimate defeat, the Northern troops, whether Black or white, would go home, while the First South Carolina would have to fight till the end or face re-enslavement. This was one thing that made the St. John's River so appealing to them—and to me; it was so much closer to the Everglades. I used to seriously consider, during the darker times of the war, whether I might end my days as an outlaw—a leader of Maroons.

Meanwhile, I used to try to make some capital for the Northern troops, in their estimate, by pointing out that it was a disinterested thing in these men from the free States, to come down there and fight, that the slaves might be free. But they were apt keenly to reply, that many of the white soldiers disavowed this object, and said that that was not the object of the war, nor even likely to be its end. Some of them even repeated Mr. Seward's unfortunate words to Mr. Adams, which some general had been heard to quote. So, on the whole, I took nothing by the motion, as was apt to be the case with those who spoke a good word for our Government, in those vacillating and half proslavery days.

Meanwhile, I used to try to generate some support for the Northern troops by emphasizing that it was a selfless act for those from the free states to come down and fight for the freedom of the slaves. However, they often replied sharply that many of the white soldiers rejected this goal, insisting that it wasn’t the aim of the war, nor was it likely to be its outcome. In fact, some of them even quoted Mr. Seward's unfortunate remarks to Mr. Adams, which some general had been heard to repeat. Overall, I gained nothing from that effort, which frequently happened to those who spoke positively about our Government during those uncertain and somewhat pro-slavery times.

At any rate, this ungenerous discouragement had this good effect, that it touched their pride; they would deserve justice, even if they did not obtain it. This pride was afterwards severely tested during the disgraceful period when the party of repudiation in Congress temporarily deprived them of their promised pay. In my regiment the men never mutinied, nor even threatened mutiny; they seemed to make it a matter of honor to do then: part, even if the Government proved a defaulter; but one third of them, including the best men in the regiment, quietly refused to take a dollar's pay, at the reduced price. "We'se gib our sogerin' to de Guv'ment, Gunnel," they said, "but we won't 'spise ourselves so much for take de seben dollar." They even made a contemptuous ballad, of which I once caught a snatch.

At any rate, this unfair discouragement had the beneficial effect of pricking their pride; they felt they deserved justice, even if they didn't get it. This pride was later put to the test during the shameful period when the group advocating for repudiation in Congress temporarily denied them their promised pay. In my regiment, the soldiers never mutinied, nor did they even threaten to. They seemed to consider it a matter of honor to complete their duty, even if the Government failed to fulfill its obligations; however, one-third of them, including the best men in the regiment, quietly refused to accept any pay at the reduced rate. "We're giving our service to the Government, Colonel," they said, "but we won't lower ourselves to take seven dollars." They even created a mocking song, of which I once caught a snippet.

  "Ten dollar a month!
    Tree ob dat for clothin'l
  Go to Washington
    Fight for Linkum's darter!"
"Ten dollars a month!  
  What’s that for clothing?  
  Go to Washington  
  Fight for Lincoln's daughter!"

This "Lincoln's daughter" stood for the Goddess of Liberty, it would seem. They would be true to her, but they would not take the half-pay. This was contrary to my advice, and to that of other officers; but I now think it was wise. Nothing less than this would have called the attention of the American people to this outrageous fraud.*

This "Lincoln's daughter" symbolized the Goddess of Liberty, it seems. They would remain loyal to her, but they wouldn’t accept the half-pay. This went against my advice and that of other officers; however, I now believe it was a smart choice. Nothing less than this would have brought the attention of the American people to this outrageous fraud.*

* See Appendix.

* See Appendix.

The same slow forecast had often marked their action in other ways. One of our ablest sergeants, Henry Mclntyre, who had earned two dollars and a half per day as a master-carpenter in Florida, and paid one dollar and a half to his master, told me that he had deliberately refrained from learning to read, because that knowledge exposed the slaves to so much more watching and suspicion. This man and a few others had built on contract the greater part of the town of Micanopy in Florida, and was a thriving man when his accustomed discretion failed for once, and he lost all. He named his child William Lincoln, and it brought upon him such suspicion that he had to make his escape.

The same slow approach had often characterized their actions in various ways. One of our most skilled sergeants, Henry McIntyre, who earned two and a half dollars a day as a master carpenter in Florida and paid one and a half dollars to his master, told me he had intentionally avoided learning to read because that knowledge made slaves face much more scrutiny and suspicion. This man and a few others had built most of the town of Micanopy in Florida on contract, and he was doing well until one moment of poor judgment led to everything falling apart. He named his child William Lincoln, which raised so much suspicion that he had to escape.

I cannot conceive what people at the North mean by speaking of the negroes as a bestial or brutal race. Except in some insensibility to animal pain, I never knew of an act in my regiment which I should call brutal. In reading Kay's "Condition of the English Peasantry" I was constantly struck with the unlikeness of my men to those therein described. This could not proceed from my prejudices as an abolitionist, for they would have led me the other way, and indeed I had once written a little essay to show the brutalizing influences of slavery. I learned to think that we abolitionists had underrated the suffering produced by slavery among the negroes, but had overrated the demoralization. Or rather, we did not know how the religious temperament of the negroes had checked the demoralization. Yet again, it must be admitted that this temperament, born of sorrow and oppression, is far more marked in the slave than in the native African.

I can’t understand what people in the North mean when they describe Black people as a savage or brutal race. Aside from maybe a lack of sensitivity to animal suffering, I’ve never seen an action in my regiment that I would call brutal. While reading Kay's "Condition of the English Peasantry," I was always struck by how different my men were from those described in the book. This couldn’t have come from my biases as an abolitionist, since those would have led me to think differently. I even wrote a short essay once about how slavery brutalizes people. I came to realize that we abolitionists had underestimated the pain caused by slavery for Black people but overestimated the level of demoralization. Or rather, we didn’t fully understand how the religious nature of Black people helped to mitigate that demoralization. Still, it has to be acknowledged that this temperament, shaped by suffering and oppression, is much more pronounced in enslaved individuals than in native Africans.

Theorize as we may, there was certainly in our camp an average tone of propriety which all visitors noticed, and which was not created, but only preserved by discipline. I was always struck, not merely by the courtesy of the men, but also by a certain sober decency of language. If a man had to report to me any disagreeable fact, for instance, he was sure to do it with gravity and decorum, and not blurt it out in an offensive way. And it certainly was a significant fact that the ladies of our camp, when we were so fortunate as to have such guests, the young wives, especially, of the adjutant and quartermaster, used to go among the tents when the men were off duty, in order to hear their big pupils read and spell, without the slightest fear of annoyance. I do not mean direct annoyance or insult, for no man who valued his life would have ventured that in presence of the others, but I mean the annoyance of accidentally seeing or hearing improprieties not intended for them. They both declared that they would not have moved about with anything like the same freedom in any white camp they had ever entered, and it always roused their indignation to hear the negro race called brutal or depraved.

Theorize as we might, our camp definitely had a general sense of order that all visitors noticed, which wasn’t created but maintained through discipline. I was always impressed, not just by the men’s politeness, but also by a certain sober decency in their language. If a man had to inform me about any unpleasant issue, he was sure to do it with seriousness and respect, rather than blurting it out offensively. It was also notable that the women in our camp, especially the young wives of the adjutant and quartermaster when we were lucky enough to have them visit, would stroll among the tents when the men were off duty to listen to their older students read and spell, without any fear of being bothered. I don’t mean direct irritation or insult, as no man who valued his life would have dared to act that way in front of the others, but rather the annoyance of accidentally witnessing or hearing things they shouldn’t. They both stated that they wouldn’t have felt the same freedom in any all-white camp they had ever been to, and it always angered them to hear the black community referred to as brutal or depraved.

This came partly from natural good manners, partly from the habit of deference, partly from ignorance of the refined and ingenious evil which is learned in large towns; but a large part came from their strongly religious temperament. Their comparative freedom from swearing, for instance,—an abstinence which I fear military life did not strengthen,—was partly a matter of principle. Once I heard one of them say to another, in a transport of indignation, "Ha-a-a, boy, s'pose I no be a Christian, I cuss you sol"—which was certainly drawing pretty hard upon the bridle. "Cuss," however, was a generic term for all manner of evil speaking; they would say, "He cuss me fool," or "He cuss me coward," as if the essence of propriety were in harsh and angry speech,—which I take to be good ethics. But certainly, if Uncle Toby could have recruited his army in Flanders from our ranks, their swearing would have ceased to be historic.

This came from a mix of natural good manners, a habit of showing respect, and a lack of awareness of the sophisticated and clever harm that can be found in big cities; however, a big part of it was due to their strong religious nature. For example, their relative lack of swearing—something I fear military life didn’t help with—was partly a matter of principle. Once, I heard one of them say to another, in a fit of anger, "Ha-a-a, boy, if I wasn't a Christian, I’d curse you!"—which was definitely pushing it a bit. "Curse," though, was a catch-all term for all kinds of bad language; they would say, "He cursed me fool," or "He cursed me coward," as if the essence of being proper was in harsh and angry words—which I consider to be good ethics. But if Uncle Toby could have recruited his army in Flanders from our group, their swearing would have stopped being noteworthy.

It used to seem to me that never, since Cromwell's time, had there been soldiers in whom the religious element held such a place. "A religious army," "a gospel army," were their frequent phrases. In their prayer-meetings there was always a mingling, often quaint enough, of the warlike and the pious. "If each one of us was a praying man," said Corporal Thomas Long in a sermon, "it appears to me that we could fight as well with prayers as with bullets,—for the Lord has said that if you have faith even as a grain of mustard-seed cut into four parts, you can say to the sycamore-tree, Arise, and it will come up." And though Corporal Long may have got a little perplexed in his botany, his faith proved itself by works, for he volunteered and went many miles on a solitary scouting expedition into the enemy's country in Florida, and got back safe, after I had given him up for lost.

It used to seem to me that never, since Cromwell's time, had there been soldiers with such a strong religious presence. "A religious army," "a gospel army," were their common phrases. In their prayer meetings, there was always a mix, often quite amusing, of the martial and the devout. "If each of us were a praying man," said Corporal Thomas Long in a sermon, "it seems to me we could fight just as well with prayers as with bullets—because the Lord said that if you have faith even as small as a mustard seed, you can tell the sycamore tree to uproot itself, and it will." And even though Corporal Long might have gotten a bit confused about his botany, his faith showed in action, as he volunteered and went miles on a solo scouting mission into enemy territory in Florida, returning safely after I had almost given up on him.

The extremes of religious enthusiasm I did not venture to encourage, for I could not do it honestly; neither did I discourage them, but simply treated them with respect, and let them have their way, so long as they did not interfere with discipline. In general they promoted it. The mischievous little drummer-boys, whose scrapes and quarrels were the torment of my existence, might be seen kneeling together in their tents to say their prayers at night, and I could hope that their slumbers were blessed by some spirit of peace, such as certainly did not rule over their waking. The most reckless and daring fellows in the regiment were perfect fatalists in theur confidence that God would watch over them, and that if they died, it would be because theur time had come. This almost excessive faith, and the love of freedom and of their families, all co-operated with their pride as soldiers to make them do their duty. I could not have spared any of these incentives. Those of our officers who were personally the least influenced by such considerations, still saw the need of encouraging them among the men.

I didn’t actively support extreme religious enthusiasm because I couldn't do so honestly; however, I didn’t discourage it either. I treated it with respect and let them express themselves as long as they didn’t disturb discipline. Generally, they actually helped maintain it. The mischievous little drummer boys, whose antics and fights were the bane of my existence, could often be seen kneeling together in their tents at night to say their prayers. I hoped their sleep was peaceful, unlike their waking moments. The most reckless and daring guys in the regiment had an unwavering faith that God would protect them, convinced that if they died, it was simply their time. This intense faith, combined with their love of freedom and family, fueled their pride as soldiers and motivated them to do their duty. I couldn't have done without these motivations. Even those officers who were least swayed by such beliefs recognized the importance of encouraging them among the troops.

I am bound to say that this strongly devotional turn was not always accompanied by the practical virtues; but neither was it strikingly divorced from them. A few men, I remember, who belonged to the ancient order of hypocrites, but not many. Old Jim Cushman was our favorite representative scamp. He used to vex his righteous soul over the admission of the unregenerate to prayer-meetings, and went off once shaking his head and muttering, "Too much goat shout wid de sheep." But he who objected to this profane admixture used to get our mess-funds far more hopelessly mixed with his own, when he went out to buy chickens. And I remember that, on being asked by our Major, in that semi-Ethiopian dialect into which we sometimes slid, "How much wife you got, Jim?" the veteran replied, with a sort of penitence for lost opportunities, "On'y but four, Sah!"

I have to say that this strong devotion wasn’t always paired with practical virtues, but it also wasn’t completely separate from them. I remember a few guys who were part of the old hypocrite crowd, but not many. Old Jim Cushman was our favorite troublemaker. He used to get all worked up about letting the unrepentant come to prayer meetings, and once he walked off shaking his head and muttering, "Too much goat shout with the sheep." But the guy who complained about this inappropriate mix ended up getting our food funds mixed up with his own even more hopelessly when he went out to buy chickens. I also remember when our Major asked him, in that semi-Ethiopian dialect we sometimes used, "How many wives you got, Jim?" the old veteran replied, with a hint of regret for missed chances, "Only four, Sah!"

Another man of somewhat similar quality went among us by the name of Henry Ward Beecher, from a remarkable resemblance in face and figure to that sturdy divine. I always felt a sort of admiration for this worthy, because of the thoroughness with which he outwitted me, and the sublime impudence in which he culminated. He got a series of passes from me, every week or two, to go and see his wife on a neighboring plantation, and finally, when this resource seemed exhausted, he came boldly for one more pass, that he might go and be married.

Another man who was somewhat similar to us went by the name of Henry Ward Beecher, due to a striking resemblance in face and body to that strong preacher. I always felt a kind of admiration for this guy because of how completely he outsmarted me and the incredible boldness with which he succeeded. He managed to get a series of passes from me every week or so to visit his wife on a nearby plantation, and finally, when it seemed like that source was running dry, he confidently came asking for one more pass so he could go and get married.

We used to quote him a good deal, also, as a sample of a certain Shakespearian boldness of personification in which the men sometimes indulged. Once, I remember, his captain had given him a fowling-piece to clean. Henry Ward had left it in the captain's tent, and the latter, finding it, had transferred the job to some one else.

We often quoted him as an example of a particular boldness in personification that some men sometimes displayed. I remember one time when his captain had asked him to clean a shotgun. Henry Ward had left it in the captain's tent, and when the captain found it, he assigned the task to someone else.

Then came a confession, in this precise form, with many dignified gesticulations:—

Then came a confession, exactly like this, with many dignified gestures:—

"Cappen! I took dat gun, and I put bun in Cappen tent. Den I look, and de gun not dar! Den Conscience say, Cappen mus' hab gib dat gun to somebody else for clean. Den I say, Conscience, you reason correck."

"Cappen! I took that gun, and I put a bun in Cappen's tent. Then I looked, and the gun wasn't there! Then my Conscience said, Cappen must have given that gun to someone else to clean. Then I said, Conscience, you reason correctly."

Compare Lancelot Gobbo's soliloquy in the "Two Gentlemen of Verona"!

Compare Lancelot Gobbo's speech in the "Two Gentlemen of Verona"!

Still, I maintain that, as a whole, the men were remarkably free from inconvenient vices. There was no more lying and stealing than in average white regiments. The surgeon was not much troubled by shamming sickness, and there were not a great many complaints of theft. There was less quarrelling than among white soldiers, and scarcely ever an instance of drunkenness. Perhaps the influence of their officers had something to do with this; for not a ration of whiskey was ever issued to the men, nor did I ever touch it, while in the army, nor approve a requisition for any of the officers, without which it could not easily be obtained. In this respect our surgeons fortunately agreed with me, and we never had reason to regret it. I believe the use of ardent spirits to be as useless and injurious in the army as on board ship, and among the colored troops, especially, who had never been accustomed to it, I think that it did only harm.

Still, I believe that, overall, the men were remarkably free from bothersome vices. There was no more lying and stealing than in the average white regiments. The surgeon didn’t deal much with fake illnesses, and there weren’t many complaints about theft. There was less fighting than among white soldiers, and hardly ever any cases of drunkenness. The officers probably had something to do with this; not a single ration of whiskey was ever given to the men, and I never touched it while in the army, nor approved a request for any from the officers, as that was the only way it could easily be obtained. In this regard, our surgeons thankfully agreed with me, and we never had reason to regret it. I believe that the use of hard liquor is just as unnecessary and harmful in the army as it is on a ship, and especially among the colored troops, who had never been accustomed to it, I think it only caused harm.

The point of greatest laxity in their moral habits—the want of a high standard of chastity—was not one which affected their camp life to any great extent, and it therefore came less under my observation. But I found to my relief that, whatever their deficiency in this respect, it was modified by the general quality of their temperament, and indicated rather a softening and relaxation than a hardening and brutalizing of their moral natures. Any insult or violence in this direction was a thing unknown. I never heard of an instance. It was not uncommon for men to have two or three wives in different plantations,—the second, or remoter, partner being called a "'broad wife,"—i.e. wife abroad. But the whole tendency was toward marriage, and this state of things was only regarded as a bequest from "mas'r time."

The biggest issue with their moral habits—the lack of a strong standard for chastity—didn't really impact their camp life much, so I noticed it less. However, I was relieved to find that, despite their shortcomings in this area, it was softened by the overall nature of their character and showed more of a gentleness and relaxation rather than a hardening or brutalization of their morals. Any kind of insult or violence in this regard was completely unheard of. I never came across a single instance. It wasn't uncommon for men to have two or three wives on different plantations—where the second or further partner was called a "'broad wife," meaning a wife abroad. But the general trend was toward marriage, and this situation was mostly seen as a leftover from "mas'r time."

I knew a great deal about their marriages, for they often consulted me, and took my counsel as lovers are wont to do,—that is, when it pleased their fancy. Sometimes they would consult their captains first, and then come to me in despairing appeal. "Cap'n Scroby [Trowbridge] he acvise me not for marry dis lady, 'cause she hab seben chil'en. What for use? Cap'n Scroby can't lub for me. I mus' lub for myself, and I lub he." I remember that on this occasion "he" stood by, a most unattractive woman, jet black, with an old pink muslin dress, torn white cotton gloves, and a very flowery bonnet, that must have descended through generations of tawdry mistresses.

I knew a lot about their marriages because they often came to me for advice, taking my guidance like lovers usually do—when it suited them. Sometimes they would ask their captains first and then come to me, looking desperate. "Cap'n Scroby [Trowbridge] advised me not to marry this lady because she has seven kids. What's the point? Cap'n Scroby can't love me. I have to love myself, and I love him." I remember that on this occasion, "he" was standing there, a very unattractive woman, jet black, wearing an old pink muslin dress, torn white cotton gloves, and a really flowery bonnet that seemed to have been passed down through many generations of cheap mistresses.

I felt myself compelled to reaffirm the decision of the inferior court. The result was as usual. They were married the next day, and I believe that she proved an excellent wife, though she had seven children, whose father was also in the regiment. If she did not, I know many others who did, and certainly I have never seen more faithful or more happy marriages than among that people.

I felt I had to confirm the decision of the lower court. The outcome was typical. They got married the next day, and I believe she made a great wife, even though she had seven kids, whose father was also in the military. If she didn't, I know plenty of others who did, and I’ve honestly never seen more loyal or happier marriages than among those people.

The question was often asked, whether the Southern slaves or the Northern free blacks made the best soldiers. It was a compliment to both classes that each officer usually preferred those whom he had personally commanded. I preferred those who had been slaves, for their greater docility and affectionateness, for the powerful stimulus which their new freedom gave, and for the fact that they were fighting, in a manner, for their own homes and firesides. Every one of these considerations afforded a special aid to discipline, and cemented a peculiar tie of sympathy between them and their officers. They seemed like clansmen, and had a more confiding and filial relation to us than seemed to me to exist in the Northern colored regiments.

The question was often asked whether the Southern slaves or the Northern free blacks made the best soldiers. It was a compliment to both groups that each officer usually favored those they had personally commanded. I preferred those who had been slaves, for their greater willingness to follow orders and their affection, for the strong motivation their new freedom provided, and for the fact that they were, in a way, fighting for their own homes and families. Each of these factors offered a special advantage for discipline and created a unique bond of sympathy between them and their officers. They felt like family, and had a more trusting and affectionate relationship with us than I noticed in the Northern colored regiments.

So far as the mere habits of slavery went, they were a poor preparation for military duty. Inexperienced officers often assumed that, because these men had been slaves before enlistment, they would bear to be treated as such afterwards. Experience proved the contrary. The more strongly we marked the difference between the slave and the soldier, the better for the regiment. One half of military duty lies in obedience, the other half in self-respect. A soldier without self-respect is worthless. Consequently there were no regiments in which it was so important to observe the courtesies and proprieties of military life as in these. I had to caution the officers to be more than usually particular in returning the salutations of the men; to be very careful in their dealings with those on picket or guard-duty; and on no account to omit the titles of the non-commissioned officers. So, in dealing out punishments, we had carefully to avoid all that was brutal and arbitrary, all that savored of the overseer. Any such dealing found them as obstinate and contemptuous as was Topsy when Miss Ophelia undertook to chastise her. A system of light punishments, rigidly administered according to the prescribed military forms, had more weight with them than any amount of angry severity. To make them feel as remote as possible from the plantation, this was essential. By adhering to this, and constantly appealing to their pride as soldiers and their sense of duty, we were able to maintain a high standard of discipline,—so, at least, the inspecting officers said,—and to get rid, almost entirely, of the more degrading class of punishments,—standing on barrels, tying up by the thumbs, and the ball and chain.

As far as the habits of slavery go, they didn’t really prepare these men for military duty. Inexperienced officers often thought that since these men had been slaves before joining, they could be treated the same way afterward. Experience showed the opposite. The more we emphasized the difference between a slave and a soldier, the better it was for the regiment. Military duty involves obedience and self-respect; a soldier without self-respect is useless. Therefore, it was crucial to observe the courtesies and norms of military life in these regiments. I had to remind the officers to be especially attentive in returning the soldiers’ greetings, to be very careful when interacting with those on picket or guard duty, and absolutely to use the proper titles for the non-commissioned officers. In terms of punishment, we needed to avoid anything brutal or arbitrary, anything that resembled the behavior of an overseer. Any harsh treatment only made them as stubborn and disrespectful as Topsy was when Miss Ophelia tried to discipline her. A system of light punishments, applied strictly according to military protocols, had much more influence than severe anger. Ensuring they felt as far removed from the plantation as possible was essential. By doing this and continually appealing to their pride as soldiers and their sense of duty, we managed to maintain a high standard of discipline—at least, that’s what the inspecting officers reported—and we nearly eliminated the more humiliating forms of punishment, like standing on barrels, tying up by the thumbs, and using ball and chain.

In all ways we had to educate their self-respect. For instance, at first they disliked to obey their own non-commissioned officers. "I don't want him to play de white man ober me," was a sincere objection. They had been so impressed with a sense of inferiority that the distinction extended to the very principles of honor. "I ain't got colored-man principles," said Corporal London Simmons, indignantly defending himself from some charge before me. "I'se got white-gemman principles. I'se do my best. If Cap'n tell me to take a man, s'pose de man be as big as a house, I'll clam hold on him till I die, inception [excepting] I'm sick."

In every way, we had to help them build their self-respect. For example, at first, they were resistant to following their own non-commissioned officers. "I don't want him to act like he's better than me," was a genuine complaint. They had been so affected by feelings of inferiority that it impacted their understanding of honor. "I don't have lower-class principles," Corporal London Simmons said, defending himself indignantly against some accusation in front of me. "I have upper-class principles. I do my best. If the Captain tells me to take a man, even if the man is as big as a house, I'll hold on to him until I die, unless I'm sick."

But it was plain that this feeling was a bequest of slavery, which military life would wear off. We impressed it upon them that they did not obey their officers because they were white, but because they were their officers, just as the Captain must obey me, and I the General; that we were all subject to military law, and protected by it in turn. Then we taught them to take pride in having good material for noncommissioned officers among themselves, and in obeying them. On my arrival there was one white first sergeant, and it was a question whether to appoint others. This I prevented, but left that one, hoping the men themselves would at last petition for his removal, which at length they did. He was at once detailed on other duty. The picturesqueness of the regiment suffered, for he was very tall and fair, and I liked to see him step forward in the centre when the line of first sergeants came together at dress-parade. But it was a help to discipline to eliminate the Saxon, for it recognized a principle.

But it was clear that this feeling was a leftover from slavery, which military life would eventually change. We made it clear to them that they didn't obey their officers because they were white, but because they were their officers, just like the Captain must obey me, and I must obey the General; we were all under military law, which in turn protected us. Then we showed them how to take pride in having good candidates for noncommissioned officers from their own ranks and in following their lead. When I arrived, there was one white first sergeant, and it was a question of whether to appoint more. I stopped that but kept him on, hoping the men would eventually ask for his removal, which they did in the end. He was immediately reassigned to other duties. The visual appeal of the regiment suffered because he was very tall and fair, and I liked to see him step forward in the center during dress-parade with the other first sergeants. But removing the white sergeant helped with discipline since it acknowledged a principle.

Afterwards I had excellent battalion-drills without a single white officer, by way of experiment; putting each company under a sergeant, and going through the most difficult movements, such as division-columns and oblique-squares. And as to actual discipline, it is doing no injustice to the line-officers of the regiment to say that none of them received from the men more implicit obedience than Color-Sergeant Rivers. I should have tried to obtain commissions for him and several others before I left the regiment, had their literary education been sufficient; and such an attempt was finally made by Lieutenant-Colonel Trowbridge, my successor in immediate command, but it proved unsuccessful. It always seemed to me an insult to those brave men to have novices put over their heads, on the ground of color alone; and the men felt it the more keenly as they remained longer in service. There were more than seven hundred enlisted men in the regiment, when mustered out after more than three years' service. The ranks had been kept full by enlistment, but there were only fourteen line-officers instead of the full thirty. The men who should have filled those vacancies were doing duty as sergeants in the ranks.

After that, I led some great battalion drills without a single white officer, just to see how it would go; I assigned each company to a sergeant and went through the toughest movements, like division-columns and oblique-squares. When it comes to actual discipline, it's fair to say that none of the line officers in the regiment received more complete obedience from the men than Color-Sergeant Rivers. I would have tried to get him and a few others commissioned before I left the regiment if their education had been adequate; such an attempt was eventually made by Lieutenant-Colonel Trowbridge, who took over my command, but it didn't work out. It always felt like an insult to those brave men to have inexperienced officers placed over them just because of their skin color; the men felt this even more intensely as they stayed in service longer. There were over seven hundred enlisted men in the regiment when it was disbanded after more than three years of service. The ranks were kept full through enlistments, but there were only fourteen line officers instead of the full thirty. The men who should have filled those spots were serving as sergeants in the ranks.

In what respect were the colored troops a source of disappointment? To me in one respect only,—that of health. Their health improved, indeed, as they grew more familiar with military life; but I think that neither their physical nor moral temperament gave them that toughness, that obstinate purpose of living, which sustains the more materialistic Anglo-Saxon. They had not, to be sure, the same predominant diseases, suffering in the pulmonary, not in the digestive organs; but they suffered a good deal. They felt malaria less, but they were more easily choked by dust and made ill by dampness. On the other hand, they submitted more readily to sanitary measures than whites, and, with efficient officers, were more easily kept clean. They were injured throughout the army by an undue share of fatigue duty, which is not only exhausting but demoralizing to a soldier; by the un-suitableness of the rations, which gave them salt meat instead of rice and hominy; and by the lack of good medical attendance. Their childlike constitutions peculiarly needed prompt and efficient surgical care; but almost all the colored troops were enlisted late in the war, when it was hard to get good surgeons for any regiments, and especially for these. In this respect I had nothing to complain of, since there were no surgeons in the army for whom I would have exchanged my own.

In what ways were the colored troops disappointing? For me, it was only in one way—health. Their health did improve as they became more accustomed to military life, but I don’t think their physical or moral temperament had the resilience or stubborn will to survive that defines the more materialistic Anglo-Saxon. They didn’t have the same prevalent diseases, as they struggled with respiratory issues rather than digestive problems, but they still suffered quite a bit. They were less affected by malaria, but they were more easily hindered by dust and made sick by dampness. On the plus side, they were more willing to follow health guidelines than white soldiers, and with capable officers, they stayed cleaner. However, they were unfairly burdened throughout the army with excessive fatigue duty, which is not only tiring but also demoralizing for a soldier; the rations were inappropriate, giving them salted meat instead of rice and hominy; and they faced a shortage of good medical care. Their more vulnerable bodies especially required quick and effective surgical attention, but most of the colored troops were enlisted late in the war, when it was difficult to find quality surgeons for any regiment, especially for them. In this regard, I had no complaints, as there were no surgeons in the army I would trade mine for.

And this late arrival on the scene affected not only the medical supervision of the colored troops, but their opportunity for a career. It is not my province to write their history, nor to vindicate them, nor to follow them upon those larger fields compared with which the adventures of my regiment appear but a partisan warfare. Yet this, at least, may be said. The operations on the South Atlantic coast, which long seemed a merely subordinate and incidental part of the great contest, proved to be one of the final pivots on which it turned. All now admit that the fate of the Confederacy was decided by Sherman's march to the sea. Port Royal was the objective point to which he marched, and he found the Department of the South, when he reached it, held almost exclusively by colored troops. Next to the merit of those who made the march was that of those who held open the door. That service will always remain among the laurels of the black regiments.

And this late arrival impacted not just the medical oversight of the colored troops, but also their chances for a career. It's not my place to write their history, defend them, or follow them into those larger arenas where the exploits of my regiment seem like mere partisan skirmishes. However, I can say this: the operations on the South Atlantic coast, which once seemed like a minor and incidental aspect of the larger conflict, turned out to be one of the key turning points. Everyone now agrees that the fate of the Confederacy was sealed by Sherman's march to the sea. Port Royal was the destination he aimed for, and when he arrived, he found the Department of the South almost entirely occupied by colored troops. Right alongside the bravery of those who made the march was the valor of those who kept the door open. That contribution will always be remembered as one of the triumphs of the black regiments.





Chapter 13. Conclusion

My personal forebodings proved to be correct, and so were the threats of the surgeons. In May, 1864, I went home invalided, was compelled to resign in October from the same cause, and never saw the First South Carolina again. Nor did any one else see it under that appellation, for about that time its name was changed to the Thirty-Third United States Colored Troops, "a most vague and heartless baptism," as the man in the story says. It was one of those instances of injudicious sacrifice of esprit de corps which were so frequent in our army. All the pride of my men was centred in "de Fus' Souf"; the very words were a recognition of the loyal South as against the disloyal. To make the matter worse, it had been originally designed to apply the new numbering only to the new regiments, and so the early numbers were all taken up before the older regiments came in. The governors of States, by especial effort, saved their colored troops from this chagrin; but we found here, as more than once before, the disadvantage of having no governor to stand by us. "It's a far cry to Loch Awe," said the Highland proverb. We knew to our cost that it was a far cry to Washington in those days, unless an officer left his duty and stayed there all the time.

My personal fears turned out to be true, and so did the warnings from the surgeons. In May 1864, I went home as an invalid, had to resign in October for the same reason, and never saw the First South Carolina again. No one else saw it under that name either, because around that time it was renamed the Thirty-Third United States Colored Troops, “a most vague and heartless baptism,” as the guy in the story puts it. This was one of those unfortunate instances of carelessly sacrificing the team spirit that were so common in our army. All the pride of my men was wrapped up in "de Fus' Souf"; the very name acknowledged the loyal South versus the disloyal. To make matters worse, it had originally been planned to use the new numbering only for the new regiments, so the early numbers were all assigned before the older regiments came in. The governors of States made special efforts to protect their colored troops from this embarrassment; but we found, as we had before, the drawback of not having a governor to support us. "It's a far cry to Loch Awe," said the Highland proverb. We knew all too well that it was a long way to Washington back then, unless an officer abandoned their post and stayed there all the time.

In June, 1864, the regiment was ordered to Folly Island, and remained there and on Cole's Island till the siege of Charleston was done. It took part in the battle of Honey Hill, and in the capture of a fort on James Island, of which Corporal Robert Vendross wrote triumphantly in a letter, "When we took the pieces we found that we recapt our own pieces back that we lost on Willtown Revear (River) and thank the Lord did not lose but seven men out of our regiment."

In June 1864, the regiment was ordered to Folly Island, where it stayed until the siege of Charleston ended. It participated in the battle of Honey Hill and in the capture of a fort on James Island, which Corporal Robert Vendross proudly described in a letter: "When we took the fort, we found that we got back our own artillery pieces that we lost on Willtown River, and thankfully, we only lost seven men from our regiment."

In February, 1865, the regiment was ordered to Charleston to do provost and guard duty, in March to Savannah, in June to Hamburg and Aiken, in September to Charleston and its neighborhood, and was finally mustered out of service—after being detained beyond its three years, so great was the scarcity of troops—on the 9th of February, 1866. With dramatic fitness this muster-out took place at Fort Wagner, above the graves of Shaw and his men. I give in the Appendix the farewell address of Lieutenant-Colonel Trowbridge, who commanded the regiment from the time I left it. Brevet Brigadier-General W. T. Bennett, of the One Hundred and Second United States Colored Troops, who was assigned to the command, never actually held it, being always in charge of a brigade.

In February 1865, the regiment was sent to Charleston for provost and guard duty, then to Savannah in March, Hamburg and Aiken in June, back to Charleston and the surrounding area in September, and was finally mustered out of service—after being kept beyond its three-year term due to the severe lack of troops—on February 9, 1866. Fittingly, this muster-out occurred at Fort Wagner, above the graves of Shaw and his men. I’ve included Lieutenant-Colonel Trowbridge's farewell address in the Appendix; he commanded the regiment after I left. Brevet Brigadier-General W. T. Bennett, from the One Hundred and Second United States Colored Troops, was assigned to command, but he never officially held it, as he was always in charge of a brigade.

The officers and men are scattered far and wide. One of our captains was a member of the South Carolina Constitutional Convention, and is now State Treasurer; three of our sergeants were in that Convention, including Sergeant Prince Rivers; and he and Sergeant Henry Hayne are still members of the State Legislature. Both in that State and hi Florida the former members of the regiment are generally prospering, so far as I can hear. The increased self-respect of army life fitted them to do the duties of civil life. It is not in nature that the jealousy of race should die out in this generation, but I trust they will not see the fulfilment of Corporal Simon Cram's prediction. Simon was one of the shrewdest old fellows in the regiment, and he said to me once, as he was jogging out of Beaufort behind me, on the Shell Road, "I'se goin' to leave de Souf, Cunnel, when de war is over. I'se made up my mind dat dese yere Secesh will neber be cibilized in my time."

The officers and soldiers are spread out all over the place. One of our captains was part of the South Carolina Constitutional Convention, and he is now the State Treasurer; three of our sergeants were also in that Convention, including Sergeant Prince Rivers; he and Sergeant Henry Hayne are still serving in the State Legislature. Former members of the regiment are generally doing well in both that state and in Florida, from what I hear. The increased self-respect from army life has prepared them to handle the responsibilities of civilian life. It's likely that the issue of racial jealousy won’t vanish in this generation, but I hope they won't witness Corporal Simon Cram's prediction come true. Simon was one of the sharpest guys in the regiment, and he once told me as we were driving out of Beaufort together on the Shell Road, "I’m going to leave the South, Colonel, when the war is over. I've made up my mind that these Secesh will never be civilized in my time."

The only member of the regiment whom I have seen since leaving it is a young man, Cyrus Wiggins, who was brought off from the main-land in a dug-out, in broad day, before the very eyes of the rebel pickets, by Captain James S. Rogers, of my regiment. It was one of the most daring acts I ever saw, and as it happened under my own observation I was glad when the Captain took home with him this "captive of his bow and spear" to be educated under his eye in Massachusetts. Cyrus has done credit to his friends, and will be satisfied with nothing short of a college-training at Howard University. I have letters from the men, very quaint in handwriting and spelling; but he is the only one whom I have seen. Some time I hope to revisit those scenes, and shall feel, no doubt, like a bewildered Rip Van Winkle who once wore uniform.

The only member of the regiment I've seen since leaving is a young guy, Cyrus Wiggins, who was brought over from the mainland in a dugout, right out in the open, in front of the rebel pickets, by Captain James S. Rogers, from my regiment. It was one of the most audacious things I've ever witnessed, and since I saw it happen myself, I was really pleased when the Captain took this "captive of his bow and spear" back to Massachusetts to be educated under his watch. Cyrus has made his friends proud and is aiming for nothing less than a college education at Howard University. I have letters from the guys, written in a very distinctive style with unique spelling; but he’s the only one I've met. I hope to revisit those places someday, and I know I’ll feel like a confused Rip Van Winkle who once wore a uniform.

We who served with the black troops have this peculiar satisfaction, that, whatever dignity or sacredness the memories of the war may have to others, they have more to us. In that contest all the ordinary ties of patriotism were the same, of course, to us as to the rest; they had no motives which we had not, as they have now no memories which are not also ours. But the peculiar privilege of associating with an outcast race, of training it to defend its rights and to perform its duties, this was our especial meed. The vacillating policy of the Government sometimes filled other officers with doubt and shame; until the negro had justice, they were but defending liberty with one hand and crushing it with the other. From this inconsistency we were free. Whatever the Government did, we at least were working in the right direction. If this was not recognized on our side of the lines, we knew that it was admitted on the other. Fighting with ropes round our necks, denied the ordinary courtesies of war till we ourselves compelled then: concession, we could at least turn this outlawry into a compliment. We had touched the pivot of the war. Whether this vast and dusky mass should prove the weakness of the nation or its strength, must depend in great measure, we knew, upon our efforts. Till the blacks were armed, there was no guaranty of their freedom. It was their demeanor under arms that shamed the nation into recognizing them as men.

We who served alongside the Black troops take a unique pride in the fact that, while the memories of the war may hold particular dignity or significance for others, they mean even more to us. In that struggle, the usual bonds of patriotism were the same for us as for everyone else; they had no motives that we didn’t share, and they have no memories that aren't also ours today. But the special privilege of working with an marginalized race, helping them to fight for their rights and fulfill their responsibilities, was our unique reward. The inconsistent policies of the Government sometimes left other officers feeling confused and ashamed; until the Black troops received justice, they were defending freedom with one hand while undermining it with the other. We were free from that contradiction. No matter what the Government did, we knew we were at least moving in the right direction. Even if our efforts weren’t recognized on our side of the lines, we were aware that they were acknowledged on the other side. Battling with ropes around our necks and being denied the basic courtesies of war until we forced their concession, we could at least see this outlaw status as a backhanded compliment. We had hit the core of the war. Whether this large and dark mass would be seen as the nation's weakness or strength depended largely on us. Until the Black troops were armed, there was no guarantee of their freedom. It was their attitude while armed that shamed the nation into finally recognizing them as men.





APPENDIX





Appendix A

Roster of Officers

FIRST SOUTH CAROLINA VOLUNTEERS,

First South Carolina Volunteers,

Afterwards Thirty-Third United States Colored Troops.

Afterwards Thirty-Third United States Colored Troops.

Colonels

Colonels

T. W. HIGGINSON, 51st Mass. Vols., Nov. 10, 1862; Resigned,

T. W. HIGGINSON, 51st Mass. Vols., Nov. 10, 1862; Resigned,

Oct. 27, 1864. WM. T. BENNETT, 102d U. S. C. T., Dec. 18, 1864; Mustered out

Oct. 27, 1864. WM. T. BENNETT, 102nd U.S. Colored Troops, Dec. 18, 1864; Mustered out

with regiment

with a regiment

Lieutenant-Colonels

Lt. Colonels

LIBERTY BILLINGS, Civil Life, Nov. 1, 1862; Dismissed by Examining Board, July 28, 1863.

LIBERTY BILLINGS, Civil Life, Nov. 1, 1862; Dismissed by Examining Board, July 28, 1863.

JOHN D. STRONG, Promotion, July 28, 1863; Resigned, Aug. 15, 1864.

JOHN D. STRONG, promoted on July 28, 1863; resigned on August 15, 1864.

CHAS. T. TROWBRIDGE, Promotion, Dec. 9, 1864; Mustered out, &c.

CHAS. T. TROWBRIDGE, Promotion, Dec. 9, 1864; Mustered out, etc.

Majors

Majors (for college degrees)

JOHN D. STRONG, Civil Life, Oct. 21, 1862; Lt-Col., July 28, 1863. CHAS.

JOHN D. STRONG, Civil Life, Oct. 21, 1862; Lt-Col., July 28, 1863. CHAS.

T. TROWBRIDGE, Promotion, Aug. 11, 1863; Lt.-Col., Dec. 9, 1864.

T. TROWBRIDGE, promoted on August 11, 1863; Lieutenant Colonel, December 9, 1864.

H. A. WHTTNEY, Promotion, Dec. 9, 1864; Mustered out, &c.

H. A. WHTTNEY, Promotion, Dec. 9, 1864; Mustering out, etc.

Surgeons

Surgeons

SETH ROGERS, Civil Life, Dec. 2, 1862; Resigned, Dec. 21, 1863.

SETH ROGERS, Civil Life, Dec. 2, 1862; Resigned, Dec. 21, 1863.

WM. B. CRANDALL, 29th Ct, June 8, 1864; Mustered out, &c.

WM. B. CRANDALL, 29th Ct, June 8, 1864; Mustered out, etc.

Assistant Surgeons

Surgical Assistants

J. M. HAWKS, Civil Life, Oct 20, 1862; Surgeon 3d S. C. Vols.,

J. M. HAWKS, Civil Life, Oct 20, 1862; Surgeon 3rd S. C. Vols.,

Oct. 29, 1863.

Oct. 29, 1863.

THOS. T. MINOR, 7th Ct., Jan. 8, 1863; Resigned, Nov. 21, 1864.

THOS. T. MINOR, 7th Ct., Jan. 8, 1863; Resigned, Nov. 21, 1864.

E. S. STUARD, Civil Life, Sept. 4, 1865; Mustered out, &c.

E. S. STUARD, Civil Life, Sept. 4, 1865; Discharged, etc.

Chaplain

Chaplain

JAS. H. FOWLER, Civil Life, Oct. 24, 1862; Mustered out, &c.

JAS. H. FOWLER, Civil Life, Oct. 24, 1862; Discharged, etc.

Captains

Leaders

CHAS. T. TROWBRIDGE, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Oct. 13, 1862; Major, Aug. 11, 1863.

CHAS. T. TROWBRIDGE, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Oct. 13, 1862; Major, Aug. 11, 1863.

WM. JAMES, 100th Pa., Oct. 13, 1862; Mustered out, &c.

WM. JAMES, 100th Pa., Oct. 13, 1862; Mustering out, etc.

W. J. RANDOLPH, 100th Pa., Oct. 13, 1862; Resigned, Jan. 29, 1864.

W. J. RANDOLPH, 100th Pa., Oct. 13, 1862; Resigned, Jan. 29, 1864.

H. A. WHITNEY, 8th Me., Oct. 13, 1862; Major, Dec. 9, 1864.

H. A. WHITNEY, 8th Me., Oct. 13, 1862; Major, Dec. 9, 1864.

ALEX. HEASLEY, 100th Pa., Oct 13, 1862; Killed at Augusta, Ga., Sept. 6, 1865.

ALEX. HEASLEY, 100th Pa., October 13, 1862; Killed in Augusta, GA, September 6, 1865.

GEORGE DOLLY, 8th Me., Nov. 1, 1862; Resigned, Oct. 30, 1863.

GEORGE DOLLY, 8th Me., Nov. 1, 1862; Resigned, Oct. 30, 1863.

L. W. METCALF, 8th Me., Nov. 11, 1862; Mustered out, &c.

L. W. METCALF, 8th Me., Nov. 11, 1862; Discharged, etc.

JAS. H. TONKING, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Nov. 17, 1862; Resigned, July 28, 1863.

JAS. H. TONKING, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Nov. 17, 1862; Resigned, July 28, 1863.

JAS. S. ROGERS, 51st Mass., Dec. 6, 1862; Resigned, Oct. 20, 1863.

JAS. S. ROGERS, 51st Mass., Dec. 6, 1862; Resigned, Oct. 20, 1863.

J. H. THIBADEAU, Promotion, Jan. 10, 1863; Mustered out, &c.

J. H. THIBADEAU, Promotion, Jan. 10, 1863; Discharged, etc.

GEORGE D. WALKER, Promotion, July 28, 1863; Resigned, Sept 1, 1864.

GEORGE D. WALKER, Promoted on July 28, 1863; Resigned on September 1, 1864.

WM. H. DANILSON, Promotion, July 28, 1863; Major 128th U. S. C. T., May, 1865 [now 1st Lt 40th U. S. Infantry].

WM. H. DANILSON, Promotion, July 28, 1863; Major 128th U.S. Colored Troops, May, 1865 [now 1st Lt 40th U.S. Infantry].

WM. W. SAMPSON, Promotion, Nov. 5, 1863; Mustered out, &c.

WM. W. SAMPSON, Promoted, Nov. 5, 1863; Discharged, etc.

JOHN M. THOMPSON, Promotion, Nov. 7, 1863; Mustered out, &c. [Now 1st Lt. and Bvt Capt. 38th U. S. Infy.]

JOHN M. THOMPSON, Promotion, Nov. 7, 1863; Mustered out, etc. [Now 1st Lt. and Bvt Capt. 38th U.S. Inf.]

ABR. W. JACKSON, Promotion, April 30, 1864; Resigned, Aug. 15, 1865.

ABR. W. JACKSON, Promoted, April 30, 1864; Resigned, August 15, 1865.

NILES G. PARKER, Promotion, Feb., 1865; Mustered out, &c.

NILES G. PARKER, Promotion, Feb. 1865; Discharged, etc.

CHAS. W. HOOPER, Promotion, Sept, 1865; Mustered out, &c.

CHAS. W. HOOPER, Promotion, September 1865; Discharged, etc.

E. C. MERMAM, Promotion, Sept., 1865; Resigned, Dec. 4, 1865.

E. C. MERMAM, Promotion, Sept. 1865; Resigned, Dec. 4, 1865.

E. W. ROBBINS, Promotion, Nov. 1, 1865; Mustered out, &c.

E. W. ROBBINS, Promotion, Nov. 1, 1865; Discharged, etc.

N. S. WHITE, Promotion, Nov. 18, 1865; Mustered out, &c.

N. S. WHITE, Promotion, Nov. 18, 1865; Discharged, etc.

First Lieutenants

First Lieutenants

G. W. DEWHURST (Adjutant), Civil Life, Oct 20, 1862; Resigned, Aug. 31, 1865.

G. W. DEWHURST (Adjutant), Civil Life, Oct 20, 1862; Resigned, Aug. 31, 1865.

J. M. BINOHAM (Quartermaster), Civil Life, Oct. 20, 1862; Died from effect of exhaustion on a military expedition, July 20, 1863.

J. M. BINOHAM (Quartermaster), Civil Life, Oct. 20, 1862; Died from exhaustion during a military expedition, July 20, 1863.

G. M. CHAMBERUN (Quartermaster), llth Mass. Battery, Aug. 29, 1863; Mustered out, &c.

G. M. CHAMBERUN (Quartermaster), 11th Mass. Battery, Aug. 29, 1863; Mustered out, etc.

GEO. D. WALKER, N. Y. VoL Eng., Oct 13, 1862; Captain, Aug. 11, 1863.

GEO. D. WALKER, N. Y. VoL Eng., Oct 13, 1862; Captain, Aug. 11, 1863.

W. H. DANILSON, 48th N. Y., Oct 13, 1862; Captain, July 26, 1863.

W. H. DANILSON, 48th N. Y., Oct 13, 1862; Captain, July 26, 1863.

J. H. THTBADEAU, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; Captain, Jan. 10, 1863.

J. H. THTBADEAU, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; Captain, Jan. 10, 1863.

EPHRAIM P. WHITE, 8th Me., Nov. 14, 1862; Resigned, March 9, 1864.

EPHRAIM P. WHITE, 8th Me., Nov. 14, 1862; Resigned, March 9, 1864.

JAS. POMEROY, 100th Pa., Oct 13,1862; Resigned, Feb. 9, 1863.

JAS. POMEROY, 100th Pa., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, Feb. 9, 1863.

JAS. F. JOHNSTON, 100th Pa., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, March 26, 1863.

JAS. F. JOHNSTON, 100th Pa., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, March 26, 1863.

JESSE FISHER, 48th N. Y., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, Jan. 26, 1863.

JESSE FISHER, 48th N. Y., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, Jan. 26, 1863.

CHAS. I. DAVIS, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, Feb. 28, 1863.

CHAS. I. DAVIS, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, Feb. 28, 1863.

WM. STOCKDALE, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, May 2, 1863.

WM. STOCKDALE, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, May 2, 1863.

JAS. B. O'NEIL, Promotion, Jan. 10, 1863; Resigned, May 2, 1863.

JAS. B. O'NEIL, Promotion, Jan. 10, 1863; Resigned, May 2, 1863.

W. W. SAMPSON, Promotion, Jan. 10, 1863; Captain, Oct 30,

W. W. SAMPSON, Promotion, Jan. 10, 1863; Captain, Oct 30,

1863. J. M. THOMPSON, Promotion, Jan. 27, 1863; Captain, Oct. 30,

1863. J. M. THOMPSON, Promotion, Jan. 27, 1863; Captain, Oct. 30,

1863. R. M. GASTON, Promotion, April 15, 1863; Killed at Coosaw Ferry, S. C., May 27, 1863.

1863. R. M. GASTON, promoted on April 15, 1863; killed at Coosaw Ferry, S.C., on May 27, 1863.

JAS. B. WEST, Promotion, Feb. 28, 1863; Resigned, June 14, 1865.

JAS. B. WEST, promoted on February 28, 1863; resigned on June 14, 1865.

N. G. PARKER, Promotion, May 5, 1863; Captain, Feb., 1865.

N. G. PARKER, Promoted on May 5, 1863; Captain, February 1865.

W. H. HYDE, Promotion, May 5, 1863; Resigned, April 3, 1865.

W. H. HYDE, Promoted on May 5, 1863; Resigned on April 3, 1865.

HENRY A. STONE, 8th Me., June 26, 1863; Resigned, Dec. 16, 1864.

HENRY A. STONE, 8th Me., June 26, 1863; Resigned, Dec. 16, 1864.

J. A. TROWBRTDGE, Promotion, Aug. 11, 1863; Resigned, Nov. 29, 1864.

J. A. TROWBRIDGE, Promotion, August 11, 1863; Resigned, November 29, 1864.

A. W. JACKSON, Promotion, Aug. 26, 1863; Captain, April 30, 1864.

A. W. JACKSON, promoted on August 26, 1863; became Captain on April 30, 1864.

CHAS. E. PARKER, Promotion, Aug. 26, 1863; Resigned, Nov. 29, 1864.

CHAS. E. PARKER, promoted, Aug. 26, 1863; resigned, Nov. 29, 1864.

CHAS. W. HOOPER, Promotion, Nov. 8, 1863; Captain, Sept., 1865.

CHAS. W. HOOPER, promoted on Nov. 8, 1863; Captain in Sept. 1865.

E. C. MERRIAM, Promotion, Nov. 19, 1863; Captain, Sept., 1865.

E. C. MERRIAM, promoted on Nov. 19, 1863; became Captain in Sept. 1865.

HENRY A. BEACH, Promotion, April 30, 1864; Resigned, Sept 23, 1864.

HENRY A. BEACH, promoted on April 30, 1864; resigned on September 23, 1864.

E. W. ROBBINS, Promotion, April 30, 1864; Captain, Nov. 1, 1865.

E. W. ROBBINS, promoted on April 30, 1864; became a Captain on November 1, 1865.

ASA CHILD, Promotion, Sept, 1865; Mastered out, &c.

ASA CHILD, Promotion, Sept, 1865; Finished up, etc.

N. S. WHITE, Promotion, Sept, 1865; Captain, Nov. 18, 1865.

N. S. WHITE, promoted, September 1865; Captain, November 18, 1865.

F. S. GOODRICH, Promotion, Oct., 1865; Mustered out, &c.

F. S. GOODRICH, Promotion, Oct. 1865; Discharged, etc.

E. W. HYDE, Promotion, Oct 27, 1865; Mustered out, &c.

E. W. HYDE, Promotion, Oct 27, 1865; Discharged, etc.

HENRY WOOD, Promotion, Nov., 1865; Mustered out, &c.

HENRY WOOD, Promotion, Nov., 1865; Discharged, etc.

Second Lieutenants

2nd Lieutenants

J. A. TROWBMDGE, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, Aug. 11, 1863.

J. A. TROWBRIDGE, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, Aug. 11, 1863.

JAS. B. O-NBIL, 1st U. S. Art'y, Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, Jan. 10, 1863.

JAS. B. O-NBIL, 1st U.S. Artillery, Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, Jan. 10, 1863.

W. W. SAMPSON, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, Jan 10, 1863.

W. W. SAMPSON, 8th Me., Oct 13, 1862; 1st Lt, Jan 10, 1863.

J. M. THOMPSON, 7th N. H., Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, Jan. 27, 1863.

J. M. THOMPSON, 7th N. H., Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, Jan. 27, 1863.

R. M. GASTON, 100th Pa., Oct. 13, 1862; First Lt, April 15, 1863.

R. M. GASTON, 100th Pa., Oct. 13, 1862; First Lt, April 15, 1863.

W. H. HYDE, 6th Ct, Oct 13, 1862; First Lt, May 5, 1863.

W. H. HYDE, 6th Ct, Oct 13, 1862; 1st Lt, May 5, 1863.

JAS. B. WEST, 100th Pa., Oct. 13. 1862; First Lt, Feb. 28, 1863.

JAS. B. WEST, 100th Pa., Oct. 13, 1862; 1st Lt, Feb. 28, 1863.

HARRY C. WEST, 100th Pa., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, Nov. 4, 1864.

HARRY C. WEST, 100th Pa., Oct 13, 1862; Resigned, Nov. 4, 1864.

E. C. MERRIAM, 8th Me., Nov. 17, 1862; First Lt., Nov. 19, 1863.

E. C. MERRIAM, 8th Me., Nov. 17, 1862; 1st Lt., Nov. 19, 1863.

CHAS. E. PARKER, 8th Me., Nov. 17, 1862; First Lt, Aug. 26, 1863.

CHAS. E. PARKER, 8th Me., Nov. 17, 1862; First Lt, Aug. 26, 1863.

C. W. HOOPER, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Feb. 17, 1863; First Lt, April 15, 1863.

C. W. HOOPER, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Feb. 17, 1863; 1st Lt, April 15, 1863.

N. G. PARKER, 1st Mass. Cavalry, March, 1863; First Lt, May 5, 1863.

N. G. PARKER, 1st Mass. Cavalry, March 1863; 1st Lt, May 5, 1863.

A. H. TIRRELL, 1st Mass. Cav., March 6, 1863; Resigned, July 22, 1863.

A. H. TIRRELL, 1st Mass. Cav., March 6, 1863; Resigned, July 22, 1863.

A. W. JACKSON, 8th Me., March 6, 1863; First Lt, Aug. 26, 1863.

A. W. JACKSON, 8th Me., March 6, 1863; 1st Lt, Aug. 26, 1863.

HENRY A. BEACH, 48th N. Y., April 5, 1863; First Lt, April 30, 1864.

HENRY A. BEACH, 48th N. Y., April 5, 1863; 1st Lt, April 30, 1864.

E. W. ROBBINS, 8th Me., April 5, 1863; First Lt, April 30, 1864.

E. W. ROBBINS, 8th Me., April 5, 1863; 1st Lt, April 30, 1864.

A. B. BROWN, Civil Life, April 17, 1863; Resigned, Nov. 27, 1863.

A. B. BROWN, Civil Life, April 17, 1863; Resigned, Nov. 27, 1863.

F. M. GOULD, 3d R. I. Battery, June 1, 1863; Resigned, June 8, 1864.

F. M. GOULD, 3rd R. I. Battery, June 1, 1863; Resigned, June 8, 1864.

ASA CHILD, 8th Me., Aug. 7, 1863; First Lt, Sept., 1865.

ASA CHILD, 8th Me., Aug. 7, 1863; First Lt, Sept., 1865.

JEROME T. FURMAN, 52d Pa., Aug. 30, 1863; Killed at Walhalla, S. C., Aug. 26, 1865.

JEROME T. FURMAN, 52d Pa., Aug. 30, 1863; Killed at Walhalla, S.C., Aug. 26, 1865.

JOHN W. SELVAGE, 48th N. Y., Sept 10, 1863; First Lt. 36th U. S. C. T., March, 1865.

JOHN W. SELVAGE, 48th N. Y., Sept 10, 1863; First Lt. 36th U. S. C. T., March, 1865.

MIRAND W. SAXTON, Civil Life, Nov. 19, 1863; Captain 128th U. S. C. T., June 25, 1864 [now Second Lt 38th U. S. Infantry].

MIRAND W. SAXTON, Civil Life, Nov. 19, 1863; Captain 128th U.S. Colored Troops, June 25, 1864 [now Second Lt. 38th U.S. Infantry].

NELSON S. WHITE, Dec. 22, 1863; First Lt, Sept., 1865.

NELSON S. WHITE, Dec. 22, 1863; 1st Lt, Sept., 1865.

EDW. W. HYDE, Civil Life, May 4, 1864; First Lt, Oct. 27, 1865.

EDW. W. HYDE, Civil Life, May 4, 1864; 1st Lt, Oct. 27, 1865.

F. S. GOODRICH, 115th N. Y., May, 1864; First Lt., Oct., 1865.

F. S. GOODRICH, 115th N.Y., May 1864; First Lt., Oct. 1865.

B. H. MANNING, Aug. 11, 1864; Capt 128th U. S. C. T., March 17, 1865.

B. H. MANNING, Aug. 11, 1864; Capt 128th U. S. C. T., March 17, 1865.

R. M. DAVIS, 4th Mass. Cavalry, Nov. 19, 1864; Capt. 104th U. S. C. T., May 11, 1865.

R. M. DAVIS, 4th Mass. Cavalry, Nov. 19, 1864; Captain 104th U.S.C.T., May 11, 1865.

HENRY WOOD, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Aug., 1865; First Lt, Nov., 1865.

HENRY WOOD, N. Y. Vol. Eng., Aug., 1865; 1st Lt, Nov., 1865.

JOHN M. SEAKLES, 1st N. Y. Mounted Rifles, June 15, 1865; Mustered out, &c.

JOHN M. SEAKLES, 1st N. Y. Mounted Rifles, June 15, 1865; Mustered out, &c.





Appendix B The First Black Soldiers

It is well known that the first systematic attempt to organize colored troops during the war of the rebellion was the so-called "Hunter Regiment." The officer originally detailed to recruit for this purpose was Sergeant C. T. Trowbridge, of the New York Volunteer Engineers (Col. Serrell). His detail was dated May 7, 1862, S. O. 84 Dept. South.

It is well known that the first organized effort to enlist Black soldiers during the Civil War was the so-called "Hunter Regiment." The officer initially assigned to recruit for this was Sergeant C. T. Trowbridge of the New York Volunteer Engineers (Col. Serrell). His assignment was dated May 7, 1862, S. O. 84 Dept. South.

Enlistments came in very slowly, and no wonder. The white officers and soldiers were generally opposed to the experiment, and filled the ears of the negroes with the same tales which had been told them by their masters,—that the Yankees really meant to sell them to Cuba, and the like. The mildest threats were that they would be made to work without pay (which turned out to be the case), and that they would be put in the front rank in every battle. Nobody could assure them that they and their families would be freed by the Government, if they fought for it, since no such policy had been adopted. Nevertheless, they gradually enlisted, the most efficient recruiting officer being Sergeant William Bronson, of Company A, in my regiment, who always prided himself on this service, and used to sign himself by the very original title, "No. 1, African Foundations" in commemoration of his deeds.

Enlistments were coming in very slowly, and it’s easy to see why. The white officers and soldiers were mostly against the idea and filled the ears of the Black soldiers with the same stories their masters had told them—that the Yankees really planned to sell them to Cuba and other similar fears. The mildest threats included being forced to work without pay (which ended up being true) and being put in the front lines in every battle. No one could guarantee them that they and their families would be freed by the Government if they fought for it since no such policy had been put in place. Still, they gradually enlisted, with the most effective recruiting officer being Sergeant William Bronson of Company A in my regiment, who took pride in his work and signed himself with the unique title, "No. 1, African Foundations" to honor his efforts.

By patience and tact these obstacles would in time have been overcome. But before long, unfortunately, some of General Hunter's staff became impatient, and induced him to take the position that the blacks must enlist. Accordingly, squads of soldiers were sent to seize all the able-bodied men on certain plantations, and bring them to the camp. The immediate consequence was a renewal of the old suspicion, ending in a widespread belief that they were to be sent to Cuba, as their masters had predicted. The ultimate result was a habit of distrust, discontent, and desertion, that it was almost impossible to surmount. All the men who knew anything about General Hunter believed in him; but they all knew that there were bad influences around him, and that the Government had repudiated his promises. They had been kept four months in service, and then had been dismissed without pay. That having been the case, why should not the Government equally repudiate General Saxton's promises or mine? As a matter of fact, the Government did repudiate these pledges for years, though we had its own written authority to give them. But that matter needs an appendix by itself.

With patience and tact, these obstacles could have eventually been overcome. But unfortunately, before long, some of General Hunter's staff became impatient and convinced him to take the stance that the blacks must enlist. As a result, groups of soldiers were sent to capture all able-bodied men on certain plantations and bring them to the camp. The immediate consequence was a revival of old suspicions, leading to a widespread belief that they were being sent to Cuba, just as their masters had predicted. The ultimate result was a growing distrust, dissatisfaction, and desertion that seemed nearly impossible to overcome. All the men who knew anything about General Hunter believed in him; however, they were aware of the negative influences around him and that the Government had rejected his promises. They had been kept in service for four months and then dismissed without pay. Given that, why wouldn’t the Government similarly disregard General Saxton's promises or mine? In reality, the Government did ignore these promises for years, even though we had the written authority to make them. But that topic requires a separate discussion.

The "Hunter Regiment" remained in camp on Hilton Head Island until the beginning of August, 1862, kept constantly under drill, but much demoralized by desertion. It was then disbanded, except one company. That company, under command of Sergeant Trowbridge, then acting as Captain, but not commissioned, was kept in service, and was sent (August 5, 1862) to garrison St. Simon's Island, on the coast of Georgia. On this island (made famous by Mrs. Kemble's description) there were then five hundred colored people, and not a single white man.

The "Hunter Regiment" stayed in camp on Hilton Head Island until early August 1862, undergoing constant drills but severely affected by desertions. It was then disbanded, except for one company. That company, led by Sergeant Trowbridge, who was acting as Captain but wasn’t officially commissioned, was retained and sent (August 5, 1862) to garrison St. Simon's Island on the Georgia coast. On that island (noted by Mrs. Kemble's description), there were about five hundred Black people and not a single white man.

The black soldiers were sent down on the Ben De Ford, Captain Hallett. On arriving, Trowbridge was at once informed by Commodore Goldsborough, naval commander at that station, that there was a party of rebel guerillas on the island, and was asked whether he would trust his soldiers in pursuit of them. Trowbridge gladly assented; and the Commodore added, "If you should capture them, it will be a great thing for you."

The Black soldiers were deployed on the Ben De Ford, under Captain Hallett. Upon arrival, Trowbridge was immediately informed by Commodore Goldsborough, the naval commander at that location, that a group of rebel guerrillas was on the island and was asked if he would trust his soldiers to go after them. Trowbridge readily agreed; and the Commodore added, "If you manage to capture them, it will be a big win for you."

They accordingly went on shore, and found that the colored men of the island had already undertaken the enterprise. Twenty-five of them had armed themselves, under the command of one of their own number, whose name was John Brown. The second in command was Edward Gould, who was afterwards a corporal in my own regiment The rebel party retreated before these men, and drew them into a swamp. There was but one path, and the negroes entered single file. The rebels lay behind a great log, and fired upon them. John Brown, the leader, fell dead within six feet of the log,—probably the first black man who fell under arms in the war,—several other were wounded, and the band of raw recruits retreated; as did also the rebels, in the opposite direction. This was the first armed encounter, so far as I know, between the rebels and their former slaves; and it is worth noticing that the attempt was a spontaneous thing and not accompanied by any white man. The men were not soldiers, nor in uniform, though some of them afterwards enlisted in Trowbridge's company.

They went ashore and discovered that the local men had already taken action. Twenty-five of them had armed themselves, led by one of their own named John Brown. The second-in-command was Edward Gould, who later became a corporal in my regiment. The opposing rebel group retreated before these men and lured them into a swamp. There was only one path, and the men entered in single file. The rebels hid behind a large log and fired at them. John Brown, the leader, was shot and fell dead just six feet from the log—likely the first black man to die in combat during the war. Several others were injured, and the group of inexperienced recruits fell back, just as the rebels did in the opposite direction. This was, to my knowledge, the first armed clash between the rebels and their former slaves; it’s significant to note that this was a spontaneous act without any white involvement. These men weren’t soldiers or in uniform, though some of them later joined Trowbridge’s company.

The father of this John Brown was afterwards a soldier in my regiment; and, after his discharge for old age, was, for a time, my servant. "Uncle York," as we called him, was as good a specimen of a saint as I have ever met, and was quite the equal of Mrs. Stowe's "Uncle Tom." He was a fine-looking old man, with dignified and courtly manners, and his gray head was a perfect benediction, as he sat with us on the platform at our Sunday meetings. He fully believed, to his dying day, that the "John Brown Song" related to his son, and to him only.

The father of John Brown was later a soldier in my regiment, and after he retired due to old age, he served as my assistant for a while. We called him "Uncle York," and he was one of the kindest people I've ever met, truly comparable to Mrs. Stowe's "Uncle Tom." He was a handsome old man with dignified and gracious manners, and his gray hair seemed like a blessing as he sat with us on the platform during our Sunday meetings. He believed, until the end of his life, that the "John Brown Song" was about his son and only him.

Trowbridge, after landing on the island, hunted the rebels all day with his colored soldiers, and a posse of sailors. In one place, he found by a creek a canoe, with a tar-kettle, and a fire burning; and it was afterwards discovered that, at that very moment, the guerillas were hid in a dense palmetto thicket, near by, and so eluded pursuit The rebel leader was one Miles Hazard, who had a plantation on the island, and the party escaped at last through the aid of his old slave, Henry, who found them a boat One of my sergeants, Clarence Kennon, who had not then escaped from slavery, was present when they reached the main-land; and he described them as being tattered and dirty from head to foot, after their efforts to escape their pursuers.

Trowbridge, after arriving on the island, spent the whole day chasing the rebels with his Black soldiers and a group of sailors. At one point, he came across a canoe by a creek, with a tar-kettle and a fire going; it was later revealed that the guerillas were hiding in a thick palmetto grove nearby, managing to avoid capture. The rebel leader was a man named Miles Hazard, who owned a plantation on the island, and the group finally got away thanks to his old slave, Henry, who found them a boat. One of my sergeants, Clarence Kennon, who hadn’t escaped from slavery at that time, was there when they reached the mainland; he described them as being ragged and filthy from head to toe after their efforts to dodge their pursuers.

When the troops under my command occupied Jacksonville, Fla., in March of the following year, we found at the railroad station, packed for departure, a box of papers, some of them valuable. Among them was a letter from this very Hazard to some friend, describing the perils of that adventure, and saying, "If you wish to know hell before your time, go to St Simon's and be hunted ten days by niggers."

When my troops took over Jacksonville, Florida, in March of the next year, we found a box of documents at the train station, ready to be shipped out, some of which were valuable. Among them was a letter from this very Hazard to a friend, detailing the dangers of that adventure, and saying, "If you want to experience hell before your time, go to St. Simon's and be hunted for ten days by Black people."

I have heard Trowbridge say that not one of his men flinched; and they seemed to take delight in the pursuit, though the weather was very hot, and it was fearfully exhausting.

I’ve heard Trowbridge say that none of his men backed down; they actually seemed to enjoy the chase, even though the weather was really hot and it was extremely tiring.

This was early in August; and the company remained two months at St Simon's, doing picket duty within hearing of the rebel drums, though not another scout ever ventured on the island, to their knowledge. Every Saturday Trowbridge summoned the island people to drill with his soldiers; and they came in hordes, men, women, and children, in every imaginable garb, to the number of one hundred and fifty or two hundred.

This was early in August, and the group stayed on St. Simon's for two months, doing picket duty within earshot of the rebel drums, although they didn't know of any other scouts daring to come to the island. Every Saturday, Trowbridge called the islanders to practice drills with his soldiers; they came in droves—men, women, and children—in every possible outfit, totaling around one hundred and fifty to two hundred.

His own men were poorly clothed and hardly shod at all; and, as no new supply of uniform was provided, they grew more and more ragged. They got poor rations, and no pay; but they kept up their spirits. Every week or so some of them would go on scouting excursions to the main-land; one scout used to go regularly to his old mother's hut, and keep himself hid under her bed, while she collected for him all the latest news of rebel movements. This man never came back without bringing recruits with him.

His men were dressed in rags and barely had shoes; and since they weren’t given any new uniforms, they looked even more worn out. They received meager rations and no pay, but they stayed hopeful. About once a week, some of them would head out on scouting trips to the mainland; one scout would regularly visit his mother’s hut and hide under her bed while she gathered all the latest news about rebel movements for him. This guy always returned with new recruits.

At last the news came that Major-General Mitchell had come to relieve General Hunter, and that Brigadier-General Saxton had gone North; and Trowbridge went to Hilton Head in some anxiety to see if he and his men were utterly forgotten. He prepared a report, showing the services and claims of his men, and took it with him. This was early in October, 1862. The first person he met was Brigadier-General Saxton, who informed him that he had authority to organize five thousand colored troops, and that he (Trowbridge) should be senior captain of the first regiment

Finally, the news arrived that Major-General Mitchell had come to replace General Hunter, and that Brigadier-General Saxton had headed North. Trowbridge went to Hilton Head with some worry to see if he and his men had been completely forgotten. He prepared a report outlining the services and claims of his men and took it with him. This was in early October 1862. The first person he encountered was Brigadier-General Saxton, who told him that he had the authority to organize five thousand colored troops, and that Trowbridge would be the senior captain of the first regiment.

This was accordingly done; and Company A of the First South Carolina could honestly claim to date its enlistment back to May, 1862, although they never got pay for that period of their service, and their date of muster was November, IS, 1862.

This was done as planned; and Company A of the First South Carolina could honestly say they had enlisted back in May 1862, even though they never got paid for that time of service, and their official muster date was November 18, 1862.

The above facts were written down from the narration of Lieutenant-Colonel Trowbridge, who may justly claim to have been the first white officer to recruit and command colored troops in this war. He was constantly in command of them from May 9, 1862, to February 9, 1866.

The facts above were recorded from the account of Lieutenant-Colonel Trowbridge, who can rightly say he was the first white officer to recruit and lead Black troops in this war. He was in charge of them continuously from May 9, 1862, to February 9, 1866.

Except the Louisiana soldiers mentioned in the Introduction,—of whom no detailed reports have, I think, been published,—my regiment was unquestionably the first mustered into the service of the United States; the first company muster bearing date, November 7, 1862, and the others following in quick succession.

Except for the Louisiana soldiers mentioned in the Introduction—about whom I don't think any detailed reports have been published—my regiment was definitely the first mustered into the service of the United States; the first company was mustered on November 7, 1862, with the others coming shortly after.

The second regiment in order of muster was the "First Kansas Colored," dating from January 13, 1863. The first enlistment in the Kansas regiment goes back to August 6, 1862; while the earliest technical date of enlistment in my regiment was October 19, 1862, although, as was stated above, one company really dated its organization back to May, 1862. My muster as colonel dates back to November 10, 1862, several months earlier than any other of which I am aware, among colored regiments, except that of Colonel Stafford (First Louisiana Native Guards), September 27, 1862. Colonel Williams, of the "First Kansas Colored," was mustered as lieutenant-colonel on January 13, 1863; as colonel, March 8, 1863. These dates I have (with the other facts relating to the regiment) from Colonel R. J. Hinton, the first officer detailed to recruit it.

The second regiment in order of enlistment was the "First Kansas Colored," starting from January 13, 1863. The initial enlistment in the Kansas regiment goes back to August 6, 1862, while the earliest official date of enlistment in my regiment was October 19, 1862, although, as mentioned earlier, one company actually dated its organization back to May 1862. I was mustered as colonel on November 10, 1862, several months earlier than any other colored regiments I know of, except for Colonel Stafford (First Louisiana Native Guards) on September 27, 1862. Colonel Williams of the "First Kansas Colored" was mustered as lieutenant-colonel on January 13, 1863, and as colonel on March 8, 1863. I have these dates (along with other information about the regiment) from Colonel R. J. Hinton, the first officer assigned to recruit it.

To sum up the above facts: my late regiment had unquestioned priority in muster over all but the Louisiana regiments. It had priority over those in the actual organization and term of service of one company. On the other hand, the Kansas regiment had the priority in average date of enlistment, according to the muster-rolls.

To sum up the above facts: my former regiment had clear priority in mustering over all except the Louisiana regiments. It had priority over others in the actual organization and service term of one company. On the other hand, the Kansas regiment had the advantage in average enlistment date, according to the muster-rolls.

The first detachment of the Second South Carolina Volunteers (Colonel Montgomery) went into camp at Port Royal Island, February 23, 1863, numbering one hundred and twenty men. I do not know the date of his muster; it was somewhat delayed, but was probably dated back to about that time.

The first group of the Second South Carolina Volunteers (Colonel Montgomery) set up camp at Port Royal Island on February 23, 1863, with a total of one hundred and twenty men. I'm not sure of the exact date of their muster; it was a bit delayed but likely dates back to around that time.

Recruiting for the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts (colored) began on February 9, 1863, and the first squad went into camp at Readville, Massachusetts, on February 21, 1863, numbering twenty-five men. Colonel Shaw's commission (and probably his muster) was dated April 17, 1863. (Report of Adjutant-General of Massachusetts for 1863, pp. 896-899.)

Recruitment for the Fifty-Fourth Massachusetts (colored) started on February 9, 1863, and the first group set up camp in Readville, Massachusetts, on February 21, 1863, with twenty-five men. Colonel Shaw's commission (and likely his muster) was dated April 17, 1863. (Report of Adjutant-General of Massachusetts for 1863, pp. 896-899.)

These were the earliest colored regiments, so far as I know.

These were the first colored regiments, as far as I know.





Appendix C General Saxton's Instructions

[The following are the instructions under which my regiment was raised. It will be seen how unequivocal were the provisions in respect to pay, upon which so long and weary a contest was waged by our friends in Congress, before the fulfilment of the contract could be secured.]

[The following are the instructions under which my regiment was formed. You'll see how clear the provisions were regarding pay, which our friends in Congress fought over for so long and with such effort before the contract could be fulfilled.]

WAR DEPARTMENT, WASHINGTON CITY, D. C., August 25, 1862.

WAR DEPARTMENT, WASHINGTON, D.C., August 25, 1862.

GENERAL, Your despatch of the 16th has this moment been received. It is considered by the Department that the instructions given at the time of your appointment were sufficient to enable you to do what you have now requested authority for doing. But in order to place your authority beyond all doubt, you are hereby authorized and instructed,

GENERAL, Your message from the 16th has just been received. The Department believes that the instructions provided at the time of your appointment were adequate for you to proceed with what you are now seeking permission to do. However, to ensure that your authority is completely clear, you are now authorized and instructed,

1st, To organize in any convenient organization, by squads, companies, battalions, regiments, and brigades, or otherwise, colored persons of African descent for volunteer laborers, to a number not exceeding fifty thousand, and muster them into the service of the United States for the term of the war, at a rate of compensation not exceeding five dollars per month for common laborers, and eight dollars per month for mechanical or skilled laborers, and assign them to the Quartermaster's Department, to do and perform such laborer's duty as may be required during the present war, and to be subject to the rules and articles of war.

1st, To organize in any suitable way, by groups, companies, battalions, regiments, and brigades, or otherwise, individuals of African descent for volunteer labor, not exceeding fifty thousand in number, and bring them into the service of the United States for the duration of the war, at a pay rate not exceeding five dollars per month for general laborers, and eight dollars per month for mechanical or skilled laborers, and assign them to the Quartermaster's Department, to carry out any labor duties required during the current war, and to be subject to military rules and regulations.

2d. The laboring forces herein authorized shall, under the order of the General-in-Chief, or of this Department, be detailed by the Quartermaster-General for laboring service with the armies of the United States; and they shall be clothed and subsisted, after enrolment, in the same manner as other persons in the Quartermaster's service.

2d. The working forces approved here will, under the direction of the General-in-Chief or this Department, be assigned by the Quartermaster-General for labor services with the armies of the United States; and they will be provided with clothing and food, after enrollment, just like others in the Quartermaster's service.

3d. In view of the small force under your command, and the inability of the Government at the present time to increase it, in order to guard the plantations and settlements occupied by the United States from invasion, and protect the inhabitants thereof from captivity and murder by the enemy, you are also authorized to arm, uniform, equip, and receive into the service of the United States, such number of volunteers of African descent as you may deem expedient, not exceeding five thousand, and may detail officers to instruct them in military drill, discipline, and duty, and to command them. The persons so received into service, and their officers, to be entitled to, and receive, the same pay and rations as are allowed, by law, to volunteers in the service.

3d. Given the small force under your command and the government's current inability to increase it, in order to protect the plantations and settlements occupied by the United States from invasion and to safeguard the inhabitants from capture and murder by the enemy, you are also authorized to recruit, equip, and accept into the service of the United States, up to five thousand volunteers of African descent as you see fit. You may assign officers to train them in military drill, discipline, and duties, as well as to lead them. Those accepted into service and their officers will be entitled to the same pay and rations as are provided by law to volunteers in service.

4th. You will occupy, if possible, all the islands and plantations heretofore occupied by the Government, and secure and harvest the crops, and cultivate and improve the plantations.

4th. You will take over, if possible, all the islands and plantations previously occupied by the Government, and secure and harvest the crops, and cultivate and improve the plantations.

5th. The population of African descent that cultivate the lands and perform the labor of the rebels constitute a large share of their military strength, and enable the white masters to fill the rebel armies, and wage a cruel and murderous war against the people of the Northern States. By reducing the laboring strength of the rebels, their military power will be reduced. You are therefore authorized by every means in your power, to withdraw from the enemy their laboring force and population, and to spare no effort, consistent with civilized warfare, to weaken, harass, and annoy them, and to establish the authority of the Government of the United States within your Department.

5th. The population of African descent that works the land and provides labor for the rebels makes up a significant part of their military strength, allowing the white masters to fill the rebel armies and conduct a brutal and deadly war against the people of the Northern States. By reducing the labor strength of the rebels, their military power will also be diminished. You are therefore authorized by all available means to take away their labor force and population, and to make every effort, consistent with civilized warfare, to weaken, harass, and annoy them, while establishing the authority of the Government of the United States within your Department.

6th. You may turn over to the navy any number of colored volunteers that may be required for the naval service.

6th. You can transfer any number of colored volunteers needed for naval service to the navy.

7th. By recent act of Congress, all men and boys received into the service of the United States, who may have been the slaves of rebel masters, are, with their wives, mothers, and children, declared to be forever free. You and all in your command will so treat and regard them.

7th. According to a recent act of Congress, all men and boys who have joined the service of the United States and were formerly enslaved by rebel masters, along with their wives, mothers, and children, are declared to be forever free. You and everyone in your command will treat and regard them accordingly.

Yours truly,

Sincerely,

EDWIN M. STANTON,

EDWIN M. STANTON

Secretary of War. BRIGADIER-GENERAL SAXTON.

Secretary of Defense. BRIGADIER-GENERAL SAXTON.





Appendix D The Struggle for Pay

The story of the attempt to cut down the pay of the colored troops is too long, too complicated, and too humiliating, to be here narrated. In the case of my regiment there stood on record the direct pledge of the War Department to General Saxton that their pay should be the same as that of whites. So clear was this that our kind paymaster, Major W. J. Wood, of New Jersey, took upon himself the responsibility of paying the price agreed upon, for five months, till he was compelled by express orders to reduce it from thirteen dollars per month to ten dollars, and from that to seven dollars,—the pay of quartermaster's men and day-laborers. At the same time the "stoppages" from the pay-rolls for the loss of all equipments and articles of clothing remained the same as for all other soldiers, so that it placed the men in the most painful and humiliating condition. Many of them had families to provide for, and between the actual distress, the sense of wrong, the taunts of those who had refused to enlist from the fear of being cheated, and the doubt how much farther the cheat might be carried, the poor fellows were goaded to the utmost. In the Third South Carolina regiment, Sergeant William Walker was shot, by order of court-marital, for leading his company to stack arms before their captain's tent, on the avowed ground that they were released from duty by the refusal of the Government to fulfill its share of the contract. The fear of such tragedies spread a cloud of solicitude over every camp of colored soldiers for more than a year, and the following series of letters will show through what wearisome labors the final triumph of justice was secured. In these labors the chief credit must be given to my admirable Adjutant, Lieutenant G. W. Dewhurst In the matter of bounty justice is not yet obtained; there is a discrimination against those colored soldiers who were slaves on April 19, 1861. Every officer, who through indolence or benevolent design claimed on his muster-rolls that all his men had been free on that day, secured for them the bounty; while every officer who, like myself, obeyed orders and told the truth in each case, saw his men and their families suffer for it, as I have done. A bill to abolish this distinction was introduced by Mr. Wilson at the last session, but failed to pass the House. It is hoped that next winter may remove this last vestige of the weary contest

The story of the effort to lower the pay of the Black troops is too long, too complicated, and too humiliating to tell here. In my regiment, there was a clear pledge from the War Department to General Saxton that their pay would be the same as that of white soldiers. So clear was this that our kind paymaster, Major W. J. Wood of New Jersey, took it upon himself to pay the agreed amount for five months, until he was forced by direct orders to reduce it from thirteen dollars a month to ten dollars, and then to seven dollars—the pay of quartermaster's men and day laborers. At the same time, the deductions from the pay for lost equipment and clothing remained the same as for all other soldiers, which placed the men in a very painful and humiliating situation. Many of them had families to take care of, and with the actual hardship, the feeling of injustice, the insults from those who had refused to enlist out of fear of being cheated, and the uncertainty of how much further the cheating might go, the poor guys were pushed to their limits. In the Third South Carolina regiment, Sergeant William Walker was shot by order of a court-martial for leading his company to stack their arms in front of their captain's tent, on the claim that they were released from duty since the Government had not fulfilled its part of the agreement. The fear of such tragedies cast a shadow of concern over every camp of Black soldiers for over a year, and the following series of letters will illustrate the exhausting efforts through which justice was finally achieved. In these efforts, most of the credit goes to my outstanding Adjutant, Lieutenant G. W. Dewhurst. As for bounty, justice has still not been achieved; there is discrimination against those Black soldiers who were enslaved on April 19, 1861. Any officer who, out of laziness or good intentions, claimed on his muster rolls that all his men were free on that day secured the bounty for them; meanwhile, any officer who, like me, followed orders and reported the truth in every case saw his men and their families suffer, as I have. A bill to eliminate this distinction was introduced by Mr. Wilson in the last session, but it failed to pass the House. It is hoped that next winter will finally remove this last reminder of the long struggle.

To show how persistently and for how long a period these claims had to be urged on Congress, I reprint such of my own printed letters on the subject as are now in my possession. There are one or two of which I have no copies. It was especially in the Senate that it was so difficult to get justice done; and our thanks will always be especially due to Hon. Charles Sumner and Hon. Henry Wilson for their advocacy of our simple rights. The records of those sessions will show who advocated the fraud.

To demonstrate how persistently and for how long these claims had to be pushed on Congress, I’m reproducing some of my own printed letters on the topic that I currently have. There are one or two that I don’t have copies of. It was particularly challenging to achieve justice in the Senate, and we will always be grateful to Hon. Charles Sumner and Hon. Henry Wilson for standing up for our basic rights. The records from those sessions will reveal who supported the fraud.

To the Editor of the New York Tribune:

To the Editor of the New York Tribune:

SIR,—No one can overstate the intense anxiety with which the officers of colored regiments in this Department are awaiting action from Congress in regard to arrears of pay of their men.

SIR,—No one can emphasize enough the deep concern that the officers of colored regiments in this Department are feeling as they wait for Congress to take action regarding the back pay for their men.

It is not a matter of dollars and cents only; it is a question of common honesty,—whether the United States Government has sufficient integrity for the fulfillment of an explicit business contract.

It’s not just about money; it’s a matter of basic honesty—whether the United States Government has enough integrity to honor a clear business contract.

The public seems to suppose that all required justice will be done by the passage of a bill equalizing the pay of all soldiers for the future. But, so far as my own regiment is concerned, this is but half the question. My men have been nearly sixteen months in the service, and for them the immediate issue is the question of arrears.

The public seems to think that all the necessary justice will be achieved just by passing a bill to equalize pay for all soldiers moving forward. However, as far as my own regiment is concerned, that's only part of the issue. My men have been in service for almost sixteen months, and for them, the main concern is the matter of back pay.

They understand the matter thoroughly, if the public do not Every one of them knows that he volunteered under an explicit written assurance from the War Department that he should have the pay of a white soldier. He knows that for five months the regiment received that pay, after which it was cut down from the promised thirteen dollars per month to ten dollars, for some reason to him inscrutable.

They understand the issue completely, even if the public doesn't. Each of them knows that he volunteered with a clear written assurance from the War Department that he would get paid like a white soldier. He knows that for five months the regiment received that pay, but then it was reduced from the promised thirteen dollars a month to ten dollars, for reasons that he can't figure out.

He does not know for I have not yet dared to tell the men—that the Paymaster has been already reproved by the Pay Department for fulfilling even in part the pledges of the War Department; that at the next payment the ten dollars are to be further reduced to seven; and that, to crown the whole, all the previous overpay is to be again deducted or "stopped" from the future wages, thus leaving them a little more than a dollar a month for six months to come, unless Congress interfere!

He does not know because I haven't had the courage to tell the guys—that the Paymaster has already been criticized by the Pay Department for fulfilling even part of the commitments made by the War Department; that at the next payment, the ten dollars will be reduced to seven; and that, to make matters worse, all the previous overpayments will be deducted or "stopped" from future wages, leaving them with just a little over a dollar a month for the next six months, unless Congress steps in!

Yet so clear were the terms of the contract that Mr. Solicitor Whiting, having examined the original instructions from the War Department issued to Brigadier-General Saxton, Military Governor, admits to me (under date of December 4, 1863,) that "the faith of the Government was thereby pledged to every officer and soldier enlisted under that call."

Yet the terms of the contract were so clear that Mr. Solicitor Whiting, after reviewing the original instructions from the War Department issued to Brigadier-General Saxton, Military Governor, admits to me (on December 4, 1863,) that "the Government's commitment was thus pledged to every officer and soldier enlisted under that call."

He goes on to express the generous confidence that "the pledge will be honorably fulfilled." I observe that every one at the North seems to feel the same confidence, but that, meanwhile, the pledge is unfulfilled. Nothing is said in Congress about fulfilling it. I have not seen even a proposition in Congress to pay the colored soldiers, from date of enlistment, the same pay with white soldiers; and yet anything short of that is an unequivocal breach of contract, so far as this regiment is concerned.

He continues to express his strong belief that "the promise will be honored." I notice that everyone in the North seems to share this confidence, but in the meantime, the promise remains unfulfilled. There’s no discussion in Congress about fulfilling it. I haven’t seen a single proposal in Congress to pay the Black soldiers, from the date of enlistment, the same wages as white soldiers; and anything less than that is a clear violation of the contract, at least for this regiment.

Meanwhile, the land sales are beginning, and there is danger of every foot of land being sold from beneath my soldiers' feet, because they have not the petty sum which Government first promised, and then refused to pay.

Meanwhile, the land sales are starting, and there's a risk of every inch of land being sold out from under my soldiers because they don't have the small amount that the government initially promised and then reneged on.

The officers' pay comes promptly and fully enough, and this makes the position more embarrassing. For how are we to explain to the men the mystery that Government can afford us a hundred or two dollars a month, and yet must keep back six of the poor thirteen which it promised them? Does it not naturally suggest the most cruel suspicions in regard to us? And yet nothing but their childlike faith in their officers, and in that incarnate soul of honor, General Saxton, has sustained their faith, or kept them patient, thus far.

The officers are paid promptly and adequately, which makes the situation even more awkward. How can we explain to the men the puzzle that the Government can give us a hundred or two dollars a month, yet still hold back six of the poor thirteen it promised them? Doesn’t it naturally raise the most painful doubts about us? Still, only their innocent trust in their officers, and in that embodiment of honor, General Saxton, has kept their faith and patience intact so far.

There is nothing mean or mercenary about these men in general. Convince them that the Government actually needs their money, and they would serve it barefooted and on half-rations, and without a dollar—for a time. But, unfortunately, they see white soldiers beside them, whom they know to be in no way their superiors for any military service, receiving hundreds of dollars for re-enlisting for this impoverished Government, which can only pay seven dollars out of thirteen to its black regiments. And they see, on the other hand, those colored men who refused to volunteer as soldiers, and who have found more honest paymasters than the United States Government, now exulting in well-filled pockets, and able to buy the little homesteads the soldiers need, and to turn the soldiers' families into the streets. Is this a school for self-sacrificing patriotism?

There’s nothing selfish or greedy about these men in general. If you convince them that the Government really needs their money, they’d gladly serve without proper shoes and on limited rations, and without a dime—for a while. But sadly, they see white soldiers next to them, who they know are no better than they are in any military skills, getting hundreds of dollars for re-enlisting for this struggling Government, which can only give seven out of thirteen dollars to its black regiments. On the flip side, they see the colored men who chose not to volunteer as soldiers, now enjoying better-paying jobs than the United States Government can provide, while celebrating their full pockets and able to purchase the little homesteads that the soldiers need, forcing the soldiers’ families out onto the streets. Is this really a place for selfless patriotism?

I should not speak thus urgently were it not becoming manifest that there is to be no promptness of action in Congress, even as regards the future pay of colored soldiers,—and that there is especial danger of the whole matter of arrears going by default Should it be so, it will be a repudiation more ungenerous than any which Jefferson Davis advocated or Sydney Smith denounced. It will sully with dishonor all the nobleness of this opening page of history, and fix upon the North a brand of meanness worse than either Southerner or Englishman has yet dared to impute. The mere delay in the fulfillment of this contract has already inflicted untold suffering, has impaired discipline, has relaxed loyalty, and has begun to implant a feeling of sullen distrust in the very regiments whose early career solved the problem of the nation, created a new army, and made peaceful emancipation possible.

I shouldn’t speak so urgently if it weren’t clear that Congress is not going to act quickly, even when it comes to the future pay of Black soldiers, and that there’s a real risk of the whole issue of arrears being ignored. If that happens, it will be a more ungrateful rejection than anything Jefferson Davis supported or that Sydney Smith criticized. It will tarnish the dignity of this pivotal moment in history and mark the North with a level of meanness that neither Southerners nor the English have dared to accuse us of. The simple delay in fulfilling this obligation has already caused immense suffering, weakened discipline, loosened loyalty, and started to foster a sense of deep distrust in the very regiments that played a crucial role in solving the nation’s problems, creating a new army, and making peaceful emancipation possible.

T. W. HIGGINSON, Colonel commanding 1st S. C. Vols.

T. W. HIGGINSON, Colonel in charge of the 1st S. C. Vols.

BEAUFORT, S. C., January 22, 1864.

BEAUFORT, S. C., January 22, 1864.

HEADQUARTERS FIRST SOUTH CAROLINA VOLUNTEERS, BEAUFORT, S. C., Sunday, February 14, 1864.

HEADQUARTERS FIRST SOUTH CAROLINA VOLUNTEERS, BEAUFORT, S. C., Sunday, February 14, 1864.

To the Editor of the New York Times:

To the Editor of the New York Times:

May I venture to call your attention to the great and cruel injustice which is impending over the brave men of this regiment?

May I draw your attention to the great and harsh injustice that is about to happen to the brave men of this regiment?

They have been in military service for over a year, having volunteered, every man, without a cent of bounty, on the written pledge of the War Department that they should receive the same pay and rations with white soldiers.

They have been in military service for over a year, having volunteered, every man, without any bonus, based on the written promise from the War Department that they would receive the same pay and rations as white soldiers.

This pledge is contained in the written instructions of Brigadier-General Saxton, Military Governor, dated August 25, 1862. Mr. Solicitor Whiting, having examined those instructions, admits to me that "the faith of the Government was thereby pledged to every officer and soldier under that call."

This pledge is included in the written instructions of Brigadier-General Saxton, Military Governor, dated August 25, 1862. Mr. Solicitor Whiting, after reviewing those instructions, acknowledges to me that "the faith of the Government was thereby pledged to every officer and soldier under that call."

Surely, if this fact were understood, every man in the nation would see that the Government is degraded by using for a year the services of the brave soldiers, and then repudiating the contract under which they were enlisted. This is what will be done, should Mr. Wilson's bill, legalizing the back pay of the army, be defeated.

Surely, if everyone understood this, every person in the country would realize that the Government is dishonoring itself by benefiting from the service of brave soldiers for a year and then rejecting the agreement under which they were recruited. This is what will happen if Mr. Wilson's bill, which legitimizes the back pay of the army, is not passed.

We presume too much on the supposed ignorance of these men. I have never yet found a man in my regiment so stupid as not to know when he was cheated. If fraud proceeds from Government itself, so much the worse, for this strikes at the foundation of all rectitude, all honor, all obligation.

We assume too much about these men's supposed ignorance. I have never encountered a soldier in my unit so foolish as to not realize when he's being cheated. If the deceit comes from the Government itself, that makes it even worse because it undermines the very basis of integrity, honor, and obligation.

Mr. Senator Fessenden said, in the debate on Mr. Wilson's bill, January 4, that the Government was not bound by the unauthorized promises of irresponsible recruiting officers. But is the Government itself an irresponsible recruiting officer? and if men have volunteered in good faith on the written assurances of the Secretary of War, is not Congress bound, in all decency, either to fulfill those pledges or to disband the regiments?

Mr. Senator Fessenden said, during the debate on Mr. Wilson's bill on January 4, that the Government isn't obligated by the unauthorized promises made by irresponsible recruiting officers. But is the Government itself an irresponsible recruiting officer? And if men have volunteered in good faith based on the written assurances from the Secretary of War, isn't Congress, in all decency, obligated to either honor those commitments or disband the regiments?

Mr. Senator Doolittle argued in the same debate that white soldiers should receive higher pay than black ones, because the families of the latter were often supported by Government What an astounding statement of fact is this! In the white regiment in which I was formerly an officer (the Massachusetts Fifty-First) nine tenths of the soldiers' families, in addition to the pay and bounties, drew regularly their "State aid." Among my black soldiers, with half-pay and no bounty, not a family receives any aid. Is there to be no limit, no end to the injustice we heap upon this unfortunate people? Cannot even the fact of their being in arms for the nation, liable to die any day in its defence, secure them ordinary justice? Is the nation so poor, and so utterly demoralized by its pauperism, that after it has had the lives of these men, it must turn round to filch six dollars of the monthly pay which the Secretary of War promised to their widows? It is even so, if the excuses of Mr. Fressenden and Mr. Doolittle are to be accepted by Congress and by the people.

Mr. Senator Doolittle argued in the same debate that white soldiers should receive higher pay than black soldiers because the families of the latter were often supported by the government. What an astonishing fact this is! In the white regiment where I used to serve as an officer (the Massachusetts Fifty-First), nine-tenths of the soldiers' families, in addition to their pay and bonuses, regularly received "State aid." Among my black soldiers, with half-pay and no bonuses, not a single family receives any aid. Is there no limit, no end to the injustice we inflict on these unfortunate people? Can't even the fact that they are fighting for the nation, risking their lives to defend it, guarantee them basic fairness? Is the nation so poor and completely demoralized by its poverty that after taking the lives of these men, it must turn around and take six dollars from the monthly pay that the Secretary of War promised to their widows? It certainly is, if we are to accept the excuses of Mr. Fressenden and Mr. Doolittle by Congress and the public.

Very respectfully, your obedient servant,

Yours respectfully, your obedient servant,

T, W. HIGGINSON, Colonel commanding 1st S. C. Volunteers.

T. W. HIGGINSON, Colonel in charge of the 1st S. C. Volunteers.

NEW VICTORIES AND OLD WRONGS To the Editors of the Evening Post:

NEW VICTORIES AND OLD WRONGS To the Editors of the Evening Post:

On the 2d of July, at James Island, S. C., a battery was taken by three regiments, under the following circumstances:

On July 2nd, at James Island, SC, a battery was captured by three regiments, under the following circumstances:

The regiments were the One Hundred and Third New York (white), the Thirty-Third United States (formerly First South Carolina Volunteers), and the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts, the two last being colored. They marched at one A. M., by the flank, in the above order, hoping to surprise the battery. As usual the rebels were prepared for them, and opened upon them as they were deep in one of those almost impassable Southern marshes. The One Hundred and Third New York, which had previously been in twenty battles, was thrown into confusion; the Thirty-Third United States did better, being behind; the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts being in the rear, did better still. All three formed in line, when Colonel Hartwell, commanding the brigade, gave the order to retreat. The officer commanding the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts, either misunderstanding the order, or hearing it countermanded, ordered his regiment to charge. This order was at once repeated by Major Trowbridge, commanding the Thirty-Third United States, and by the commander of the One Hundred and Third New York, so that the three regiments reached the fort in reversed order. The color-bearers of the Thirty-Third United States and of the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts had a race to be first in, the latter winning. The One Hundred and Third New York entered the battery immediately after.

The regiments were the One Hundred and Third New York (white), the Thirty-Third United States (previously the First South Carolina Volunteers), and the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts, the latter two being Black units. They marched at 1 A.M., lined up side by side, hoping to catch the battery off guard. As usual, the rebels were ready for them and opened fire while they were deep in one of those nearly impassable Southern marshes. The One Hundred and Third New York, which had already fought in twenty battles, got thrown into chaos; the Thirty-Third United States performed better since they were in the back; the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts, being in the rear, did even better. All three formed a line when Colonel Hartwell, who was in charge of the brigade, gave the order to retreat. The officer in charge of the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts, either misunderstanding the order or hearing that it was canceled, commanded his regiment to charge. This order was immediately echoed by Major Trowbridge, who led the Thirty-Third United States, and by the commander of the One Hundred and Third New York, causing the three regiments to reach the fort in reverse order. The color-bearers of the Thirty-Third United States and the Fifty-Fifth Massachusetts raced to be the first one in, with the latter winning. The One Hundred and Third New York entered the battery right after them.

These colored regiments are two of the five which were enlisted in South Carolina and Massachusetts, under the written pledge of the War Department that they should have the same pay and allowances as white soldiers. That pledge has been deliberately broken by the War Department, or by Congress, or by both, except as to the short period, since last New-Year's Day. Every one of those killed in this action from these two colored regiments under a fire before which the veterans of twenty battles recoiled died defrauded by the Government of nearly one half his petty pay.

These colored regiments are two of the five that were recruited in South Carolina and Massachusetts, based on the written promise from the War Department that they would receive the same pay and benefits as white soldiers. That promise has been intentionally broken by the War Department, Congress, or both, except for the brief period since last New Year’s Day. Every soldier from these two colored regiments who was killed in this action, facing fire that made veterans of twenty battles step back, died cheated by the Government of nearly half his meager pay.

Mr. Fessenden, who defeated in the Senate the bill for the fulfillment of the contract with these soldiers, is now Secretary of the Treasury. Was the economy of saving six dollars per man worth to the Treasury the ignominy of the repudiation?

Mr. Fessenden, who blocked the Senate bill to honor the contract with these soldiers, is now the Secretary of the Treasury. Was the effort to save six dollars per man worth the shame of breaking that promise?

Mr. Stevens, of Pennsylvania, on his triumphal return to his constituents, used to them this language: "He had no doubt whatever as to the final result of the present contest between liberty and slavery. The only doubt he had was whether the nation had yet been satisfactorily chastised for their cruel oppression of a harmless and long-suffering race." Inasmuch as it was Mr. Stevens himself who induced the House of Representatives, most unexpectedly to all, to defeat the Senate bill for the fulfillment of the national contract with these soldiers, I should think he had excellent reasons for the doubt.

Mr. Stevens from Pennsylvania, on his triumphant return to his constituents, said this: "I have no doubt at all about the final outcome of the current battle between freedom and slavery. The only uncertainty I have is whether the nation has been punished enough for its cruel treatment of a harmless and patient race." Since it was Mr. Stevens himself who unexpectedly persuaded the House of Representatives to block the Senate bill that aimed to honor the national contract with these soldiers, I think he had good reason for that doubt.

Very respectfully,

Respectfully,

T. W. HIGGINSON, Colonel 1st S. C. Vols (now 33d U. S.) July 10, 1864.

T. W. HIGGINSON, Colonel 1st S. C. Vols (now 33d U. S.) July 10, 1864.

To the Editor of the New York Tribune:

To the Editor of the New York Tribune:

No one can possibly be so weary of reading of the wrongs done by Government toward the colored soldiers as am I of writing about them. This is my only excuse for intruding on your columns again.

No one could possibly be as tired of reading about the injustices done by the government to the colored soldiers as I am of writing about them. This is my only reason for intruding on your pages again.

By an order of the War Department, dated August 1, 1864, it is at length ruled that colored soldiers shall be paid the full pay of soldiers from date of enlistment, provided they were free on April 19, 1861,—not otherwise; and this distinction is to be noted on the pay-rolls. In other words, if one half of a company escaped from slavery on April 18, 1861, they are to be paid thirteen dollars per month and allowed three dollars and a half per month for clothing. If the other half were delayed two days, they receive seven dollars per month and are allowed three dollars per month for precisely the same articles of clothing. If one of the former class is made first sergeant, Us pay is put up to twenty-one dollars per month; but if he escaped two days later, his pay is still estimated at seven dollars.

By an order from the War Department, dated August 1, 1864, it is now decided that Black soldiers will receive the full pay of soldiers from their enlistment date, as long as they were free on April 19, 1861—not otherwise; and this distinction will be noted on the pay rolls. In other words, if half of a company escaped from slavery on April 18, 1861, they will be paid thirteen dollars a month and given three dollars and fifty cents a month for clothing. If the other half were delayed by two days, they will receive seven dollars a month and will get three dollars a month for the same types of clothing. If one of the former group becomes a first sergeant, his pay is raised to twenty-one dollars a month; but if he escaped two days later, his pay is still set at seven dollars.

It had not occurred to me that anything could make the payrolls of these regiments more complicated than at present, or the men more rationally discontented. I had not the ingenuity to imagine such an order. Yet it is no doubt in accordance with the spirit, if not with the letter, of the final bill which was adopted by Congress under the lead of Mr. Thaddeus Stevens.

It never crossed my mind that anything could make the payrolls of these regiments more complicated than they already were, or that the men could be more logically unhappy. I didn’t have the creativity to come up with such an order. Still, it definitely aligns with the spirit, if not the exact wording, of the final bill that Congress passed with Mr. Thaddeus Stevens at the helm.

The ground taken by Mr. Stevens apparently was that the country might honorably save a few dollars by docking the promised pay of those colored soldiers whom the war had made free. But the Government should have thought of this before it made the contract with these men and received their services. When the War Department instructed Brigadier-General Saxton, August 25, 1862, to raise five regiments of negroes in South Carolina, it was known very well that the men so enlisted had only recently gained their freedom. But the instructions said: "The persons so received into service, and their officers, to be entitled to and receive the same pay and rations as are allowed by law to volunteers in the service." Of this passage Mr. Solicitor Whiting wrote to me: "I have no hesitation in saying that the faith of the Government was thereby pledged to every officer and soldier enlisted under that call." Where is that faith of the Government now?

The position taken by Mr. Stevens seemed to be that the country could respectably save some money by reducing the promised pay of the colored soldiers who had been freed by the war. But the Government should have considered this before entering into a contract with these men and accepting their services. When the War Department directed Brigadier-General Saxton on August 25, 1862, to recruit five regiments of Black soldiers in South Carolina, it was well known that these men had only recently gained their freedom. However, the instructions stated: "The individuals accepted into service, and their officers, are entitled to and will receive the same pay and rations as are permitted by law for volunteers in the service." Regarding this statement, Mr. Solicitor Whiting wrote to me: "I have no doubt that the Government's commitment was thus made to every officer and soldier who enlisted under that call." Where is that commitment from the Government now?

The men who enlisted under the pledge were volunteers, every one; they did not get their freedom by enlisting; they had it already. They enlisted to serve the Government, trusting in its honor. Now the nation turns upon them and says: Your part of the contract is fulfilled; we have had your services. If you can show that you had previously been free for a certain length of time, we will fulfil the other side of the contract. If not, we repudiate it Help yourselves, if you can.

The men who signed up under the pledge were all volunteers; they didn't gain their freedom by joining; they already had it. They enlisted to serve the government, believing in its integrity. Now the nation turns its back on them and says: You've done your part of the deal; we've used your services. If you can prove that you were free for a specific amount of time before, we'll honor the other part of the agreement. If not, we reject it. Figure it out for yourselves if you can.

In other words, a freedman (since April 19, 1861) has no rights which a white man is bound to respect. He is incapable of making a contract No man is bound by a contract made with him. Any employer, following the example of the United States Government, may make with him a written agreement receive his services, and then withhold the wages. He has no motive to honest industry, or to honesty of any kind. He is virtually a slave, and nothing else, to the end of time.

In other words, since April 19, 1861, a freedman has no rights that a white man is obligated to respect. He cannot enter into a contract. No one is obligated to uphold a contract with him. Any employer, following the lead of the United States Government, can create a written agreement with him, receive his services, and then refuse to pay him. He has no incentive for honest work or for honesty in general. He is essentially a slave, and that will never change.

Under this order, the greater part of the Massachusetts colored regiments will get their pay at last and be able to take their wives and children out of the almshouses, to which, as Governor Andrew informs us, the gracious charity of the nation has consigned so many. For so much I am grateful. But toward my regiment, which had been in service and under fire, months before a Northern colored soldier was recruited, the policy of repudiation has at last been officially adopted. There is no alternative for the officers of South Carolina regiments but to wait for another session of Congress, and meanwhile, if necessary, act as executioners for those soldiers who, like Sergeant Walker, refuse to fulfil their share of a contract where the Government has openly repudiated the other share. If a year's discussion, however, has at length secured the arrears of pay for the Northern colored regiments, possibly two years may secure it for the Southern.

Under this order, most of the Massachusetts colored regiments will finally receive their pay and will be able to take their wives and children out of the poorhouses, to which, as Governor Andrew informs us, the nation's generous charity has consigned so many. For this, I am thankful. However, regarding my regiment, which had been in service and under fire months before any Northern colored soldier was recruited, the policy of rejection has now been officially adopted. The officers of South Carolina regiments have no choice but to wait for another session of Congress, and in the meantime, if necessary, act as executioners for those soldiers who, like Sergeant Walker, refuse to fulfill their part of a contract when the Government has openly rejected the other part. If a year of discussion has finally secured the overdue pay for the Northern colored regiments, perhaps two years will secure it for the Southern ones.

T. W. HIGGINSON, Colonel 1st S. C. Vols. (now 33d V. S.)

T. W. HIGGINSON, Colonel 1st S. C. Vols. (now 33rd V. S.)

August 12, 1864.

August 12, 1864.

To the Editor of the New York Tribune:

To the Editor of the New York Tribune:

SIR,—An impression seems to prevail in the newspapers that the lately published "opinion" of Attorney-General Bates (dated in July last) at length secures justice to the colored soldiers in respect to arrears of pay. This impression is a mistake.

SIR,—There seems to be a belief in the newspapers that the recent "opinion" from Attorney-General Bates (dated last July) finally guarantees justice for the colored soldiers regarding their unpaid wages. This belief is incorrect.

That "opinion" does indeed show that there never was any excuse for refusing them justice; but it does not, of itself, secure justice to them.

That "opinion" clearly shows that there was never a reason to deny them justice; however, it doesn't, by itself, guarantee justice for them.

It logically covers the whole ground, and was doubtless intended to do so; but technically it can only apply to those soldiers who were free at the commencement of the war. For it was only about these that the Attorney-General was officially consulted.

It logically covers everything and was definitely meant to do so; however, technically it only applies to those soldiers who were free at the start of the war. This was the only group the Attorney-General was officially consulted about.

Under this decision the Northern colored regiments have already got their arrears of pay,—and those few members of the Southern regiments who were free on April 19, 1861. But in the South Carolina regiments this only increases the dissatisfaction among the remainder, who volunteered under the same pledge of full pay from the War Department, and who do not see how the question of their status at some antecedent period can affect an express contract If, in 1862, they were free enough to make a bargain with, they were certainly free enough to claim its fulfilment.

Under this decision, the Northern colored regiments have already received their back pay, along with the few members of the Southern regiments who were free as of April 19, 1861. However, in the South Carolina regiments, this only heightens the dissatisfaction among the rest, who enlisted under the same promise of full pay from the War Department and don’t understand how their status at some earlier time could impact a clear contract. If they were free enough to make a deal in 1862, they were definitely free enough to demand that it be honored.

The unfortunate decision of Mr. Solicitor Whiting, under which all our troubles arose, is indeed superseded by the reasoning of the Attorney-General. But unhappily that does not remedy the evil, which is already embodied in an Act of Congress, making the distinction between those who were and those who were not free on April 19, 1861.

The unfortunate choice made by Mr. Solicitor Whiting, which started all our troubles, is indeed overridden by the reasoning of the Attorney-General. But sadly, that doesn’t fix the problem, which is already written into a law passed by Congress, creating a distinction between those who were free and those who were not on April 19, 1861.

The question is, whether those who were not free at the breaking out of the war are still to be defrauded, after the Attorney-General has shown that there is no excuse for defrauding them?

The question is whether those who were not free when the war started are still going to be cheated, now that the Attorney-General has demonstrated that there's no justification for cheating them?

I call it defrauding, because it is not a question of abstract justice, but of the fulfilment of an express contract

I call it fraud, because it’s not about abstract justice, but about fulfilling a specific contract.

I have never met with a man, whatever might be his opinions as to the enlistment of colored soldiers, who did not admit that if they had volunteered under the direct pledge of full pay from the War Department, they were entitled to every cent of it. That these South Carolina regiments had such direct pledge is undoubted, for it still exists in writing, signed by the Secretary of War, and has never been disputed.

I have never met a man, regardless of his views on enlisting Black soldiers, who didn't agree that if they volunteered with a clear promise of full pay from the War Department, they were entitled to every dollar. It's undeniable that these South Carolina regiments had such a promise, as it still exists in writing, signed by the Secretary of War, and has never been challenged.

It is therefore the plain duty of Congress to repeal the law which discriminates between different classes of colored soldiers, or at least so to modify it as to secure the fulfilment of actual contracts. Until this is done the nation is still disgraced. The few thousand dollars in question are nothing compared with the absolute wrong done and the discredit it has brought, both here and in Europe, upon the national name.

It is clearly the responsibility of Congress to repeal the law that treats different groups of colored soldiers unfairly, or at the very least, to change it in a way that guarantees the fulfillment of existing contracts. Until this happens, the nation remains embarrassed. The few thousand dollars involved are insignificant compared to the substantial injustice done and the shame it has brought, both here and in Europe, to the country’s reputation.

T. W. HIGGINSON,

T. W. Higginson

Late Col. 1st S. C. Vols. (now 33d U. S. C. T.) NEWPORT, R. I, December 8, 1864.

Late Col. 1st S. C. Vols. (now 33rd U. S. C. T.) NEWPORT, R. I, December 8, 1864.

PETITION

PETITION

"To the Honorable Senate and House of Representatives of the United States in Congress assembled:

"To the Honorable Senate and House of Representatives of the United States in Congress assembled:"

"The undersigned respectfully petitions for the repeal of so much of Section IV. of the Act of Congress making appropriations for the army and approved July 4, 1864, as makes a distinction, in respect to pay due, between those colored soldiers who were free on or before April 19, 1861, and those who were not free until a later date;

"The undersigned respectfully requests the repeal of part of Section IV of the Act of Congress that allocates funds for the army and was approved on July 4, 1864, which creates a distinction in pay owed between the colored soldiers who were free on or before April 19, 1861, and those who were not free until a later date;

"Or at least that there may be such legislation as to secure the fulfillment of pledges of full pay from date of enlistment, made by direct authority of the War Department to the colored soldiers of South Carolina, on the faith of which pledges they enlisted.

"Or at least that there may be laws to ensure the fulfillment of promises of full pay from the date of enlistment, made by direct authority of the War Department to the Black soldiers of South Carolina, based on which promises they signed up."

"THOMAS WENTWORTH HIGGINSON, Late Colonel 1st S. C. Vols. (now 33d U. S. C. Vols.)

"THOMAS WENTWORTH HIGGINSON, Former Colonel 1st S. C. Vols. (now 33d U. S. C. Vols.)"

"NEWPORT, R. L, December 9, 1864."

"NEWPORT, R. I, December 9, 1864."





Appendix E Farewell Address of Lt. Col. Trowbridge

HEADQUARTERS 33d UNITED STATES COLORED TROOPS, LATE 1ST SOUTH CAROLINA VOLUNTEERS,

HEADQUARTERS 33rd UNITED STATES COLORED TROOPS, FORMERLY 1ST SOUTH CAROLINA VOLUNTEERS,

MORRIS ISLAND, S. C.,

Morris Island, SC,

February 9, 1866. GENERAL ORDERS, No. 1.

February 9, 1866. GENERAL ORDERS, No. 1.

COMRADES,—The hour is at hand when we must separate forever, and nothing can ever take from us the pride we feel, when we look back upon the history of the First South Carolina Volunteers,—the first black regiment that ever bore arms in defence of freedom on the continent of America.

COMRADES,—The time has come for us to part ways forever, and nothing can ever diminish the pride we feel when we reflect on the history of the First South Carolina Volunteers—the first black regiment to fight for freedom on the continent of America.

On the ninth day of May, 1862, at which time there were nearly four millions of your race in a bondage sanctioned by the laws of the land, and protected by our flag,—on that day, in the face of floods of prejudice, that wellnigh deluged every avenue to manhood and true liberty, you came forth to do battle for your country and your kindred. For long and weary months without pay, or even the privilege of being recognized as soldiers, you labored on, only to be disbanded and sent to your homes, without even a hope of reward. And when our country, necessitated by the deadly struggle with armed traitors, finally granted you the opportunity again to come forth in defence of the nation's life, the alacrity with which you responded to the call gave abundant evidence of your readiness to strike a manly blow for the liberty of your race. And from that little band of hopeful, trusting, and brave men, who gathered at Camp Saxton, on Port Royal Island, in the fall of 1862, amidst the terrible prejudices that then surrounded us, has grown an army of a hundred and forty thousand black soldiers, whose valor and heroism has won for your race a name which will live as long as the undying pages of history shall endure; and by whose efforts, united with those of the white man, armed rebellion has been conquered, the millions of bondmen have been emancipated, and the fundamental law of the land has been so altered as to remove forever the possibility of human slavery being re-established within the borders of redeemed America. The flag of our fathers, restored to its rightful significance, now floats over every foot of our territory, from Maine to California, and beholds only freemen! The prejudices which formerly existed against you are wellnigh rooted out

On May 9, 1862, when there were almost four million people of your race in bondage, supported by the laws of the land and protected by our flag, you stepped up to fight for your country and your community despite facing immense prejudice that almost blocked every path to manhood and true freedom. For many long and difficult months, without pay or the acknowledgment of being soldiers, you persevered, only to be disbanded and sent home with no hope of reward. When our country, compelled by the brutal struggle against armed traitors, finally gave you the chance to serve again in defense of the nation’s survival, the eagerness with which you answered the call clearly demonstrated your willingness to fight bravely for the freedom of your race. From that small group of hopeful, trusting, and courageous men who assembled at Camp Saxton on Port Royal Island in the fall of 1862, amidst the overwhelming prejudices of the time, an army of one hundred and forty thousand black soldiers has emerged, whose bravery and heroism have won your race a legacy that will endure as long as history exists; and through their efforts, alongside those of white soldiers, the armed rebellion has been defeated, millions of enslaved individuals have been freed, and the fundamental laws of the land have been changed to forever eliminate the possibility of human slavery being re-established within the boundaries of a redeemed America. The flag of our forefathers, restored to its rightful meaning, now flies over every inch of our territory, from Maine to California, and sees only free people! The prejudices that once existed against you have nearly vanished.

Soldiers, you have done your duty, and acquitted yourselves like men, who, actuated by such ennobling motives, could not fail; and as the result of your fidelity and obedience, you have won your freedom. And O, how great the reward!

Soldiers, you have fulfilled your duty and acted like true men who, motivated by such noble intentions, could not fail; and as a result of your loyalty and adherence, you have earned your freedom. And oh, what a great reward it is!

It seems fitting to me that the last hours of our existence as a regiment should be passed amidst the unmarked graves of your comrades,—at Fort Wagner. Near you rest the bones of Colonel Shaw, buried by an enemy's hand, in the same grave with his black soldiers, who fell at his side; where, in future, your children's children will come on pilgrimages to do homage to the ashes of those that fell in this glorious struggle.

It seems appropriate to me that the final hours of our existence as a regiment should be spent among the unmarked graves of your comrades at Fort Wagner. Nearby lie the remains of Colonel Shaw, laid to rest by an enemy's hand in the same grave as his Black soldiers who fell by his side; where, in the future, your grandchildren will come on pilgrimages to pay respect to the ashes of those who fell in this glorious fight.

The flag which was presented to us by the Rev. George B. Cheever and his congregation, of New York City, on the first of January, 1863,—the day when Lincoln's immortal proclamation of freedom was given to the world,—and which you have borne so nobly through the war, is now to be rolled up forever, and deposited in our nation's capital. And while there it shall rest, with the battles in which you have participated inscribed upon its folds, it will be a source of pride to us all to remember that it has never been disgraced by a cowardly faltering in the hour of danger or polluted by a traitor's touch.

The flag that was presented to us by Rev. George B. Cheever and his congregation from New York City on January 1, 1863—the day when Lincoln's timeless proclamation of freedom was announced to the world—and which you have carried so honorably throughout the war, is now being rolled up for good and will be placed in our nation’s capital. While it rests there, with the battles you fought embroidered on its folds, it will be a source of pride for all of us to remember that it has never been dishonored by cowardice in times of danger or tainted by a traitor’s touch.

Now that you are to lay aside your arms, and return to the peaceful avocations of life, I adjure you, by the associations and history of the past, and the love you bear for your liberties, to harbor no feelings of hatred toward your former masters, but to seek in the paths of honesty, virtue, sobriety, and industry, and by a willing obedience to the laws of the land, to grow up to the full stature of American citizens. The church, the school-house, and the right forever to be free are now secured to you, and every prospect before you is full of hope and encouragement. The nation guarantees to you full protection and justice, and will require from you in return the respect for the laws and orderly deportment which will prove to every one your right to all the privileges of freemen.

Now that you’re putting away your weapons and returning to a peaceful life, I urge you, by the memories and history of the past and the love you have for your freedom, to hold no hatred towards your former masters. Instead, focus on honesty, virtue, sobriety, and hard work, and by willingly obeying the laws of the land, strive to become full American citizens. The church, the schoolhouse, and the right to be free are now yours, and the future is filled with hope and encouragement. The nation guarantees you protection and justice, and in return, it requires you to respect the laws and behave in a way that demonstrates your right to all the privileges of being free.

To the officers of the regiment I would say, your toils are ended, your mission is fulfilled, and we separate forever. The fidelity, patience, and patriotism with which you have discharged your duties, to your men and to your country, entitle you to a far higher tribute than any words of thankfulness which I can give you from the bottom of my heart You will find your reward in the proud conviction that the cause for which you have battled so nobly has been crowned with abundant success.

To the officers of the regiment, I want to say that your hard work is done, your mission is complete, and we part ways forever. The loyalty, patience, and patriotism you've shown in fulfilling your duties to your men and your country deserve a much greater acknowledgment than any words of gratitude I can express from the bottom of my heart. You will find your reward in the pride of knowing that the cause you fought for so bravely has been met with great success.

Officers and soldiers of the Thirty-Third United States Colored Troops, once the First South Carolina Volunteers, I bid you all farewell!

Officers and soldiers of the Thirty-Third United States Colored Troops, formerly the First South Carolina Volunteers, I say goodbye to all of you!

By order of Lt.-Col. C. T. TROWBRIDGE, commanding Regiment

By order of Lt.-Col. C. T. TROWBRIDGE, commanding Regiment

E. W. HYDE, Lieutenant and Acting Adjutant.

E. W. HYDE, Lieutenant and Acting Adjutant.

INDEX

INDEX

[page numbers have been retained for the W. W. Norton paperback reprint to show relative location in file.]

[page numbers have been retained for the W. W. Norton paperback reprint to show relative location in file.]

Index

Index

Aiken, William, GOT., 166

Aiken, William, GOT., 166

Aiken, South Carolina, 249

Aiken, SC, 249

Allston, Adam, Corp., 103

Allston, Adam, Corp., 103

Andrew, J. A., Gov., 29, 215, 216, sends Emancipation Proclamation to Higginson, 85

Andrew, J. A., Gov., 29, 215, 216, sends the Emancipation Proclamation to Higginson, 85

Bates, Edward, 275

Bates, Edward, 275

Battle of the Hundred Pines, 95, 104

Battle of the Hundred Pines, 95, 104

Beach, H. A., Lt, 257, 258

Beach, H. A., Lt, 257, 258

Beaufort, South Carolina, 33, 34, 38, 106, 142, 215 Higginson visits, 64 Negro troops march through, 74 picket station near, 134 residents visit camp, 147 Negro troops patrol, 219

Beaufort, South Carolina, 33, 34, 38, 106, 142, 215 Higginson visits, 64 Black troops march through, 74 picket station nearby, 134 residents visit camp, 147 Black troops patrol, 219

Beauregard, P. G.T., Gen., 45, 73

Beauregard, P. G.T., General, 45, 73

Beecher, H. R., Rev., 241

Beecher, H. R., Rev., 241

Bell, Louis, Col., 225

Bell, Louis, Colonel, 225

Bennett, W. T., Gen., 249, 255

Bennett, W. T., Gen., 249, 255

Bezzard, James, 95

Bezzard, James, 95

Bigelow, L. F., Lt, 28

Bigelow, L. F., Lt, 28

Billings, L., Lt.-Col., 255

Billings, L., Lt. Col., 255

Bingham, J. M., Lt, 170, 257

Bingham, J. M., Lt, 170, 257

Brannan, J. M, Gen., 107

Brannan, J. M., Gen., 107

Brisbane, W. H., 60

Brisbane, W. H., 60

Bronson, William, Sgt, 260

Bronson, William, Sgt, 260

Brown, A. B., Lt, 258

Brown, A. B., Lt, 258

Brown, John, 29, 45, 61, 76

Brown, John, 29, 45, 61, 76

Brown, John (Negro), 262

Brown, John (Black), 262

Brown, York, 262 Bryant, J. E., Capt, 220

Brown, York, 262 Bryant, J. E., Capt, 220

Budd, Lt, 83

Budd, Lt, '83

Burnside, A. E., Gen., 54, 55

Burnside, A. E., Gen., 54, 55

Butler, B. F., Gen., 27

Butler, B. F., Gen., 27

Calhoun, J. C., Capt., 150 Camplife, 30 evening activities, 36-39, 44-49 Casualties, 89

Calhoun, J. C., Capt., 150 Camplife, 30 evening activities, 36-39, 44-49 Casualties, 89

Chamberlin, G. B., Lt., 177, 257 Chamberlin, Mrs., 229

Chamberlin, G. B., Lt., 177, 257 Chamberlin, Mrs., 229

Charleston, South Carolina, attacked, 137, 143, 150 Negro troops in, 249 Charleston and Savannah Railway, 163

Charleston, South Carolina, attacked, 137, 143, 150 Black troops in, 249 Charleston and Savannah Railway, 163

Cheever, G. B., Rev., 278

Cheever, G. B., Rev., 278

Child, A. Lt, 258

Child, A. Lt, 258

Christmas, 55, 56

Christmas, 55, 56

Clark, Capt, 84, 89, 102

Clark, Capt, 84, 89, 102

Clifton, Capt, 100, 101

Clifton, Capt, 100, 101

Clinton, J. B., Lt, 165

Clinton, J. B., Lt, 165

Colors, Stands of, 56, 60

Colors, Stands of, 56, 60

Confederates, 35 use spies, 91, 93 attack Negro troops, 86-87, 100-102 threaten to burn Jacksonville, 110 civilians fear Negro troops, 116 retreat, 126-127,142

Confederates, 35 use spies, 91, 93 attack Black troops, 86-87, 100-102 threaten to burn Jacksonville, 110 civilians fear Black troops, 116 retreat, 126-127,142

Connecticut Regiment, Sixth, 122, 124, 126 Seventh, 93

Connecticut Regiment, Sixth, 122, 124, 126 Seventh, 93

Corwin, B. R., MaJ., 120, 126

Corwin, B. R., MaJ., 120, 126

Crandall, W. B., Surg., 255

Crandall, W. B., Surg., 255

Crum, Simon, Corp., 249

Crum, Simon, Corp., 249

Cushman, James, 241

Cushman, James, 241

Danilson, W. H., Maj., 93, 256,

Danilson, W. H., Maj., 93, 256,

Davis, C. I., Lt., 257

Davis, C. I., Lt., 257

Davis., R. M., Lt., 259

Davis, R. M., Lt., 259

Davis, W. W. H., Gen., 164

Davis, W. W. H., Gen., 164

Department of the South, 15, 80 quiet, 106 colored troops in, 137

Department of the South, 15, 80 quiet, 106 colored troops in, 137

Desertions, 62

Desertions, 62

Dewhurst, G. W., Adjt, 256

Dewhurst, G. W., Adj., 256

Dewhurst, Mrs., 229

Dewhurst, Mrs., 229

Discipline, need for, 29 Negroes accept, 39

Discipline, need for, 29 Black people accept, 39

Dolly, George, Capt., 172, 256

Dolly, George, Capt., 172, 256

Doolittle, J. R., 271

Doolittle, J.R., 271

Drill, of Negroes, 46, 51, 245 whites, 64-65

Drill, of Black people, 46, 51, 245 white people, 64-65

Drinking, absence of, 58

Absence of drinking, 58

Duncan, Lt. Com., 109, 111

Duncan, Lt. Cmdr., 109, 111

Dupont, S. F., Admiral, 15, 82, 91, 99, 108, 137

Dupont, S. F., Admiral, 15, 82, 91, 99, 108, 137

Dutch, Capt., 166

Dutch, Captain, 166

Edisto expedition, 163-176, 214

Edisto expedition, 163-176, 214

Education, desire for, 48

Desire for education, 48

Emancipation Proclamation, 65 read, 60 sent to Higginson, 85

Emancipation Proclamation, 65 read, 60 sent to Higginson, 85

Fernandina, Florida, 84, 91, 104

Fernandina, FL, 84, 91, 104

Fessenden, W. P., 271, 272

Fessenden, W. P., 271, 272

Finnegan, Gen., 115

Finnegan, Gen., 115

Fisher, J., Lt., 257

Fisher, J., Lt., 257

Florida, 221 men under Higginson, 35 slaves know about Lincoln, 46 refugees from, 49 Foraging, 99, 104, 117, 120 restraint in, 96-97 in Florida, 221

Florida, 221 men under Higginson, 35 slaves know about Lincoln, 46 refugees from, 49 Foraging, 99, 104, 117, 120 restraint in, 96-97 in Florida, 221

Fowler, J. H., Chap., 59, 119, 221,

Fowler, J. H., Chap., 59, 119, 221,

Fremont, J. C., Gen., 46, 61

Fremont, J. C., Gen., 46, 61

French, J., Rev., 60, 123

French, J., Rev., 60, 123

Furman, J. T., Lt, 258

Furman, J. T., Lt, 258

Gage, F. D., Mrs., 61

Gage, F. D., Mrs., 61

Garrison, W. L., 236

Garrison, W.L., 236

Gaston, William, Lt., 257

Gaston, William, Lt., 257

Gilmore, Q. A., Gen., 176, 224, 226, 228 writes on Charleston, 163 approves Edisto expedition, 164

Gilmore, Q. A., Gen., 176, 224, 226, 228 writes about Charleston, 163 supports Edisto expedition, 164

Goldsborough, Commodore, 231,

Goldsborough, Commodore, 231,

Goodell, J. B., Lt., 28

Goodell, J. B., Lt., 28

Goodrich, F. S., Lt., 258, 259

Goodrich, F. S., Lt., 258, 259

Gould, E. Corp., 261

Gould, E. Corp., 261

Gould, F. M., Lt, 258

Gould, F. M., Lt, 258

Greeley, Horace, 164

Greeley, Horace, 164

Greene, Sgt, 125

Greene, Sgt., 125

Hallett, Capt, 80, 81, 261

Hallett, Capt, 80, 81, 261

Hallowell, E. N., Gen., 216, 230,

Hallowell, E. N., Gen., 216, 230,

Hamburg, South Carolina, 249

Hamburg, SC, 249

Hartwell, A. S., Gen., 272

Hartwell, A. S., General, 272

Hawks, J. M., Surg., 256

Hawks, J. M., Surg., 256

Hawley, J. R., Gen., 93,102,114

Hawley, J. R., Gen., 93, 102, 114

Hayne, H. E., Sgt., 249

Hayne, H. E., Sgt., 249

Hazard, Miles, 262

Hazard, Miles, 262

Heasley, A, Capt., 220, 256

Heasley, A, Capt., 220, 256

Heron, Charles, 126

Heron, Charles, 126

Hilton Head, 32 Higginson visits, 106 troops on duty at, 214

Hilton Head, 32 visits by Higginson, 106 soldiers on duty at, 214

Hinton, R. J., Col., 264

Hinton, R. J., Col., 264

Holden, Lt, 126

Holden, Lt, 126

Hooper, C. W., Capt., 154, 226, 256, 257, 258

Hooper, C. W., Capt., 154, 226, 256, 257, 258

Hospital, camp, 56, 63

Hospital, camp, 56, 63

Howard University, 250

Howard University, 250

Hughes, Lt. Com., 91, 93, 94

Hughes, Lt. Com., 91, 93, 94

Hunter, David., Gen.-28, 35, 40, 62, 80, 124, 130, 131, 138, 164, 260, 261, 263 takes Negro sgt to N.Y., 73 visits camp, 76 speaks to Negro troops, 76 Higginson confers with, 106 orders evacuation of Jacksonville, 107 attacks Charleston, 137 goes North, 150

Hunter, David., Gen.-28, 35, 40, 62, 80, 124, 130, 131, 138, 164, 260, 261, 263 takes Black sergeant to New York, 73 visits camp, 76 speaks to Black troops, 76 Higginson confers with, 106 orders evacuation of Jacksonville, 107 attacks Charleston, 137 goes North, 150

Hyde, E. W., Lt, 258, 259, 279

Hyde, E. W., Lt, 258, 259, 279

Hyde, W. H., Lt, 89, 257

Hyde, W. H., Lt, 89, 257

Jackson, A. W., Capt, 87, 89, 256, 257, 258

Jackson, A. W., Capt, 87, 89, 256, 257, 258

Jacksonville, Florida Confederates threaten to burn, 110 Higginson's men reach, 112-113 description of, 114-115 order to evacuate, 130 attempts to bum, 130-131

Jacksonville, Florida The Confederates threaten to burn, 110 Higginson's men reach, 112-113 description of, 114-115 order to evacuate, 130 attempts to burn, 130-131

James, William, Capt., 96,165,256

James, William, Capt., 96,165,256

Jekyll Island, 83

Jekyll Island, 83

Johnston, J. F., Lt, 257

Johnston, J. F., Lt, 257

Jones, Lt., 89

Lt. Jones, 89

Kansas, 29, 43, 64

Kansas, 29, 43, 64

Kemble, Fanny, 82, 261

Kemble, Fanny, 82, 261

Kennon, Clarence, Cpl., 262

Kennon, Clarence, Cpl., 262

King, T. B., 82

King, T. B., 82

Lambkin, Prince, Cpl., 45, 116

Lambkin, Prince, Cpl., 45, 116

Leslie's Illustrated Weekly, 56

Leslie's Illustrated Weekly, 56

Lincoln, Abraham, 46, 238

Lincoln, Abraham, 46, 238

London Spectator, 76

London Spectator, 76

Long, Thomas, CpL, 240

Long, Thomas, CPL, 240

Mclntyre, H., Sgt., 85, 86, 239

Mclntyre, H., Sgt., 85, 86, 239

Maine, 43

Maine, 43 yrs old

Maine Regiment, Eighth, 75, 123, 124, 126

Maine Regiment, Eighth, 75, 123, 124, 126

Manning, B. H., Lt, 259

Manning, B. H., Lt, 259

Maroons, 235, 237

Maroons, 235, 237

Massachusetts Regiment, First, 139 Fifty-Fourth, 27, 215, 232

Massachusetts Regiment, First, 139 Fifty-Fourth, 27, 215, 232

Meeker, L., Maj., 122, 126

Meeker, L., Maj., 122, 126

Merriam, E. C., Capt, 256, 257

Merriam, E. C., Capt, 256, 257

Metcalf, L. W., Capt, 85, 87, 96, 220, 256

Metcalf, L. W., Capt, 85, 87, 96, 220, 256

Miller family, 234

Miller family, 234

Minor, T. T, Surg., 87, 256

Minor, T. T, Surg., 87, 256

Mitchell, O. M., Gen., 263

Mitchell, O. M., Gen., 263

Montgomery, James, Col., 114, 120, 130, 264 enters Jacksonville, 112 river raid led by, 120, 129, 164

Montgomery, James, Col., 114, 120, 130, 264 enters Jacksonville, 112 river raid led by, 120, 129, 164

Moses, Acting Master, 83

Moses, Acting Master, 83

Mulattoes, 33, 42, 234 pass for white, 49-50

Mulattoes, 33, 42, 234 pass as white, 49-50

Music, troops play, 47, 187-213

Music, troops play, 47, 187-213

Negro soldiers visited, 30 work at night, 38-39 as sentinels, 42, 66-69 honor and fidelity, 66 march to Beaufort, 74-75 conduct under fire, 86-87, 100-101, 128-129 treatment of whites by, 116 on picket duty, 133 on raid up Edisto, 167-176 appraisal of, 231-247 from North and South compared,

Negro soldiers visited, 30 work at night, 38-39 as sentinels, 42, 66-69 honor and fidelity, 66 march to Beaufort, 74-75 conduct under fire, 86-87, 100-101, 128-129 treatment of whites by, 116 on picket duty, 133 on raid up Edisto, 167-176 appraisal of, 231-247 from North and South compared,

Negro spirituals, 187-213

Black spirituals, 187-213

Negroes, traits of, 66, 69-71 physical condition of, 72, 246 set free by Higginson's men, 166-169

Negroes, traits of, 66, 69-71 physical condition of, 72, 246 set free by Higginson's men, 166-169

New Hampshire Regiment, Fourth, 139, 225

New Hampshire Regiment, Fourth, 139, 225

New Year's celebration, 55, 56, 57-61

New Year's celebration, 55, 56, 57-61

New York, 34 Officers, white, 51

New York, 34 Officers, white, 51

O'Neil, J. B., Lt., 257

O'Neil, J. B., Lt., 257

Osborne, Lt., 220

Osborne, Lt., 220

Parker, C. E., Lt., 257

Parker, C. E., Lt., 257

Parker, N. B., Capt., 256, 257, 258

Parker, N. B., Capt., 256, 257, 258

Parsons, William, 89

Parsons, William, age 89

Phillips, Wendell, 118, 236

Phillips, Wendell, 118, 236

Pomeroy, J., Lt, 257

Pomeroy, J., Lt, 257

Port Royal, 82, 83, 124 capture of, 164 as winter camp, 177 new camp at, 215 objective of Sherman, 247

Port Royal, 82, 83, 124 capture of, 164 as winter camp, 177 new camp at, 215 objective of Sherman, 247

Ramsay, Allan, 209

Ramsay, Allan, 209

Randolph, W. J., Capt, 120, 256

Randolph, W. J., Capt, 120, 256

Rebels. See Confederates Religious activities, 47, 48, 240-241

Rebels. See Confederates Religious activities, 47, 48, 240-241

Rivers, Prince, Sgt., 61,75,245,249 qualities of, 73, 78 plants colors, 99

Rivers, Prince, Sgt., 61,75,245,249 qualities of, 73, 78 plants colors, 99

Robbins, E. W., Capt, 256, 257,

Robbins, E. W., Capt, 256, 257,

Roberts, Samuel, 231

Roberts, Samuel, 231

Rogers, J. S., Capt, 103, 173, 250, 256

Rogers, J. S., Capt, 103, 173, 250, 256

Rogers, Seth, Surg., 89, 103, 255

Rogers, Seth, Surg., 89, 103, 255

Rust, J. D., Col., 124, 125,126,131

Rust, J. D., Col., 124, 125, 126, 131

Sammis, Col., 49

Sammis, Colorado, 49

St. Simon's Island, 83, 84

St. Simons Island, 83, 84

Sampson, W. W., Capt, 170, 256,

Sampson, W. W., Capt, 170, 256,

Savannah, Georgia, 115, 249

Savannah, Georgia, 115, 249

Saxton, M. W., Lt., 258

Saxton, M. W., Lt., 258

Saxton, Rufus, Gen., 29, 55, 58, 59, 61,70,76,80,88,102,108, 143, 164, 216, 224, 225, 229, 232, 235, 261, 263, 267, 269, 270, 273 offers command to Higginson, 78 Higginson reports to, 33 issues proclamation, 34 receives recruits, 40 speaks on New Year's program, Negroes idolize, 66 speaks to troops, 76 initiates plans for Shaw monument, 217 Christmas party, 219

Saxton, Rufus, Gen., 29, 55, 58, 59, 61, 70, 76, 80, 88, 102, 108, 143, 164, 216, 224, 225, 229, 232, 235, 261, 263, 267, 269, 270, 273 offers command to Higginson, 78 Higginson reports to, 33 issues proclamation, 34 receives recruits, 40 speaks on New Year's program, Negroes idolize, 66 speaks to troops, 76 initiates plans for Shaw monument, 217 Christmas party, 219

Searles, J. M., Lt., 259

Searles, J. M., Lt., 259

Sears, Capt., 94

Sears, Capt., 94

Selvage, J. M., Lt, 258

Selvage, J. M., Lt, 258

Serrell, E. W., Col., 260

Serrell, E. W., Colonel, 260

Seward, W. H., 238

Seward, W. H., 238

Seymour, T., Gen., 132, 228

Seymour, T., General, 132, 228

Shaw, R. G., Col., 170, 264, 278 camp named for, 215 Higginson meets, 216 killed, 217

Shaw, R. G., Col., 170, 264, 278 camp named for, 215 Higginson meets, 216 killed, 217

Sherman, W. T., Gen., 170, 247

Sherman, W. T., Gen., 170, 247

Showalter, Lt.-Col, 128

Showalter, Lt. Col, 128

"Siege of Charleston," 163

"Siege of Charleston," 163

Simmons, London, Cpl., 245

Simmons, London, Cpl., 245

Slavery, effect of, 38, 244

Slavery, effects of, 38, 244

Smalls, Robert, Capt, 33, 80

Smalls, Robert, Captain, 33, 80

Songs, Negro, 136, 187-213

Songs, Black, 136, 187-213

South Carolina, 29 men under Higginson, 35, 40 man reads Emancipation Proclamation, 59-60

South Carolina, 29 men led by Higginson, 35, 40 men read the Emancipation Proclamation, 59-60

South Carolina Volunteers, First, 27, 237 order to Florida countermanded, 225 becomes Thirty-third U.S. Colored Troops, 248 South Carolina Volunteers, Second, 27, 126, 264

South Carolina Volunteers, First, 27, 237 order to Florida canceled, 225 becomes Thirty-third U.S. Colored Troops, 248 South Carolina Volunteers, Second, 27, 126, 264

Sprague, A. B. R., Col., 28

Sprague, A. B. R., Col., 28

Stafford, Col., 264

Stafford, CO, 264

Stanton, E. M., 266

Stanton, E. M., 266

Steedman, Capt, 130

Steedman, Capt, 130

Stevens, Capt, 83

Capt. Stevens, 83

Stevens, Thaddeus, 272, 273

Stevens, Thaddeus, 272, 273

Stickney, Judge, 61, 106, 114

Stickney, Judge, 61, 106, 114

Stockdale, W, Lt, 257

Stockdale, W, Lt, 257

Stone, H. A., Lt, 257

Stone, H. A., Lt, 257

Strong, J. D., Lt.-Col., 80, 121, 126, 172, 174, 175, 255

Strong, J. D., Lt.-Col., 80, 121, 126, 172, 174, 175, 255

Stuard, E. S., Surg., 256

Stuard, E. S., Surgeon, 256

Sumner, Charles, 268

Sumner, Charles, 268

Sunderland, Col., 113

Sunderland, CO, 113

Sutton, Robert, Sgt, 61, 88, 94, 95, 188 character of, 78-79 leads men, 85-86 wounded, 90 exhibits slave jail, 97-98 court-martialed, 104

Sutton, Robert, Sgt, 61, 88, 94, 95, 188 character of, 78-79 leads men, 85-86 wounded, 90 shows slave jail, 97-98 court-martialed, 104

Thibadeau, J. H., Capt, 257

Thibadeau, J. H., Capt, 257

Thompson, J. M., Capt, 256, 257

Thompson, J. M., Capt, 256, 257

Tirrell, A. H., Lt, 258

Tirrell, A. H., Lt, 258

Tobacco, use of, 58

Tobacco use, 58

Tonking, J. H., Capt, 256

Tonking, J. H., Captain, 256

Trowbridge, C. T., Lt-Col., 164, 167, 169, 175, 226, 231, 235, 243, 245, 249, 255, 256, 260, 262, 263, 272, 277-279 commands "Planter," 80,103 and men construct Ft Montgomery, 121 on river raid, 165

Trowbridge, C. T., Lt-Col., 164, 167, 169, 175, 226, 231, 235, 243, 245, 249, 255, 256, 260, 262, 263, 272, 277-279 commands "Planter," 80, 103, and men build Fort Montgomery, 121 during river raid, 165

Trowbridge, J. A., Lt, 257, 258

Trowbridge, J. A., Lt, 257, 258

Tubman, Harriet 37 Twichell, J. F., Lt-CoL, 123, 126 Virginia

Tubman, Harriet 37 Twichell, J. F., Lt-Col, 123, 126 Virginia

Vendross, Robert, Cpl., 249

Robert Vendross, Cpl., 249

Walker, G. D., Capt, 257

Walker, G. D., Capt, 257

Walker, William, Sgt., 267, 274

Walker, William, Sgt., 267, 274

War Department, 40, 93

War Department, 40, 93

Washington, William, 44

Washington, William, 44

Watson, Lt., 109

Watson, Lt., 109

Webster, Daniel, 27

Webster, Daniel, 27

Weld, S. M., 216

Weld, S. M., 216

West, H. C., Lt, 258

West, H. C., Lt, 258

West, J. B., Lt, 257, 258

West, J. B., Lt, 257, 258

White, E. P., Lt, 257

White, E. P., Lt, 257

White, N. S, Capt, 256, 258, 259

White, N. S., Capt, 256, 258, 259

Whiting, William, 269, 270, 274, 275

Whiting, William, 269, 270, 274, 275

Whitney, H. A., Maj, 170, 220, 255, 256

Whitney, H. A., Maj, 170, 220, 255, 256

Wiggins, Cyrus, 250

Wiggins, Cyrus, 250

Williams, Harry, Sgt., 220

Sgt. Harry Williams, 220

Williams, Col., 264

Williams, Colonel, 264

Wilson, Henry, 268, 271

Wilson, Henry, 268, 271

Wilson family, 233

Wilson family, 233

Wood, H., Lt, 258, 25?

Wood, H., Lt, 258, 25?

Wood, W. J., Maj., 267

Wood, W. J., Maj., 267

Woodstock, Georgia, 95

Woodstock, GA 95

Wright, Gen., 107, 112

Wright, Gen., 107, 112

Wright, Fanny, 234

Wright, Fanny, 234

Yellow Fever, fear of, 74

Yellow Fever, fear of, 74

Zachos, Dr., 41

Dr. Zachos, 41











Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!